Selected quad for the lemma: cause_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
cause_n ability_n able_a know_v 72 3 3.1446 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A11516 The historie of the Councel of Trent Conteining eight bookes. In which (besides the ordinarie actes of the Councell) are declared many notable occurrences, which happened in Christendome, during the space of fourtie yeeres and more. And, particularly, the practises of the Court of Rome, to hinder the reformation of their errors, and to maintaine their greatnesse. Written in Italian by Pietro Soaue Polano, and faithfully translated into English by Nathanael Brent.; Historia del Concilio tridentino. English Sarpi, Paolo, 1552-1623.; Brent, Nathaniel, Sir, 1573?-1652. 1629 (1629) STC 21762; ESTC S116697 1,096,909 905

There are 56 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

understand_v it_o 11_o there_o be_v yet_o some_o danger_n of_o schism_n for_o julius_n the_o second_o have_v man_n pope_n julius_n the_o second_o be_v more_o a_o soldier_n then_o a_o clergy_n man_n addict_v himself_o more_o to_o the_o art_n of_o war_n then_o to_o the_o priestly_a ministry_n and_o govern_v the_o popedom_n with_o excessive_a imperiousnes_n towards_o the_o prince_n and_o cardinal_n have_v constrain_v some_o of_o they_o to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o he_o and_o to_o call_v a_o council_n and_o the_o french_a king_n lewis_n the_o twelve_o excommunicate_v excommunicate_v lewis_n the_o 12._o excommunicate_v by_o the_o same_o pope_n have_v withdraw_v his_o obedience_n from_o he_o and_o be_v join_v with_o the_o separate_a cardinal_n which_o beginning_n do_v seem_v may_v produce_v some_o important_a conclusion_n but_o julius_n opportune_o die_v and_o leo_n be_v create_v in_o his_o stead_n with_o his_o dexterity_n he_o reconcile_v in_o a_o very_a short_a space_n the_o cardinal_n and_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n both_o at_o once_o so_o that_o a_o fire_n be_v quench_v with_o admirable_a celerity_n and_o ease_n which_o in_o likelihood_n may_v have_v burn_v the_o church_n leo._n leo_n 10._o maximil_n 1._o henry_n 7._o lewis_n 12._o the_o description_n of_o pope_n leo._n 12_o leo_n the_o ten_o as_o one_o who_o birth_n and_o education_n be_v noble_a adorn_v the_o papacy_n with_o many_o good_a part_n which_o he_o bring_v into_o it_o among_o which_o be_v his_o singular_a learning_n in_o humanity_n goodness_n and_o a_o marvelous_a sweet_a manner_n in_o treat_v of_o affair_n together_o with_o a_o please_a behaviour_n more_o than_o humane_a join_v with_o incomparable_a liberality_n and_o a_o great_a inclination_n to_o favour_v those_o that_o be_v learn_v and_o endow_v with_o any_o extraordinary_a quality_n which_o virtue_n be_v not_o find_v in_o that_o sea_n of_o a_o long_a time_n before_o neither_o equal_a nor_o near_o unto_o he_o and_o he_o will_v have_v be_v a_o pope_n absolute_o complete_a if_o with_o these_o he_o have_v join_v some_o knowledge_n in_o thing_n that_o concern_v religion_n and_o some_o more_o propension_n unto_o piety_n of_o both_o which_o he_o seem_v careless_a and_o as_o he_o be_v most_o liberal_a and_o well_o see_v in_o the_o art_n of_o give_v so_o in_o that_o other_o of_o gain_v he_o be_v not_o able_a enough_o of_o himself_o but_o use_v the_o assistance_n of_o lorenzo_n pucci_n cardinal_n of_o santi_n quatro_n a_o man_n exceed_v sufficient_a in_o that_o behalf_n 13_o leo_n therefore_o find_v himself_o in_o this_o state_n quiet_a the_o schism_n extinguish_v absolute_o without_o a_o adversary_n as_o one_o may_v say_v because_o those_o few_o waldense_n and_o calistini_fw-la be_v not_o any_o way_n considerable_a liberal_a in_o spend_v and_o reward_v aswell_o his_o kindred_n as_o courtier_n and_o professor_n of_o learning_n other_o fountain_n from_o whence_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v wont_a to_o draw_v riches_n unto_o itself_o out_o of_o other_o nation_n be_v dry_v up_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o serve_v himself_o of_o that_o of_o indulgence_n 14_o this_o manner_n of_o gain_v money_n be_v put_v in_o practice_n after_o the_o year_n begin_v when_o the_o art_n of_o gain_v money_n by_o indulgence_n begin_v 1100._o for_o pope_n vrbane_n the_o second_o have_v grant_v a_o plenary_a indulgence_n and_o remission_n of_o all_o sin_n to_o whosoever_o make_v war_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n to_o regain_v and_o set_v at_o liberty_n the_o sepulchre_n of_o christ_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o mahometans_n be_v imitate_v by_o his_o successor_n for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n some_o of_o which_o as_o always_o new_a invention_n be_v enlarge_v grant_v it_o to_o those_o that_o maintain_v a_o soldier_n in_o case_n they_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o go_v to_o war_n themselves_o in_o person_n and_o after_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n the_o same_o indulgence_n and_o pardon_n be_v give_v for_o the_o take_n of_o arm_n against_o those_o that_o obey_v not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n although_o they_o be_v christian_n and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n infinite_a exaction_n be_v make_v under_o those_o pretence_n all_o which_o or_o the_o great_a part_n be_v apply_v to_o other_o use_n 15_o leo_n be_v counsel_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o santi_n quatro_n to_o follow_v these_o example_n send_v a_o indulgence_n and_o pardon_n for_o sin_n throughout_o all_o christendom_n indulgence_n leo_n grant_v a_o plenary_a indulgence_n grant_v it_o to_o whosoever_o will_v give_v money_n and_o extend_v of_o it_o even_o unto_o the_o dead_a for_o who_o when_o the_o disbursement_n be_v make_v his_o will_n be_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o the_o pain_n of_o purgatory_n give_v also_o power_n to_o eat_v egg_n and_o whitmeat_n on_o fast_a day_n to_o choose_v themselves_o a_o confessor_n and_o other_o such_o like_a ability_n and_o although_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o enterprise_n of_o leo_n have_v some_o particular_a in_o it_o that_o be_v neither_o pious_a nor_o honest_a as_o hereafter_o shall_v appear_v which_o do_v give_v scandal_n and_o cause_v innovation_n notwithstanding_o many_o of_o the_o grant_v former_o make_v by_o the_o precede_a pope_n have_v cause_n more_o unjust_a and_o be_v exercise_v with_o more_o avarice_n and_o extortion_n but_o occasion_n arise_v many_o time_n which_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v notable_a effect_n and_o yet_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o want_v of_o those_o that_o know_v how_o to_o use_v they_o and_o which_o 1517_o 1517_o leo_n 10._o maximil_n 1._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1._o 1517_o be_v more_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o effect_n of_o anything_o that_o the_o time_n come_v in_o which_o it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o correct_v the_o error_n of_o man_n all_o these_o thing_n meet_v together_o in_o the_o time_n of_o leo_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v 16_o for_o have_v publish_v a_o universal_a grant_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o year_n 1517._o he_o distribute_v part_n of_o the_o harvest_n before_o it_o be_v reap_v or_o well_o sow_v give_v unto_o diverse_a person_n the_o revenue_n of_o diverse_a province_n and_o reserve_v some_o also_o for_o his_o own_o exchequer_n in_o particular_a the_o indulgence_n of_o saxony_n and_o of_o that_o arm_n of_o germany_n which_o reach_v from_o thence_o to_o the_o sea_n he_o give_v fourteen_o the_o pope_n sister_n have_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o indulgence_n leo_n be_v create_v cardinal_n at_o the_o age_n of_o fourteen_o to_o his_o sister_n magdalene_n wife_n unto_o franceschetto_n cibo_fw-la bastard_n son_n of_o innocentius_n the_o eight_o by_o reason_n of_o which_o marriage_n this_o leo_n be_v create_v cardinal_n at_o the_o age_n of_o fourteen_o year_n which_o be_v the_o first_o beginning_n of_o ecclesiastical_a greatness_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o medici_n and_o leo_n use_v this_o liberality_n not_o so_o much_o through_o brotherly_a love_n as_o for_o recompense_v of_o the_o charge_n which_o the_o family_n of_o cibo_fw-la be_v at_o when_o he_o retire_v himself_o to_o genua_n not_o dare_v to_o abide_v in_o rome_n so_o long_o as_o alexander_n the_o 6._o have_v link_v himself_o with_o the_o florentine_n who_o be_v enemy_n to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o medici_n have_v chase_v it_o out_o of_o florence_n the_o sister_n that_o the_o pope_n his_o gift_n may_v be_v profitable_a unto_o she_o commit_v the_o care_n of_o preach_v the_o indulgence_n &_o exact_v the_o money_n unto_o bishop_n aremboldus_n sister_n aremboldus_n be_v the_o agent_n of_o the_o pope_n sister_n who_o in_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n deve_v not_o himself_o of_o any_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o perfect_a genua_n merchant_n this_o man_n give_v power_n to_o publish_v the_o indulgence_n to_o whosoever_o promise_v to_o raise_v most_o profit_n by_o they_o without_o any_o regard_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n even_o so_o so_o ridid_o that_o no_o man_n of_o any_o tolerable_a condition_n can_v contract_v with_o he_o but_o he_o find_v minister_n like_a unto_o himself_o who_o aim_v at_o nothing_o but_o the_o gain_n of_o money_n 17_o it_o be_v a_o custom_n in_o saxony_n that_o whensoever_o indulgence_n be_v send_v by_o custom_n the_o heremit_fw-la friar_n be_v publisher_n of_o indulgence_n in_o saxony_n by_o custom_n pope_n the_o friar_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o heremites_n be_v employ_v to_o publish_v they_o the_o pardon-monger_n minister_n of_o aremboldus_n will_v not_o go_v to_o these_o because_o be_v accustom_v to_o manage_v the_o like_a merchandize_n they_o may_v use_v some_o device_n to_o draw_v some_o secret_a profit_n to_o themselves_o and_o from_o who_o likewise_o as_o practise_v in_o this_o office_n they_o expect_v not_o any_o extraordinary_a thing_n which_o may_v bring_v they_o more_o than_o usual_a advantage_n but_o they_o aremboldus_n the_o dominican_n be_v employ_v by_o the_o
calumny_n raise_v against_o he_o that_o he_o procure_v a_o schism_n when_o he_o demand_v a_o council_n in_o trent_n to_o unite_v christendom_n and_o for_o piacenza_n that_o it_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o duchy_n of_o milan_n many_o year_n unjust_o usurp_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o if_o they_o have_v title_n to_o it_o let_v it_o be_v show_v and_o he_o will_v not_o fail_v to_o do_v justice_n the_o pope_n see_v his_o spiritual_a weapon_n will_v do_v no_o good_a without_o the_o temporal_a change_v his_o opinion_n and_o seek_v to_o make_v a_o strong_a league_n against_o the_o emperor_n wherein_o he_o find_v many_o difficulty_n not_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v the_o venetian_n to_o enter_v into_o it_o and_o the_o frenchman_n require_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o consistory_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o pope_n decrepit_a age_n and_o a_o pawn_n of_o money_n which_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o lay_v down_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a charge_n he_o be_v at_o fear_v it_o will_v be_v great_a for_o which_o cause_n he_o have_v lay_v as_o great_a burden_n do_v his_o holiness_n endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o strong_a league_n against_o the_o emperor_n but_o find_v difficulty_n in_o it_o know_v not_o what_o to_o do_v on_o his_o subject_n as_o they_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v and_o sell_v and_o pawn_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v and_o give_v order_n for_o grant_v of_o all_o sort_n of_o dispensation_n and_o favour_n to_o whosoever_o will_v give_v money_n to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n for_o the_o council_n he_o be_v most_o resolute_a not_o to_o let_v it_o be_v out_o of_o his_o own_o territory_n and_o beside_o other_o urgent_a reason_n that_o of_o his_o own_o and_o the_o popedomes_n reputation_n be_v add_v that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v not_o compel_v he_o but_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o induce_v he_o and_o germany_n to_o give_v consent_n to_o let_v it_o vanish_v sometime_o seem_v good_a unto_o he_o and_o sometime_o not_o and_o he_o often_o discourse_v thereof_o with_o the_o cardinal_n both_o in_o consistory_n and_o private_o but_o final_o he_o resolve_v to_o put_v to_o hazard_v the_o determination_n for_o which_o he_o know_v he_o be_v insufficient_a not_o only_o for_o the_o reason_n before_o allege_v but_o for_o other_o weighty_a respect_n which_o pass_v in_o germany_n for_o caesar_n at_o the_o return_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o trent_n to_o ausburg_n understand_v the_o pope_n mind_n and_o the_o answer_n he_o give_v to_o mendoza_n at_o the_o end_n of_o december_n which_o cause_v he_o to_o give_v over_o for_o the_o protestation_n as_o have_v be_v say_v and_o think_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o require_v the_o restitution_n of_o piaconza_n seek_v to_o divert_v all_o speech_n of_o the_o council_n be_v assure_v that_o so_o long_o as_o he_o live_v either_o the_o return_n will_v not_o be_v or_o the_o resolution_n will_v be_v protract_v and_o therefore_o think_v fit_a before_o he_o disarm_v to_o set_v germany_n at_o peace_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n hereof_o a_o proposition_n be_v make_v in_o the_o diet_n and_o order_n take_v diet._n the_o emperor_n resolve_v to_o settle_v a_o peace_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o diet._n that_o choice_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o person_n fit_a for_o this_o good_a work_n those_o be_v choose_v who_o be_v esteem_v the_o best_a who_o not_o agree_v all_o be_v refer_v to_o caesar_n he_o elect_v three_o julius_n flugius_fw-la michael_n sidonius_n and_o johannes_n islebius_n these_o after_o long_a consultation_n compose_v a_o form_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v often_o examine_v review_v and_o change_v first_o by_o themselves_o and_o then_o by_o diverse_a person_n unto_o who_o the_o emperor_n cause_v it_o to_o be_v show_v interim_n therefore_o a_o form_n be_v compose_v call_v the_o interim_n and_o some_o of_o the_o principal_a minister_n of_o the_o protestant_n be_v also_o call_v that_o they_o may_v approve_v it_o but_o it_o have_v so_o many_o alteration_n addition_n and_o diminution_n that_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o many_o man_n who_o have_v contrary_a end_n final_o it_o be_v reduce_v into_o that_o form_n in_o which_o it_o now_o be_v &_o the_o legate_n send_v a_o copy_n thereof_o unto_o rome_n by_o the_o emperor_n consent_n who_o be_v willing_a to_o understand_v the_o pope_n opinion_n and_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o mayor_n part_n of_o the_o prelate_n who_o see_v the_o controversy_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n fear_v that_o the_o emperor_n will_v obey_v he_o no_o long_o a_o thing_n much_o abhor_v by_o they_o for_o the_o inbred_a and_o inveterate_a opinion_n of_o the_o dutchman_n to_o maintain_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v the_o only_a counterpoise_n of_o the_o emperor_n authority_n who_o without_o his_o assistance_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v if_o according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o ancient_a christian_a prince_n they_o will_v keep_v they_o within_o their_o bound_n and_o remove_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o renown_a liberty_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o book_n contain_v twenty_o five_o head_n of_o the_o state_n of_o man_n in_o innocence_n of_o the_o state_n of_o man_n after_o sin_n of_o the_o redemption_n by_o christ_n head_n which_o conteme_v 25._o head_n of_o justification_n of_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o of_o the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v receive_v of_o charity_n and_o good_a work_n of_o belief_n of_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o the_o authority_n thereof_o of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n of_o confirmation_n of_o penance_n of_o the_o eucharist_n of_o extreme_a unction_n of_o order_n of_o marriage_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n of_o the_o memory_n intercession_n and_o invocation_n of_o saint_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o ceremony_n and_o use_v of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o recite_v here_o the_o substance_n of_o they_o will_v be_v too_o long_o tedious_a and_o unprofitable_a because_o the_o consequence_n which_o begin_v from_o that_o long_a do_v not_o continue_v long_a book_n last_v not_o long_o it_o have_v the_o name_n of_o the_o interim_n prescribe_v what_o to_o believe_v until_o all_o be_v establish_v by_o a_o general_a conncell_n when_o the_o copy_n come_v to_o rome_n every_o one_o be_v amaze_v first_o in_o general_n that_o a_o temporal_a prince_n in_o a_o secular_a assembly_n shall_v meddle_v with_o religion_n and_o not_o in_o one_o article_n only_o but_o in_o all_o the_o learned_a call_v to_o mind_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o zeno_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o heraclius_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o constance_n and_o what_o division_n these_o imperial_a constitution_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n make_v in_o christendom_n rome_n and_o be_v censure_v in_o rome_n and_o say_v that_o until_o then_o there_o be_v three_o name_n unlucky_a to_o the_o church_n bring_v into_o it_o many_o division_n under_o pretence_n of_o unity_n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v this_o four_o the_o interim_n of_o charles_n the_o five_o they_o doubt_v that_o this_o begin_n of_o the_o emperor_n will_v end_v where_o henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n do_v arrive_v to_o declare_v himself_o head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o will_v have_v so_o much_o more_o compass_n as_o spain_n italy_n germany_n and_o other_o adjacent_a country_n be_v great_a than_o one_o island_n which_o in_o appearance_n do_v make_v show_n to_o contain_v one_o catholic_a doctrine_n but_o be_v very_o far_o from_o it_o descend_v to_o particular_n they_o reprehend_v that_o in_o the_o point_n of_o original_a sin_n justification_n the_o sacrament_n baptism_n and_o confirmation_n the_o doctrine_n determine_v by_o the_o council_n be_v not_o set_v down_o and_o that_o collection_n be_v make_v to_o be_v observe_v until_o the_o council_n in_o regard_n the_o council_n concern_v those_o point_n be_v make_v already_o what_o else_o can_v be_v say_v but_o that_o it_o be_v precise_o to_o be_v observe_v but_o to_o have_v publish_v another_o doctrine_n be_v to_o annihilate_v the_o counsel_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n cunning_a be_v more_o to_o be_v suspect_v then_o ever_o see_v that_o he_o make_v so_o earnest_a a_o request_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v return_v to_o trent_n and_o do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o whatsoever_o be_v constitute_v by_o it_o they_o condemn_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o that_o doctrine_n for_o that_o it_o contain_v ambiguous_a speech_n which_o superficial_o consider_v do_v receive_v a_o good_a sense_n but_o inward_o be_v full_a of_o poison_n that_o in_o some_o part_n it_o do_v purposely_o stand_v only_o upon_o the_o general_a that_o the_o lutheran_n may_v expound_v
quite_o alter_v in_o diverse_a kingdom_n and_o country_n of_o christendom_n the_o grandee_n sometime_o divide_v and_o arm_a one_o against_o another_o sometime_o join_v in_o confederation_n and_o league_n the_o eccleisastic_n oppress_v the_o protestant_n persecute_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v act_v their_o part_n and_o most_o lively_o decipher_v in_o their_o natural_a colour_n if_o learning_n will_v content_v thou_o mark_v the_o disputation_n of_o the_o theologue_n and_o the_o deep_a discourse_n of_o the_o author_n himself_o if_o policy_n will_v please_v thou_o thou_o shall_v find_v it_o in_o the_o consultation_n and_o treaty_n of_o prince_n manage_v with_o admirable_a dexterity_n by_o their_o ambassador_n and_o minister_n and_o general_o no_o delight_n will_v be_v want_v to_o thou_o which_o thy_o curiosity_n can_v desire_v or_o any_o other_o history_n afford_v but_o consider_v above_o all_o in_o what_o a_o strange_a manner_n the_o conciliarie_n act_v of_o this_o assembly_n in_o trent_n be_v carry_v by_o read_v of_o those_o few_o word_n of_o thy_o countryman_n edmond_n campian_n below_o in_o this_o page_n thou_o may_v perceive_v in_o what_o repute_n the_o papalin_n do_v hold_v it_o and_o after_o when_o thou_o have_v read_v the_o book_n thou_o will_v know_v how_o much_o it_o be_v overvalued_n compare_v thy_o judicious_a censure_n with_o his_o that_o be_v partial_a and_o thou_o shall_v find_v they_o to_o agree_v as_o white_a with_o blackness_n darkness_n with_o light_n farewell_n verba_fw-la edmundi_fw-la campiani_n ratione_fw-la quarta_fw-la reddita_fw-la academicis_fw-la tridentina_n synodus_fw-la quo_fw-la magis_fw-la inveterascet_fw-la eo_fw-la magis_fw-la indy_n ebque_fw-la perennius_fw-la efflorescet_fw-la bone_fw-la deus_fw-la quae_fw-la gentium_fw-la varietas_fw-la qui_fw-la delectus_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la qui_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o rerumpublicarum_fw-la splendour_n quae_fw-la medulla_n theologorum_fw-la quae_fw-la sanctitas_fw-la quae_fw-la lachrymae_fw-la quae_fw-la ieiunia_fw-la qui_fw-la flores_fw-la academici_n quae_fw-la linguae_fw-la quanta_fw-la subtilitas_fw-la quantus_fw-la labour_n quam_fw-la infinita_fw-la lectio_fw-la quanta_fw-la virtutum_fw-la &_o studiorum_fw-la divitiae_fw-la augustum_fw-la illud_fw-la sacrarium_fw-la impleverunt_fw-la the_o word_n of_o edmond_n campian_n in_o his_o four_o reason_n give_v to_o the_o university_n the_o synod_n of_o trent_n the_o old_a it_o wax_v the_o more_o it_o will_v flourish_v good_a god_n what_o variety_n of_o nation_n what_o choice_n of_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o splendour_n of_o king_n and_o commonwealth_n what_o marrow_n of_o theologue_n what_o sanctity_n what_o weep_n what_o fast_n what_o academical_a flower_n what_o language_n what_o subtlety_n what_o labour_n what_o infinite_a read_n what_o riches_n of_o virtue_n and_o study_n do_v fill_v up_o that_o majestical_a sacred_a place_n to_o the_o most_o reverend_a father_z in_o god_n my_o singular_a good_a lord_n the_o lord_z archbishop_z of_o canterbury_n his_o grace_n primate_n of_o all_o england_n and_o metropolitan_a and_o one_o of_o his_o majesty_n most_o honourable_a privy_a council_n most_o reverend_a in_o christ_n it_o may_v seem_v strange_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v without_o example_n that_o of_o one_o council_n only_o so_o large_a a_o history_n shall_v be_v write_v and_o so_o full_a of_o all_o variety_n of_o matter_n for_o in_o those_o of_o former_a age_n in_o which_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v real_o and_o effectual_o assist_v the_o father_n howsoever_o more_o prelate_n and_o divine_n be_v assemble_v from_o place_n more_o remote_a and_o the_o action_n guide_v by_o the_o great_a prince_n of_o all_o those_o time_n yet_o nothing_o be_v attempt_v to_o increase_v or_o maintain_v the_o heresy_n and_o abuse_n that_o reign_v then_o nor_o be_v any_o thing_n remarkable_a but_o the_o very_a doctrine_n and_o decree_n themselves_o but_o after_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n scorn_v to_o be_v minister_n and_o servant_n make_v themselves_o master_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o practice_n and_o invention_n of_o worldly_a man_n chase_v away_o the_o heavenly_a inspiration_n of_o the_o bless_a spirit_n and_o great_a confusion_n and_o trouble_n do_v arise_v in_o handle_v divine_a mystery_n than_o do_v happen_v at_o any_o other_o time_n in_o negotiate_v the_o affair_n of_o kingdom_n and_o of_o commonwealth_n this_o have_v minister_v a_o whole_a ocean_n of_o occurrence_n and_o afford_v a_o most_o copious_a subject_n to_o this_o present_a treatise_n and_o so_o irresistible_a be_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o divine_a providence_n so_o great_a that_o howsoever_o the_o romanist_n have_v use_v all_o possible_a diligence_n to_o hinder_v the_o find_v out_o of_o their_o unlawful_a proceed_n in_o this_o council_n by_o suppress_v all_o public_a writing_n and_o monument_n by_o which_o their_o treachery_n and_o abuse_n may_v be_v discover_v more_o plain_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n the_o writer_n of_o this_o history_n a_o man_n of_o admirable_a learning_n exquisite_a judgement_n indefatigable_a industry_n and_o integrity_n scarce_o to_o be_v match_v have_v be_v raise_v up_o by_o god_n who_o out_o of_o the_o diaries_n memorial_n register_n and_o other_o writing_n make_v and_o preserve_v by_o the_o prelate_n and_o divine_n themselves_n and_o by_o the_o ambassador_n of_o prince_n and_o republic_n who_o be_v assistant_n herein_o which_o be_v the_o most_o infallible_a ground_n that_o any_o writer_n can_v have_v have_v reveal_v a_o infinite_a of_o intolerable_a abuse_n and_o as_o the_o proverb_n say_v cornicum_fw-la oculos_fw-la confixit_fw-la this_o book_n i_o have_v translate_v out_o of_o italian_a into_o our_o vulgar_a language_n presume_v to_o commend_v it_o to_o the_o royal_a protection_n of_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n for_o who_o sake_n as_o some_o reason_n induce_v i_o to_o believe_v it_o be_v principal_o compose_v and_o because_o i_o undertake_v this_o work_n at_o your_o grace_n command_n who_o have_v be_v the_o chief_a cause_n why_o the_o original_a cross_v the_o sea_n before_o the_o just_a nativity_n of_o it_o and_o see_v the_o first_o light_n within_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n as_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o high_a place_n you_o most_o deserve_o bear_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n i_o think_v it_o my_o duty_n to_o crave_v your_o favour_n likewise_o that_o as_o the_o birth_n of_o it_o have_v be_v happy_a by_o your_o grace_n mean_n so_o the_o growth_n may_v according_o proceed_v and_o the_o fruit_n of_o both_o which_o be_v to_o remove_v a_o erroneous_a opinion_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o this_o pretend_a council_n may_v constant_o endure_v until_o the_o world_n end_n in_o publish_v hereof_o if_o my_o pen_n have_v not_o merit_v such_o praise_n as_o other_o might_n yet_o my_o desire_n to_o benefit_n god_n church_n have_v not_o be_v want_v and_o my_o zeal_n to_o serve_v your_o grace_n in_o whatsoever_o i_o be_o able_a shall_v never_o yield_v to_o any_o unto_o who_o i_o wish_v for_o the_o public_a benefit_n of_o church_n and_o commonwealth_n and_o for_o your_o own_o particular_a contentment_n a_o perfect_a accomplishment_n of_o all_o your_o pious_a and_o honourable_a design_n your_o grace_n most_o oblige_v to_o do_v you_o service_n nathanael_n brent_n the_o first_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n my_o purpose_n king_n 1500_o pope_n alexander_z 6_o emperor_n maximllian_n i._o henry_n 7._o king_n of_o england_n lewis_n 12._o french_a king_n be_v to_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o council_n author_n the_o purpose_n of_o the_o author_n of_o trent_n for_o though_o many_o famous_a historian_n of_o our_o age_n have_v make_v mention_n in_o their_o writing_n of_o some_o particular_a accident_n that_o happen_v therein_o and_o john_n sleidam_n a_o most_o diligent_a author_n have_v relate_v with_o exquisite_a industry_n the_o cause_n that_o go_v before_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o thing_n put_v together_o will_v not_o suffice_v for_o a_o entire_a narration_n for_o myself_o so_o soon_o as_o i_o have_v understand_v matter_n the_o mean_n he_o use_v for_o collection_n of_o his_o matter_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o world_n i_o become_v exceed_v curious_a to_o know_v the_o whole_a proceed_n thereof_o and_o after_o i_o have_v diligent_o read_v whatsoever_o i_o find_v write_v and_o the_o public_a instruction_n whether_o print_v or_o diwlge_v by_o pen_n i_o betake_v myself_o without_o spare_v either_o pain_n or_o care_n to_o search_v in_o the_o remainder_n of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o other_o who_o be_v present_a in_o the_o council_n the_o record_n which_o they_o leave_v behind_o they_o and_o the_o suffrage_n or_o opinion_n deliver_v in_o public_a preserve_v by_o the_o author_n themselves_o or_o by_o other_o and_o the_o letter_n of_o advice_n write_v from_o that_o city_n whereby_o i_o have_v have_v the_o favour_n to_o see_v even_o a_o whole_a register_n of_o note_n and_o letter_n of_o those_o person_n who_o have_v a_o great_a part_n
have_v come_v from_o a_o common_a father_n and_o vicar_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o believe_v also_o be_v not_o resolve_v on_o without_o their_o counsel_n because_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o pope_n treat_v not_o of_o thing_n of_o so_o great_a a_o moment_n without_o communicate_v all_o unto_o they_o therefore_o he_o be_v trouble_v very_o much_o to_o see_v that_o from_o a_o pope_n and_o so_o religious_a father_n shall_v proceed_v war_n threat_n and_o pernicious_a counsel_n against_o a_o emperor_n protector_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o well_o deserve_v that_o to_o please_v they_o he_o stop_v his_o ear_n in_o worm_n against_o the_o prayer_n of_o all_o germany_n make_v unto_o he_o against_o the_o oppression_n and_o grievane_n which_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n make_v none_o account_v of_o the_o honest_a demand_n that_o a_o council_n may_v be_v call_v to_o withstand_v the_o foresay_a oppression_n which_o will_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o withstand_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n that_o to_o serve_v the_o sea_n of_o rome_n he_o have_v prohibit_v the_o meeting_n at_o spira_n which_o germany_n have_v intimate_v foresee_v that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v a_o beginning_n to_o separate_v it_o from_o the_o obedience_n of_o rome_n &_o have_v divert_v the_o thought_n of_o those_o prince_n by_o promise_v they_o a_o council_n whereof_o have_v write_v and_o give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o pope_n his_o holiness_n thank_v he_o for_o have_v forbid_v the_o assembly_n of_o spira_n but_o pray_v he_o to_o defer_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o council_n until_o a_o more_o convenient_a time_n and_o he_o to_o please_v make_v more_o account_n to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n then_o of_o the_o prayer_n of_o germany_n which_o be_v so_o necessary_a and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o the_o pope_n now_o write_v letter_n unto_o he_o full_a of_o complaint_n and_o imputation_n demand_v thing_n of_o he_o which_o he_o can_v neither_o just_o nor_o secure_o grant_v of_o which_o letter_n he_o send_v they_o a_o copy_n be_v desirous_a to_o signify_v the_o whole_a unto_o they_o that_o they_o may_v uphold_v christianity_n now_o ready_a to_o fall_v and_o employ_v themselves_o to_o divert_v the_o pope_n from_o so_o pernicious_a a_o deliberation_n in_o which_o if_o he_o shall_v remain_v unmoveable_a they_o may_v exhort_v he_o to_o call_v a_o council_n whereunto_o in_o case_n he_o will_v not_o condescend_v according_a to_o order_n of_o law_n he_o beseech_v their_o most_o reverend_a paternity_n and_o the_o sacred_a college_n that_o the_o pope_n deny_v or_o defer_v the_o convocation_n they_o will_v call_v it_o themselves_o observe_v the_o due_a order_n wherefore_o if_o they_o shall_v refuse_v to_o grant_v he_o this_o just_a demand_n or_o shall_v defer_v long_o then_o be_v convenient_a he_o will_v make_v provision_n for_o it_o himself_o refuse_v and_o persuade_v they_o to_o call_v a_o council_n if_o the_o pope_n refuse_v by_o the_o imperial_a authority_n use_v the_o mean_n that_o be_v just_a and_o fit_v this_o letter_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o consistory_n the_o twelve_o of_o december_n and_o together_o also_o with_o it_o a_o duplicate_v of_o the_o letter_n which_o be_v consign_v to_o the_o nuncio_n in_o granada_n be_v present_v to_o the_o pope_n 92_o all_o these_o letter_n be_v instant_o print_v in_o diverse_a place_n of_o germany_n spain_n and_o italy_n and_o many_o copy_n go_v up_o and_o down_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n those_o person_n who_o though_o they_o observe_v the_o accident_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o have_v not_o much_o capacity_n and_o use_v to_o live_v and_o govern_v themselves_o by_o the_o example_n of_o other_o and_o especial_o of_o the_o grandee_n and_o who_o by_o the_o demonstration_n which_o charles_n make_v against_o the_o lutheran_n as_o well_o in_o worm_n as_o in_o other_o place_n in_o germany_n the_o emperor_n be_v censure_v in_o germany_n contemplation_n of_o the_o papacy_n believe_v that_o he_o favour_v the_o pope_n side_n for_o religion_n and_o conscience_n sake_n see_v his_o change_n be_v much_o scandalize_v especial_o for_o that_o he_o say_v that_o he_o stop_v his_o ear_n to_o the_o honest_a prayer_n of_o germany_n to_o do_v the_o pope_n a_o pleasure_n and_o those_o of_o the_o wise_a sort_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o well_o advise_v to_o diwlge_v so_o great_a a_o secret_a and_o to_o give_v the_o world_n occasion_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o reverence_n show_v towards_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o art_n of_o government_n cover_v with_o the_o cloak_n of_o religion_n and_o further_o they_o expect_v that_o for_o these_o letter_n the_o pope_n will_v show_v some_o desire_n of_o revenge_n the_o emperor_n have_v touch_v two_o great_a secret_n of_o the_o popedom_n the_o one_o in_o appeal_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o a_o future_a council_n contrary_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o pius_n and_o julius_n the_o second_o the_o other_o in_o have_v invite_v the_o cardinal_n to_o call_v a_o council_n in_o case_n of_o a_o negative_a give_v or_o a_o dilation_n interpose_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o beginning_n shall_v draw_v great_a consequence_n with_o it_o 93_o but_o as_o seed_n though_o most_o fertile_a cast_v into_o the_o ground_n out_o of_o season_n fructify_v not_o so_o these_o great_a attempt_n happen_v in_o time_n not_o convenient_a become_v it_o the_o family_n of_o colonna_n assault_n rome_n and_o take_v it_o vain_a and_o so_o much_o happen_v in_o this_o occasion_n for_o while_o the_o pope_n seek_v revenge_n with_o his_o arm_n and_o with_o the_o arm_n of_o so_o many_o prince_n that_o he_o may_v use_v spiritual_a remedy_n after_o he_o have_v make_v some_o temporal_a foundation_n those_o of_o the_o family_n of_o colonna_n either_o not_o trust_v the_o pope_n promise_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n arm_v their_o subject_n and_o other_o who_o follow_v that_o faction_n approach_v rome_n upon_o the_o side_n of_o the_o suburb_n the_o twenty_o of_o september_n which_o amaze_v very_o much_o the_o pope_n family_n and_o the_o pope_n himself_o surprise_v upon_o the_o sudden_a and_o whole_o confuse_v know_v not_o what_o resolution_n to_o take_v call_v for_o the_o solemn_a pontifical_a habit_n say_v that_o so_o apparel_v to_o the_o imitation_n of_o boniface_n the_o 8._o sit_v in_o the_o pontifical_a chair_n he_o will_v expect_v to_o see_v if_o they_o dare_v add_v to_o the_o first_o a_o second_o violation_n of_o the_o apostolical_a dignity_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o pope_n himself_o but_o he_o easy_o castle_n the_o pope_n save_v himself_o in_o the_o castle_n yield_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o friend_n to_o save_v himself_o in_o the_o castle_n by_o the_o gallery_n and_o not_o give_v occasion_n to_o be_v note_v of_o folly_n 94_o the_o colonnesi_n enter_v rome_n and_o sack_v the_o pope_n palace_n and_o s._n peter_n church_n they_o spread_v themselves_o also_o even_o unto_o the_o principal_a house_n of_o the_o borough_n but_o the_o inhabitant_n make_v resistance_n and_o the_o orsini_n a_o contrary_a faction_n come_v in_o aid_n against_o they_o they_o be_v constrain_v to_o retire_v themselves_o into_o a_o secure_a quarter_n which_o they_o have_v take_v near_o hand_n yet_o carry_v with_o they_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o vatican_n with_o the_o infinite_a displeasure_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o army_n wax_v big_a every_o day_n with_o succour_n that_o arrive_v sack_v the_o palace_n and_o s._n peter_n church_n be_v sack_v from_o naples_n the_o pope_n fear_v some_o great_a encounter_n overcome_v by_o necessity_n call_v into_o the_o castle_n don_n hugo_n de_fw-fr moncado_n one_o of_o the_o emperor_n minister_n conclude_v a_o truce_n with_o he_o for_o four_o month_n with_o condition_n that_o the_o colonnesi_n and_o neapolitan_n shall_v retire_v themselves_o from_o rome_n and_o the_o conclude_v a_o truce_n conclude_v pope_n shall_v call_v back_o his_o soldier_n from_o lombardie_n the_o which_o both_o party_n perform_v clement_n cause_v his_o man_n to_o return_v to_o rome_n under_o pretence_n to_o observe_v the_o capitulation_n of_o the_o truce_n and_o be_v by_o they_o secure_v he_o thunder_v out_o excommunication_n against_o the_o colonnesi_n declare_v they_o heretic_n colon_a the_o pope_n bull_n against_o the_o colon_a and_o schismatic_n and_o excommunicate_v whosoever_o afford_v they_o assistance_n counsel_n or_o favour_n or_o give_v they_o entertainment_n and_o deprive_v also_o the_o cardinal_n of_o his_o red_a hat_n this_o cardinal_n be_v in_o naples_n not_o esteem_v the_o pope_n censure_n publish_v a_o appeal_n to_o the_o council_n propose_v not_o only_o the_o council_n the_o cardinal_n appeal_v to_o the_o council_n injustice_n and_o nullity_n of_o the_o monitory_n censure_n and_o sentence_n but_o also_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a which_o be_v manifest_o ruinate_v can_v not_o be_v ease_v any_o other_o way_n
the_o pope_n and_o to_o make_v the_o emperor_n the_o principal_a and_o the_o pope_n his_o minister_n by_o the_o observation_n of_o these_o beginning_n he_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v little_a hope_n in_o the_o affair_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o think_v of_o a_o defensive_a that_o the_o disease_n may_v not_o pass_v to_o other_o part_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o that_o which_o be_v past_a can_v not_o be_v yndone_v he_o think_v it_o not_o wisdom_n to_o show_v it_o be_v do_v against_o his_o will_n but_o to_o make_v himself_o the_o author_n it_o 1531_o clement_n 7._o charles_n 5._o henry_n 8._o francis_z 1_o he_o write_v to_o all_o prince_n that_o he_o will_v call_v a_o council_n though_o he_o never_o mean_v it_o of_o it_o that_o he_o may_v receive_v a_o less_o blow_n in_o his_o reputation_n therefore_o he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o thing_n pass_v to_o all_o king_n and_o prince_n dispatch_v his_o letter_n the_o first_o of_o december_n all_o of_o the_o same_o tenor_n that_o he_o hope_v the_o lutheran_n heresy_n may_v be_v extinguish_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o that_o principal_o for_o that_o cause_n he_o go_v to_o bolonia_n to_o entreat_v he_o for_o it_z though_o he_o know_v that_o of_o himself_o he_o be_v very_o well_o affect_v that_o way_n but_o have_v receive_v advice_n from_o the_o emperor_n and_o from_o his_o legate_n campeggio_n that_o the_o protestant_n be_v become_v more_o obstinate_a he_o have_v communicate_v the_o whole_a to_o the_o cardinal_n and_o together_o with_o they_o see_v clear_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o that_o which_o have_v be_v use_v by_o his_o predecessor_n that_o be_v a_o general_a council_n therefore_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n that_o shall_v be_v call_v either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o their_o ambassador_n a_o thing_n so_o holy_a that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a intimate_v a_o general_a and_o free_a council_n in_o some_o fit_a place_n in_o italy_n the_o pope_n letter_n be_v know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n because_o his_o minister_n endeavour_v in_o every_o place_n to_o give_v notice_n of_o they_o unto_o all_o not_o because_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o court_n desire_v to_o apply_v their_o mind_n to_o a_o council_n from_o which_o they_o be_v most_o averse_a but_o to_o entertain_v the_o world_n that_o by_o expectation_n of_o the_o remedy_n of_o the_o abuse_n and_o inconvenience_n they_o may_v remain_v constant_a in_o obedience_n yet_o few_o be_v deceive_v for_o it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o discover_v that_o to_o desire_v prince_n to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o a_o council_n whereof_o many_o and_o his_o collusion_n be_v discover_v by_o many_o neither_o time_n nor_o place_n nor_o manner_n be_v resolve_v on_o be_v too_o much_o affect_v prevention_n but_o the_o protestant_n also_o take_v occasion_n by_o these_o letter_n to_o write_v likewise_o to_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n and_o the_o next_o year_n in_o february_n they_o frame_v prince_n 1531_o the_o protestant_n do_v write_v likewise_o to_o all_o prince_n a_o letter_n to_o every_o one_o under_o a_o common_a name_n of_o all_o of_o this_o tenor_n that_o the_o old_a complaint_n of_o pious_a man_n against_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n note_v by_o john_n gerson_n nicolas_n clemangis_n and_o other_o in_o france_n and_o of_o john_n collet_n in_o england_n and_o of_o other_o elsewhere_o be_v know_v unto_o their_o majesty_n which_o also_o happen_v in_o germany_n in_o these_o last_o year_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o detestable_a &_o infamous_a gain_n which_o some_o friar_n make_v by_o publish_v indulgence_n and_o pass_v from_o this_o to_o relate_v whatsoever_o happen_v until_o the_o last_o diet_n they_o say_v that_o their_o adversary_n endeavour_v to_o incite_v the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n against_o they_o use_v diverse_a calumny_n which_o as_o they_o have_v withstand_v in_o germany_n so_o they_o will_v more_o easy_o confute_v in_o a_o general_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n whereunto_o they_o will_v refer_v themselves_o so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v such_o a_o one_o in_o which_o preiudices_fw-la and_o passion_n may_v take_v no_o place_n that_o among_o the_o calumny_n lay_v upon_o they_o this_o be_v the_o principal_a that_o they_o condemn_v all_o magistrate_n and_o vilify_v the_o dignity_n of_o law_n which_o be_v not_o only_o not_o true_a but_o as_o they_o have_v show_v in_o the_o diet_n of_o augusta_n their_o doctrine_n honour_v magistrate_n and_o defend_v the_o strength_n of_o law_n more_o than_o ever_o have_v be_v do_v in_o other_o age_n teach_v magistrate_n that_o their_o state_n and_o kind_a of_o life_n be_v most_o acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n that_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o god_n commandment_n to_o give_v honour_n and_o obedience_n to_o they_o and_o that_o he_o will_v not_o leave_v unpunished_a the_o disobedient_a because_o the_o magistrate_n have_v his_o government_n by_o divine_a ordination_n that_o they_o have_v desire_v to_o signify_v these_o thing_n to_o they_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o clear_n of_o themselves_o before_o they_o pray_v they_o not_o to_o believe_v the_o calumny_n and_o to_o suspend_v their_o judgement_n until_o those_o that_o be_v accuse_v have_v place_n to_o acquit_v themselves_o public_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v desire_v the_o emperor_n that_o he_o will_v call_v a_o godly_a and_o free_a council_n in_o germany_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v and_o not_o to_o use_v force_n until_o the_o matter_n be_v dispute_v and_o lawful_o define_v the_o french_a king_n answer_v with_o very_o courteous_a letter_n in_o substance_n give_v protestant_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o the_o protestant_n they_o thanks_n for_o communicate_v unto_o he_o a_o business_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n he_o show_v they_o that_o he_o be_v glad_a to_o understand_v of_o their_o innocence_n and_o do_v approve_v the_o instance_n they_o make_v that_o the_o vice_n may_v be_v amend_v wherein_o they_o shall_v find_v his_o will_n to_o concur_v with_o they_o that_o their_o require_v of_o a_o council_n be_v just_a and_o holy_a yea_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o affair_n of_o germany_n but_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o it_o be_v not_o honest_a to_o use_v arm_n where_o the_o controversy_n may_v be_v end_v with_o treaty_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v of_o the_o same_o tenor_n but_o that_o he_o england_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n declare_v in_o particular_a that_o himself_o also_o desire_v a_o council_n and_o that_o he_o will_v mediate_v with_o charles_n to_o find_v out_o a_o mean_n of_o composition_n the_o emperor_n decree_n be_v know_v throughout_o all_o germany_n they_o begin_v immediate_o to_o accuse_v the_o professor_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n in_o the_o chamber_n contemn_v sentence_n be_v make_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o spirae_n against_o the_o protestant_n and_o contemn_v of_o spira_n some_o for_o zeal_n other_o for_o revenge_n and_o some_o also_o to_o possess_v the_o good_n of_o their_o adversary_n many_o sentence_n be_v make_v many_o declaration_n and_o many_o confiscation_n against_o prince_n city_n and_o private_a man_n and_o none_o take_v place_n but_o some_o against_o private_a man_n who_o good_n be_v within_o the_o territory_n of_o catholic_n by_o other_o the_o sentence_n be_v contemn_v with_o great_a diminution_n of_o the_o honour_n not_o only_o of_o the_o chamber_n but_o of_o the_o emperor_n also_o who_o soon_o perceive_v that_o the_o remedy_n be_v not_o fit_v to_o themaladie_n which_o increase_v daily_o for_o the_o protestant_a prince_n and_o city_n beside_o that_o they_o esteem_v little_a the_o judgement_n of_o the_o chamber_n combine_v themselves_o together_o prepare_v for_o their_o defence_n and_o fortify_v themselves_o with_o foreign_a intelligence_n so_o that_o it_o appear_v that_o in_o case_n thing_n go_v on_o a_o war_n will_v arise_v dangerous_a for_o both_o party_n and_o whatsoever_o the_o issue_n be_v pernicious_a for_o germany_n wherefore_o he_o be_v willing_a that_o some_o prince_n shall_v interpose_v and_o find_v out_o a_o way_n of_o agreement_n to_o this_o end_n many_o head_n and_o condition_n of_o composition_n be_v negotiate_v all_o this_o year_n 1531_o and_o to_o give_v they_o some_o conclusion_n a_o diet_n at_o ratisbon_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o next_o year_n in_o the_o mean_a space_n all_o thing_n remain_v full_a of_o suspicion_n and_o the_o slay_v zuinglius_fw-la take_v arm_n and_o be_v slay_v diffidence_n between_o the_o one_o part_n and_o the_o other_o rather_o increase_v and_o this_o year_n also_o there_o happen_v a_o notable_a event_n among_o the_o swiss_n which_o compose_v the_o dispute_n between_o they_o for_o though_o the_o
to_o hinder_v the_o desolation_n of_o germany_n and_o that_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o a_o council_n be_v willing_o to_o run_v into_o a_o civil_a war_n in_o the_o second_o place_n the_o king_n treat_v with_o they_o that_o they_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o council_n in_o italy_n but_o neither_o do_v the_o german_n agree_v unto_o this_o for_o they_o say_v that_o this_o match_n be_v worse_a than_o the_o first_o because_o that_o constrain_v they_o only_o to_o make_v war_n but_o this_o cast_v they_o into_o a_o servitude_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n whereunto_o resistance_n can_v not_o be_v make_v but_o by_o a_o council_n in_o a_o free_a place_n yet_o condescend_v for_o his_o majesty_n sake_n to_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v able_a they_o will_v cease_v to_o demand_v to_o have_v it_o celebrate_v in_o germany_n so_o that_o another_o free_a place_n be_v appoint_v out_o of_o italy_n though_o it_o be_v near_o unto_o it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n 1534._o the_o king_n give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n 1534_o 1534_o of_o what_o he_o have_v do_v and_o offer_v to_o bring_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v be_v content_v with_o geneva_n the_o pope_n have_v receive_v the_o advice_n council_n the_o pope_n be_v displease_v with_o the_o propose_v of_o geneva_n for_o the_o 〈◊〉_d place_n of_o the_o council_n be_v uncertain_a whether_o the_o king_n though_o his_o confederate_a and_o kinsman_n will_v be_v glad_a to_o see_v he_o in_o trouble_n or_o if_o in_o this_o particular_a he_o want_v that_o discretion_n which_o he_o show_v in_o other_o affair_n but_o he_o conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o good_a to_o use_v he_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o write_v unto_o he_o thank_v he_o for_o his_o pain_n without_o answer_v to_o the_o particular_a of_o geneva_n and_o he_o encourage_v many_o of_o the_o courtier_n who_o mind_n be_v trouble_v assure_v they_o that_o by_o no_o mean_n he_o will_v consent_v to_o such_o a_o folly_n but_o this_o year_n the_o pope_n in_o stead_n of_o regain_n germany_n lose_v the_o obedience_n england_n he_o lose_v the_o obedience_n of_o england_n of_o england_n by_o proceed_v rather_o with_o choler_n and_o passion_n then_o with_o wisdom_n necessary_a in_o so_o great_a negotiation_n the_o accident_n be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o great_a consequence_n which_o to_o declare_v distinct_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o begin_v from_o the_o first_o cause_n whence_o it_o have_v its_o original_n catherine_n infanta_n of_o spain_n sister_n to_o the_o mother_n of_o charles_n the_o emperor_n be_v marry_v to_o henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n and_o be_v before_o the_o wife_n of_o arthure_n prince_n of_o wall_n henry_n elder_a brother_n after_o who_o death_n their_o father_n give_v she_o in_o marriage_n to_o henry_n who_o remain_v successor_n by_o the_o dispensation_n cause_n the_o cause_n of_o pope_n julio_n the_o second_o this_o queen_n be_v with_o child_n often_o and_o always_o either_o miscarry_v or_o bring_v forth_o a_o creature_n of_o a_o short_a life_n except_o one_o only_a daughter_n king_n henry_n either_o for_o displeasure_n against_o the_o emperor_n or_o for_o desire_n of_o issue_n male_a or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n conceive_v a_o scruple_n in_o his_o mind_n that_o the_o marriage_n be_v not_o good_a and_o take_v counsel_n of_o his_o bishop_n separate_v himself_o from_o her_o company_n the_o bishop_n treat_v with_o the_o queen_n that_o she_o will_v be_v content_v with_o a_o divorce_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n be_v neither_o good_a nor_o true_a the_o queen_n will_v not_o give_v ear_n to_o they_o but_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o the_o king_n also_o send_v to_o crave_v a_o divorce_n the_o pope_n who_o be_v still_o retire_v in_o oruieto_fw-la and_o hope_v for_o good_a condition_n in_o his_o affair_n if_o the_o favour_n of_o france_n and_o england_n which_o still_o they_o perform_v be_v continue_v by_o molest_v the_o emperor_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n send_v into_o england_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n delegate_a the_o cause_n unto_o he_o and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o york_n from_o these_o and_o from_o rome_n the_o king_n have_v hope_n give_v he_o that_o in_o the_o end_n the_o sentence_n shall_v be_v on_o his_o side_n yea_o to_o facilitate_v divorce_n the_o cardinal_n campeggio_n and_o wolsie_n be_v delegated_a by_o the_o pope_n to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o king_n divorce_n the_o resolution_n that_o the_o solemnity_n of_o the_o judgement_n may_v not_o draw_v the_o cause_n in_o length_n a_o brief_a be_v frame_v in_o which_o he_o be_v declare_v free_a from_o that_o marriage_n with_o the_o most_o ample_a clause_n that_o ever_o be_v put_v into_o any_o pope_n bull_n and_o a_o cardinal_n send_v into_o england_n with_o order_n to_o present_v it_o after_o some_o few_o proof_n be_v pass_v which_o he_o be_v sure_a will_v easy_o be_v make_v and_o burn_v the_o pope_n cause_v his_o brief_n which_o he_o have_v make_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o divorce_n to_o be_v burn_v this_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1524._o but_o clement_n judge_v it_o fit_a for_o compass_v his_o design_n upon_o florence_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n to_o join_v himself_o with_o the_o emperor_n then_o to_o continue_v in_o the_o friendship_n of_o france_n and_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1529._o he_o send_v francis_n campana_n unto_o campeggio_n with_o order_n to_o burn_v the_o brief_a and_o to_o proceed_v slow_o in_o the_o cause_n campeggio_n begin_v first_o to_o draw_v the_o cause_n in_o length_n and_o after_o to_o make_v difficulty_n of_o perform_v the_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o king_n whereby_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o judge_n and_o his_o adversary_n do_v collude_v he_o send_v to_o the_o university_n of_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n for_o a_o consultation_n in_o his_o cause_n where_o among_o divorce_n a_o consultation_n about_o the_o cause_n of_o divorce_n the_o divine_n some_o be_v contrary_a and_o some_o favourable_a to_o his_o pretention_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o parisian_n be_v on_o his_o side_n and_o some_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n gift_n more_o persuade_v they_o than_o reason_n but_o the_o pope_n either_o to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n or_o for_o fear_n that_o in_o england_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o york_n something_o may_v happen_v not_o according_a campeggio_n the_o pope_n to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n recall_v campeggio_n to_o his_o mind_n as_o also_o to_o give_v occasion_n to_o campeggio_n to_o part_v from_o thence_o call_v the_o cause_n to_o himself_o the_o king_n impatient_a of_o delay_n either_o because_o he_o know_v their_o cunning_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n publish_v the_o divorce_n with_o his_o wife_n and_z matryed_z anne_z bullen_z in_o the_o year_n 1533._o yet_o still_o the_o cause_n depend_v before_o the_o pope_n in_o which_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o proceed_v slow_o to_o bulle●_n the_o king_n in_o 〈…〉_o yes_o 〈◊〉_d bulle●_n satisfy_v the_o emperor_n and_o not_o offend_v the_o king_n therefore_o some_o by_o point_n rather_o be_v handle_v than_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o disputation_n grow_v upon_o the_o article_n of_o the_o attentat_n in_o which_o the_o pope_n give_v sentence_n against_o the_o king_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o he_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n without_o the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n to_o separate_v himself_o from_o his_o wife_n for_o which_o cause_n the_o king_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o year_n 1534_o deny_v the_o pope_n obedience_n command_v all_o his_o subject_n not_o to_o carry_v any_o money_n to_o rome_n pope_n the_o king_n cause_v the_o peter-pence_n to_o be_v deny_v the_o pope_n nor_o to_o pay_v the_o ordinary_a peter-pence_n this_o infinite_o trouble_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o daily_o they_o consult_v of_o a_o remedy_n they_o think_v to_o proceed_v against_o the_o king_n with_o censure_n and_o to_o interdict_v all_o christian_a nation_n all_o commerce_n with_o england_n but_o the_o moderate_a counsel_n please_v best_a to_o temporize_v with_o he_o and_o to_o mediate_v a_o composition_n by_o the_o french_a king_n king_n francis_n accept_v the_o charge_n and_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n to_o rome_n to_o negotiate_v a_o pacification_n with_o the_o pope_n where_o they_o still_o proceed_v in_o the_o cause_n but_o gentle_o and_o with_o resolution_n not_o to_o come_v to_o censure_n if_o the_o emperor_n do_v not_o proceed_v first_o or_o at_o the_o same_o time_n with_o his_o force_n they_o have_v divide_v the_o cause_n into_o three_o and_o twenty_o article_n and_o then_o they_o handle_v whether_o prince_n arthure_n have_v have_v carnal_a conjunction_n with_o queen_n catherine_n in_o this_o they_o spend_v time_n until_o midlent_a be_v pass_v when_o the_o nineteenth_o of_o march_n news_n come_v that_o a_o
without_o his_o knowledge_n with_o point_n prejudicial_a to_o his_o authority_n put_v into_o his_o head_n he_o set_v forth_o a_o bull_n in_o which_o he_o invite_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o rejoice_v for_o the_o peace_n by_o which_o the_o only_a impediment_n of_o the_o council_n be_v remoove_v which_o he_o establish_v again_o in_o trent_n give_v order_n it_o shall_v begin_v the_o 15._o of_o march_n he_o see_v the_o term_n be_v straight_o and_o not_o sufficient_a to_o give_v notice_n throughout_o much_o less_o to_o give_v the_o prelate_n space_n to_o put_v themselves_o in_o order_n and_o make_v the_o journey_n yet_o he_o think_v it_o advantage_n that_o in_o case_n it_o be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v it_o shall_v begin_v with_o few_o and_o those_o italian_n courtier_n and_o his_o dependent_n who_o he_o have_v solicit_v to_o be_v there_o first_o because_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v in_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v handle_v in_o the_o beginning_n council_n the_o pope_n bull_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a yea_o the_o only_a thing_n to_o preserve_v the_o pontifical_a authority_n unto_o who_o determination_n they_o who_o daily_o arrive_v will_v be_v constrain_v to_o stand_v that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o a_o general_a council_n shall_v begin_v with_o a_o few_o for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o that_o of_o pisa_n and_o constance_n which_o nevertheless_o have_v a_o happy_a progress_n and_o have_v penetrate_v the_o true_a cause_n of_o make_v the_o peace_n he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o have_v use_v prevention_n and_o celerity_n to_o intimate_v the_o council_n to_o do_v he_o service_n for_o know_v that_o his_o majesty_n be_v constrain_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o french_a war_n to_o permit_v and_o promise_v many_o thing_n to_o the_o protestant_n by_o intimate_v the_o council_n he_o have_v now_o give_v he_o a_o mean_n to_o excuse_v himself_o in_o the_o diet_n which_o be_v to_o be_v in_o september_n if_o the_o council_n approach_v he_o perform_v not_o what_o he_o have_v promise_v to_o grant_v until_o the_o council_n but_o the_o pope_n hastiness_n please_v not_o the_o emperor_n nor_o the_o reason_n give_v he_o satisfaction_n he_o desire_v for_o his_o reputation_n to_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n council_n the_o emperor_n be_v displease_v with_o the_o sudden_a intimation_n of_o the_o council_n to_o make_v germany_n accept_v the_o council_n more_o easy_o and_o for_o many_o other_o respect_n and_o therefore_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o else_o he_o use_v all_o those_o term_n which_o may_v show_v himself_o to_o be_v the_o author_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o adherent_a he_o send_v ambassador_n to_o all_o prince_n to_o signify_v the_o intimation_n and_o to_o pray_v they_o to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o honour_v the_o meeting_n and_o to_o confirm_v the_o decree_n which_o shall_v there_o be_v make_v and_o he_o set_v himself_o to_o make_v serious_a preparation_n as_o if_o the_o enterprise_n have_v be_v his_o own_o he_o give_v diverse_a order_n to_o the_o prelate_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o low_a country_n and_o command_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o divine_n of_o louvain_n shall_v assemble_v themselves_o together_o to_o consider_v of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v to_o be_v propose_v which_o louvain_n 33._o point_n of_o doctrine_n collect_v by_o the_o divine_n of_o louvain_n they_o reduce_v to_o three_o and_o thirty_o head_n without_o confirm_v they_o by_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n but_o explicate_v magisterial_o the_o conclusion_n only_o these_o head_n be_v after_o confirm_v by_o the_o emperor_n edict_n &_o publish_v with_o command_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v defend_v and_o follow_v by_o all_o and_o the_o emperor_n pope_n the_o emperor_n show_v his_o distaste_n against_o the_o pope_n conceal_v not_o his_o distaste_n against_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o nuncio_n as_o well_o upon_o that_o occasion_n as_o in_o other_o audience_n yea_o the_o pope_n have_v create_v thirteen_o cardinal_n in_o december_n among_o which_o be_v three_o spaniard_n he_o forbid_v they_o to_o accept_v the_o arm_n or_o use_v the_o name_n or_o habit_n the_o french_a king_n also_o assemble_v at_o melun_n the_o parisian_a divine_n to_o consult_v of_o the_o necessary_a position_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n to_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o council_n where_o there_o be_v much_o contention_n for_o some_o desire_v to_o propose_v the_o confirmation_n of_o whatsoever_o be_v constitute_v in_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o the_o reestablishment_n of_o the_o pragmatical_a law_n and_o other_o doubt_v that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v offend_v by_o destroy_v the_o concordate_n make_v between_o he_o and_o leo_n which_o will_v necessary_o follow_v give_v counsel_n not_o to_o set_v that_o disputation_n on_o foot_n and_o afterward_o because_o there_o be_v diverse_a opinion_n in_o that_o school_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o which_o some_o give_v effective_a ministerial_a virtue_n and_o other_o not_o every_o one_o desire_v that_o his_o opinion_n shall_v be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n nothing_o can_v be_v conclude_v but_o that_o they_o shall_v keep_v themselves_o within_o compass_n of_o the_o five_o and_o twenty_o head_n publish_v two_o year_n before_o but_o the_o pope_n signify_v to_o the_o french_a king_n how_o little_a good_a will_v the_o emperor_n bear_v he_o desire_v he_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o council_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v and_o charge_v his_o nuncio_n reside_v with_o the_o emperor_n that_o attend_v all_o occasion_n when_o the_o protestant_n give_v he_o any_o distaste_n he_o shall_v offer_v all_o assistance_n from_o he_o to_o recover_v the_o imperial_a authority_n with_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a aid_n whereof_o the_o nuncio_n have_v have_v too_o many_o occasion_n he_o so_o wrought_v that_o pope_n the_o emperor_n be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o emperor_n find_v he_o may_v have_v need_n of_o the_o pope_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o way_n remit_v his_o rigiditie_n and_o he_o give_v a_o argument_n thereof_o by_o grant_v the_o new_a cardinal_n leave_v to_o assume_v the_o name_n and_o arm_n and_o by_o give_v the_o nuncio_n more_o grateful_a audience_n and_o by_o confer_v with_o he_o of_o the_o affair_n of_o germany_n more_o than_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v the_o pope_n make_v great_a haste_n not_o only_o to_o call_v the_o council_n but_o to_o dispatch_v trent_n the_o pope_n dispatch_v the_o legate_n to_o trent_n the_o legate_n who_o he_o charge_v that_o for_o maintenance_n of_o their_o dignity_n they_o shall_v not_o first_o send_v some_o substitute_n to_o receive_v the_o first_o prelate_n as_o some_o advise_v that_o afterward_o they_o may_v make_v their_o entry_n with_o meeting_n and_o ceremony_n but_o will_v have_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o to_o be_v there_o before_o the_o time_n he_o depute_v for_o his_o legate_n john_n maria_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr a_o bishop_n cardinal_n of_o palestrina_n marcellus_n ceruinus_fw-la priest_n of_o the_o holy_a cross_n and_o reginald_n poole_n deacon_n of_o s._n mary_n in_o cosmedin_n in_o this_o man_n he_o choose_v nobility_n of_o blood_n and_o opinion_n of_o piety_n which_o common_o be_v have_v of_o he_o and_o the_o rather_o for_o that_o he_o be_v a_o english_a man_n to_o show_v that_o all_o england_n do_v not_o rebel_v in_o marcellus_n constancy_n and_o immovable_a and_o undaunted_a perseverance_n together_o with_o exquisite_a knowledge_n in_o monte_n reallitie_n and_o openness_n of_o mind_n join_v with_o such_o fidelity_n to_o his_o patron_n that_o he_o can_v not_o prefer_v their_o interest_n before_o the_o safety_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n these_o he_o dispatch_v with_o a_o brief_a of_o legation_n without_o give_v they_o as_o the_o custom_n be_v a_o bull_n of_o faculty_n or_o any_o instruction_n in_o writing_n be_v uncertain_a as_o yet_o what_o commission_n instruction_n he_o give_v they_o no_o instruction_n to_o give_v they_o mean_v to_o govern_v himself_o as_o the_o success_n and_o the_o emperor_n proceed_v shall_v counsel_v he_o so_o he_o make_v they_o depart_v with_o the_o brief_a only_o but_o beside_o the_o care_n the_o pope_n have_v for_o the_o affair_n of_o trent_n another_o of_o no_o less_o moment_n trouble_v his_o mind_n concern_v the_o diet_n to_o be_v celebrate_v in_o worm_n where_o he_o think_v the_o emperor_n will_v not_o be_v present_a and_o doubt_v emperor_n cardinal_n pernese_n be_v send_v to_o the_o diet_n of_o worm_n and_o to_o the_o emperor_n that_o be_v provoke_v by_o the_o letter_n write_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v underhand_o cause_v some_o decree_n to_o be_v make_v more_o prejudicial_a to_o his_o affair_n then_o the_o former_a or_o at_o the_o least_o give_v way_n unto_o it_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o have_v in_o that_o place_n a_o minister_n of_o authority_n
themselves_o with_o spiritual_a weapon_n and_o that_o their_o diligence_n may_v have_v both_o beginning_n and_o progress_n from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n it_o determine_v to_o begin_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n imitate_v the_o example_n of_o the_o father_n who_o in_o the_o principal_a counsel_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o action_n have_v oppose_v that_o buckler_n against_o the_o heresy_n and_o sometime_o have_v convert_v the_o infidel_n &_o overcome_v the_o heretic_n with_o that_o alone_a in_o which_o all_o that_o profess_v christianity_n do_v agree_v and_o here_o the_o whole_a be_v repeat_v word_n by_o word_n without_o add_v any_o other_o conclusion_n and_o the_o archbishop_n ask_v the_o father_n whether_o the_o decree_n please_v they_o all_o answer_v affirmative_o b_o 〈…〉_o some_o with_o condition_n and_o addition_n of_o no_o great_a moment_n yet_o such_o as_o displease_v the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n who_o like_v not_o they_o shall_v descend_v to_o particular_n in_o the_o session_n fear_v that_o when_o some_o matter_n of_o weight_n be_v to_o be_v session_n the_o eight_o of_o april_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o next_o session_n treat_v of_o some_o inconvenience_n may_v arise_v afterward_o the_o other_o decree_n be_v read_v intimate_v the_o session_n for_o the_o eight_o of_o april_n allege_v for_o a_o cause_n of_o the_o delay_n that_o many_o prelate_n be_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o come_v and_o some_o be_v in_o the_o journey_n and_o for_o that_o the_o deliberation_n of_o the_o synod_n will_v be_v more_o esteem_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v strengthen_v by_o the_o counsel_n and_o presence_n of_o of_o more_o father_n yet_o so_o as_o that_o they_o will_v not_o defer_v the_o discussion_n and_o examination_n of_o what_o seem_v fit_a to_o be_v handle_v present_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n who_o stand_v all_o amaze_v at_o the_o very_a name_n of_o reformation_n be_v well_o please_v to_o hear_v that_o the_o council_n entertain_v itself_o in_o preamble_n hope_v that_o time_n will_v bring_v forth_o some_o remedy_n and_o the_o courtier_n that_o have_v intemperate_a tongue_n exercise_v their_o gibe_a publish_v diverse_a bitter_a pasquin_n as_o then_o the_o custom_n be_v in_o all_o accident_n some_o commend_v session_n pasquins_n make_v against_o the_o session_n the_o prelate_n assemble_v in_o trent_n for_o make_v a_o most_o noble_a decree_n worthy_a of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o some_o exhort_v they_o to_o understand_v their_o own_o worth_n and_o knowledge_n the_o legate_n in_o give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n of_o the_o session_n hold_v send_v also_o advice_n that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o oppose_v and_o overcome_v those_o who_o desire_v to_o finish_v session_n the_o legate_n give_v the_o pope_n a_o account_n of_o the_o session_n the_o title_n with_o the_o representation_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a yet_o they_o will_v endeavour_v to_o remove_v the_o difficulty_n but_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o entertain_v the_o prelate_n any_o more_o without_o come_v to_o and_o do_v some_o essential_a matter_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o expect_v the_o order_n and_o instruction_n which_o they_o so_o often_o have_v demand_v that_o for_o their_o part_n they_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o handle_v those_o point_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o the_o lutheran_n and_o the_o abuse_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n in_o that_o matter_n which_o thing_n will_v much_o satisfy_v the_o world_n and_o offend_v no_o man_n and_o they_o will_v expect_v a_o answer_n for_o this_o there_o be_v space_n enough_o to_o examine_v those_o matter_n and_o many_o occasion_n to_o drive_v out_o the_o time_n until_o the_o beginning_n of_o lent_n but_o though_o the_o council_n be_v then_o open_v and_o still_o celebrate_v the_o affair_n of_o germany_n continue_v the_o same_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n the_o elector_n religion_n the_o affair_n of_o germany_n continue_v the_o same_o and_o the_o palatine_n embrace_v the_o reform_a religion_n palatine_n bring_v in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o chalice_n the_o popular_a tongue_n in_o public_a prayer_n the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v reform_v before_o in_o other_o place_n and_o those_o that_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o meeting_n to_o find_v out_o a_o way_n to_o compose_v the_o difference_n of_o religion_n meet_v together_o at_o a_o colloquy_n in_o ratisbon_n the_o emperor_n depute_v for_o precedent_n the_o bishop_n of_o eicstat_n and_o the_o conte_n of_o furstemberg_n but_o no_o good_a fruit_n grow_v thereof_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o suspicion_n which_o one_o part_n conceive_v against_o the_o other_o and_o because_o the_o catholic_n omit_v no_o occasion_n to_o give_v great_a jealousy_n to_o the_o other_o side_n and_o to_o feign_v they_o of_o their_o own_o which_o final_o make_v the_o colloquy_n to_o dissolve_v the_o fifteen_o of_o february_n martin_n luther_n die_v also_o these_o news_n be_v die_v martin_n luther_n die_v send_v to_o trent_n and_o rome_n there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o grief_n for_o the_o change_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o palatinate_n as_o joy_v that_o the_o colloquy_n succeed_v not_o well_o but_o tend_v fruit_n the_o romanist_n rejoice_v at_o his_o death_n and_o at_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o colloquy_n without_o fruit_n to_o dissolution_n and_o that_o luther_n be_v dead_a the_o colloquy_n seem_v another_o council_n and_o give_v great_a jealousy_n because_o if_o any_o thing_n have_v be_v accord_v they_o see_v not_o how_o the_o council_n can_v after_o reject_v it_o and_z if_o it_o have_v be_v accept_v it_o will_v seem_v that_o the_o council_n receive_v law_n from_o another_o place_n and_o by_o all_o mean_v the_o colloquy_n be_v on_o foot_n and_o the_o emperor_n minister_n there_o present_a it_o bring_v small_a reputation_n to_o the_o council_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o father_n in_o trent_n and_o the_o court_n in_o rome_n conceive_v great_a hope_n see_v that_o so_o potent_a a_o instrument_n to_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n and_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v dead_a who_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o almost_o the_o total_a cause_n of_o the_o division_n and_o innovation_n introduce_v and_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o presage_n of_o the_o good_a success_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o that_o death_n be_v diwlge_v throughout_o italy_n with_o many_o prodigious_a and_o fabulous_a circumstance_n which_o be_v ascribe_v to_o miracle_n and_o the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n though_o there_o be_v but_o the_o usual_a accident_n which_o do_v ordinary_o happen_v in_o the_o death_n of_o man_n of_o sixty_o three_o year_n of_o age_n for_o in_o that_o age_n martin_n luther_n death_n fable_n raise_v upon_o luther_n death_n die_v but_o those_o thing_n that_o happen_v afterward_o even_o until_o our_o age_n have_v declare_v that_o martin_n be_v only_o one_o of_o the_o mean_n and_o that_o the_o cause_n be_v more_o potent_a and_o secret_a the_o emperor_n be_v arrive_v in_o ratisbon_n complain_v grievous_o that_o at_o the_o emperor_n letter_n concern_v the_o colloquy_n be_v laugh_v at_o the_o colloquy_n be_v dissolve_v and_o write_v letter_n thereof_o throughout_o all_o germany_n which_o be_v laugh_v at_o because_o it_o be_v too_o much_o know_v that_o the_o separation_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spaniard_n and_o friar_n and_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o eicstat_n who_o he_o have_v send_v and_o when_o the_o workman_n be_v know_v it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o judge_v whence_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o motion_n do_v proceed_v but_o the_o wise_a emperor_n be_v willing_a to_o use_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o satisfy_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n and_o to_o find_v a_o occasion_n against_o the_o protestant_n which_o the_o event_n show_v to_o be_v true_a for_o the_o same_o complaint_n be_v renew_v in_o the_o diet_n and_o mean_n of_o agreement_n be_v seek_v by_o those_o that_o be_v assemble_v the_o minister_n of_o mentz_n and_o trier_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o other_o elector_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o other_o bishop_n approve_v the_o council_n and_o desire_v the_o emperor_n to_o protect_v it_o and_o to_o cause_v the_o protestant_n to_o be_v there_o and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o it_o but_o they_o do_v resist_v and_o remonstrate_v that_o that_o council_n have_v not_o those_o quality_n and_o condition_n so_o often_o promise_v and_o desire_v that_o the_o peace_n may_v be_v keep_v and_o the_o difference_n in_o religion_n accord_v in_o a_o lawful_a council_n in_o germany_n or_o in_o a_o imperial_a diet._n but_o in_o the_o end_n the_o mask_n know_v the_o provision_n for_o war_n be_v know_v be_v remoove_v and_o the_o provision_n for_o war_n can_v no_o long_o be_v hide_v whereof_o mention_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o its_o proper_a place_n the_o pope_n consider_v very_o much_o of_o the_o
counsel_n &_o in_o meddle_v with_o the_o privilege_n grant_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v not_o only_o for_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o interest_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o also_o because_o the_o imperialist_n do_v endeavour_v to_o make_v a_o difference_n to_o hinder_v the_o propose_v of_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n neither_o be_v this_o temporize_a ungrateful_a to_o the_o legate_n who_o be_v resolute_a if_o they_o be_v not_o forbid_v in_o the_o answer_n which_o they_o expect_v from_o rome_n to_o propose_v the_o doctrine_n and_o as_o their_o inward_a friend_n say_v to_o clear_v themselves_o afterward_o of_o whatsoever_o shall_v ensue_v but_o to_o make_v some_o end_n of_o the_o thing_n handle_v they_o cause_v a_o brief_a of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o divine_n and_o canonist_n deliver_v in_o diverse_a precede_a congregation_n to_o be_v read_v say_v that_o in_o regard_n the_o voice_n be_v long_o they_o have_v collect_v the_o sum_n of_o they_o that_o they_o may_v examine_v they_o and_o speak_v their_o opinion_n thereon_o but_o bracius_fw-la martellus_n bishop_n of_o fiesole_n hear_v the_o extract_n read_v oppose_v it_o in_o a_o continue_a speech_n and_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o legate_n the_o bishop_n of_o fiesole_n oppose_v the_o legate_n general_a congregation_n shall_v know_v the_o voice_n and_o reason_n of_o all_o without_o read_v collection_n and_o sum_n and_o enlarge_a himself_o by_o amplify_a the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n &_o the_o necessity_n to_o inform_v it_o well_o &_o the_o small_a conveniency_n that_o some_o few_o shall_v be_v judge_n of_o the_o determination_n or_o that_o the_o resolution_n shall_v come_v from_o any_o other_o place_n whereat_o the_o legate_n be_v much_o offend_v and_o reprehend_v the_o bishop_n with_o affect_a modesty_n but_o bite_o enough_o and_o so_o the_o congregation_n break_v up_o the_o next_o day_n the_o legate_n send_v to_o the_o b._n to_o demand_v a_o copy_n of_o his_o discourse_n and_o send_v it_o to_o rome_n tax_v it_o as_o irreverent_a and_o seditious_a add_v that_o they_o have_v modest_o and_o severe_o reprehend_v he_o and_o will_v have_v go_v further_o chioza_n who_o complain_v to_o the_o pope_n both_o of_o he_o and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o chioza_n because_o he_o deserve_v no_o less_o but_o that_o they_o fear_v to_o move_v some_o unseasonable_a dispute_n which_o may_v make_v a_o rent_n but_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o escape_v unpunished_a lest_o he_o shall_v be_v embolden_v to_o do_v the_o like_a in_o every_o congregation_n or_o worse_o represent_v to_o his_o holiness_n that_o by_o all_o mean_v he_o shall_v be_v chase_v out_o of_o trent_n and_o order_n take_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o chioza_n not_o much_o unlike_a unto_o he_o though_o in_o another_o course_n shall_v never_o return_v this_o bishop_n part_v immediate_o after_o the_o session_n upon_o pretence_n of_o indisposition_n but_o in_o truth_n by_o reason_n of_o word_n which_o pass_v between_o he_o and_o cardinal_n poole_n in_o congregation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o tradition_n for_o have_v speak_v in_o defence_n of_o friar_n antonius_n marinarus_n and_o thereupon_o contest_v with_o the_o cardinal_n and_o so_o have_v complain_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a he_o see_v he_o be_v not_o in_o the_o legate_n favour_n and_o obnoxious_a to_o danger_n the_o legate_n not_o content_a with_o what_o they_o have_v do_v to_o mortify_v the_o bishop_n of_o fiesole_n and_o to_o keep_v the_o matter_n entire_a until_o there_o come_v advise_v from_o rome_n that_o they_o may_v go_v on_o with_o it_o or_o dissemble_v as_o they_o shall_v be_v command_v in_o the_o next_o congregation_n monte_n give_v he_o a_o nip_n by_o the_o way_n and_o conclude_v that_o he_o leave_v he_o then_o to_o consider_v of_o his_o own_o affair_n because_o himself_o be_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o matter_n of_o great_a importance_n the_o pope_n answer_v concern_v the_o two_o bishop_n that_o he_o will_v give_v a_o remedy_n in_o time_n convenient_a but_o for_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v handle_v he_o say_v that_o legate_n the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o legate_n if_o they_o regard_v the_o desire_n of_o prince_n they_o will_v make_v the_o council_n more_o tumultuous_a and_o the_o resolution_n more_o long_a and_o hard_o because_o every_o one_o seek_v to_o cross_v what_o like_v he_o not_o and_o by_o put_v difficulty_n in_o one_o thing_n to_o promote_v another_o therefore_o that_o without_o any_o more_o to_o do_v they_o shall_v begin_v with_o original_a sin_n advise_v they_o to_o omit_v the_o excuse_n which_o they_o purpose_v to_o use_v to_o d._n francis_n that_o be_v that_o the_o article_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v not_o question_v in_o germany_n but_o shall_v rather_o use_v general_a term_n and_o all_o reverence_n to_o the_o emperor_n he_o further_o command_v they_o that_o concern_v the_o correction_n of_o the_o rome_n the_o council_n in_o tr_z 〈…〉_o be_v govern_v by_o cert_n 〈…〉_o ne_o 〈…〉_o pu●tes_fw-gr 〈◊〉_d rome_n vulgar_a edition_n they_o shall_v proceed_v no_o further_o until_o the_o deputy_n over_o the_o council_n in_o rome_n have_v determine_v what_o course_n shall_v be_v hold_v the_o legate_n resolve_v for_o execution_n of_o those_o order_n to_o propose_v original_a sin_n make_v a_o congregation_n two_o day_n together_o to_o determine_v of_o the_o two_o head_n of_o read_v and_o preach_v before_o they_o publish_v their_o purpose_n to_o handle_v matter_n of_o faith_n lest_o those_o two_o point_n be_v undecided_a may_v cause_v the_o imperialist_n to_o dinert_v from_o this_o and_o they_o cause_v the_o deputy_n for_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n to_o bring_v to_o they_o all_o they_o have_v do_v charge_v they_o to_o proceed_v no_o further_o until_o they_o have_v receive_v new_a order_n such_o be_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n depend_v on_o the_o pope_n in_o leave_v of_o thing_n begin_v and_o begin_v new_a in_o treat_v of_o the_o lecture_n and_o sermon_n there_o be_v a_o general_a complaint_n of_o the_o bishop_n especial_o spanish_a that_o christ_n have_v command_v that_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v teach_v which_o be_v exercise_v in_o the_o church_n by_o preach_v and_o read_v to_o the_o more_o capacious_a that_o they_o may_v be_v fit_a to_o teach_v the_o people_n the_o care_n to_o superintend_v over_o all_o that_o exercise_v these_o function_n aught_o to_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o bishop_n that_o the_o apostle_n have_v so_o institute_v and_o the_o holy_a father_n so_o practise_v that_o now_o this_o office_n be_v absolute_o take_v from_o the_o bishop_n by_o order_n a_o complaint_n against_o the_o regular_a order_n privilege_n so_o that_o no_o jot_n thereof_o remain_v that_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o all_o be_v out_o of_o order_n because_o the_o order_n institute_v by_o christ_n be_v change_v the_o university_n be_v withdraw_v with_o exemption_n that_o the_o bishop_n can_v know_v what_o they_o teach_v the_o sermon_n be_v by_o privilege_n give_v to_o the_o friar_n who_o by_o no_o mean_n acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n nor_o suffer_v he_o to_o meddle_v so_o that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v quite_o take_v from_o the_o bishop_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a those_o who_o ancient_o be_v appoint_v to_o weep_v for_o sin_n and_o express_o and_o severe_o forbid_v to_o preach_v and_o teach_v have_v assume_v this_o power_n unto_o they_o or_o at_o the_o least_o it_o be_v give_v they_o for_o their_o proper_a function_n and_o so_o the_o flock_n remain_v without_o either_o shepherd_n or_o hireling_n because_o these_o ambulatorie_a preacher_n who_o to_o day_n be_v in_o one_o city_n to_o morrow_n in_o another_o know_v neither_o the_o need_n nor_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o people_n and_o least_o of_o all_o the_o occasion_n to_o teach_v and_o edify_v they_o as_o do_v the_o proper_a pastor_n who_o live_v always_o with_o the_o flock_n and_o know_v the_o necessity_n and_o infirmity_n of_o it_o beside_o the_o end_n of_o those_o preacher_n be_v not_o to_o edify_v but_o to_o take_v alm_n either_o for_o themselves_o or_o their_o cloister_n which_o that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o obtain_v they_o aim_v not_o to_o benefit_v the_o soul_n but_o to_o delight_v the_o care_n and_o soothe_v man_n in_o their_o pleasure_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v draw_v more_o profit_n and_o the_o people_n in_o stead_n of_o learning_n the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n learn_v either_o novitie_n or_o vanity_n at_o the_o least_o luther_n be_v one_o of_o these_o who_o if_o he_o have_v remain_v weep_v in_o his_o cell_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o stand_v in_o these_o term_n that_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o pardoner_n be_v more_o manifest_a who_o go_v about_o preach_v indulgence_n who_o scandal_n former_o give_v can_v be_v relate_v without_o tear_n that_o it_o be_v a_o clear_a case_n that_o they_o exhort_v
shall_v be_v fit_v to_o the_o exigence_n of_o the_o text_n read_v and_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o auditor_n after_o many_o discourse_n in_o many_o congregation_n they_o come_v to_o establish_v the_o decree_n for_o the_o sermon_n and_o to_o overcome_v the_o difficulty_n they_o cause_v the_o prelate_n who_o be_v their_o assure_a friend_n to_o negotiate_v with_o the_o italian_a bishop_n wish_v they_o to_o consider_v how_o much_o they_o be_v bind_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o nation_n to_o uphold_v the_o dignity_n of_o the_o papacy_n who_o authority_n be_v treat_v of_o by_o meddle_v with_o the_o privilege_n and_o what_o they_o may_v hope_v for_o from_o the_o pope_n and_o legates_n apply_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o not_o deprive_v the_o friar_n of_o that_o they_o have_v enjoy_v so_o long_o that_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o despise_v so_o many_o learned_a man_n now_o when_o heresy_n do_v trouble_v the_o church_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n shall_v be_v enlarge_v by_o grant_v they_o power_n to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v the_o preacher_n when_o they_o preach_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o their_o order_n and_o when_o they_o preach_v in_o they_o by_o make_v they_o acknowledge_v the_o prelate_n first_o ask_v his_o benediction_n that_o the_o bishop_n may_v punish_v the_o preacher_n for_o heresy_n &_o forbid_v they_o to_o preach_v to_o avoid_v scandal_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v content_v with_o this_o and_o that_o other_o thing_n shall_v be_v add_v as_o occasion_v serve_v by_o this_o mean_n they_o gain_v so_o many_o that_o they_o be_v secure_a to_o establish_v the_o decree_n with_o those_o condition_n but_o there_o remain_v another_o difficulty_n because_o the_o friar_n and_o general_n be_v not_o satisfy_v and_o to_o distaste_v they_o be_v not_o secure_a and_o express_o forbid_v by_o the_o pope_n they_o endeavour_v to_o show_v they_o that_o the_o grant_v make_v to_o the_o bishop_n be_v just_a and_o necessary_a whereof_o themselves_o be_v cause_n by_o extend_v their_o privilege_n too_o much_o and_o by_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o honesty_n in_o fine_a by_o admonish_v the_o bishop_n to_o proceed_v so_o that_o the_o friar_n may_v not_o have_v cause_n to_o complain_v the_o general_n also_o be_v pacify_v when_o they_o make_v know_v their_o resolution_n to_o condemn_v in_o the_o same_o session_n the_o lutheran_n opinion_n of_o original_a sin_n they_o allege_v that_o to_o keep_v the_o order_n of_o put_v both_o the_o matter_n together_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o handle_v some_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o can_v not_o begin_v from_o any_o other_o point_n and_o they_o propose_v the_o article_n extract_v out_o of_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n in_o that_o matter_n to_o be_v examine_v and_o discuss_v by_o the_o divine_n in_o the_o congregation_n whether_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretical_a the_o cardinal_n pacceco_n say_v that_o the_o council_n be_v to_o handle_v article_n of_o faith_n only_o to_o reduce_v germany_n the_o which_o he_o that_o will_v do_v out_o of_o season_n shall_v not_o only_o fail_v of_o his_o end_n but_o make_v matter_n worse_o when_o there_o be_v opportunity_n to_o do_v it_o it_o can_v be_v know_v to_o those_o in_o trent_n but_o only_o to_o he_o that_o sit_v at_o the_o stern_a of_o that_o country_n who_o see_v all_o particular_n know_v when_o to_o apply_v the_o medicine_n therefore_o he_o advise_v that_o they_o shall_v crave_v by_o letter_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o principal_a prelate_n of_o the_o nation_n before_o they_o go_v any_o further_a or_o that_o the_o pope_n nuncio_n shall_v speak_v thereof_o with_o the_o emperor_n to_o which_o opinion_n the_o emperor_n prelate_n induce_v by_o the_o ambassador_n do_v adhere_v but_o the_o legate_n commend_v their_o judgement_n and_o promise_v to_o write_v to_o the_o nuncio_n add_v that_o notwithstanding_o this_o the_o article_n may_v be_v dispute_v by_o the_o divine_n to_o gain_v time_n whereunto_o the_o cardinal_n also_o and_o the_o other_o adhered_a hope_v that_o many_o difficulty_n may_v come_v across_o to_o cause_v a_o delay_n and_o the_o ambassador_n toledo_n be_v content_v so_o that_o the_o summer_n may_v be_v pass_v before_o the_o definition_n be_v make_v the_o article_n propose_v be_v 1._o that_o adam_n by_o transgress_v the_o precept_n have_v lose_v justice_n and_o incur_v the_o discuss_v the_o point_n of_o original_a sin_n to_o be_v discuss_v wrath_n of_o god_n and_o mortality_n and_o though_o he_o be_v impair_v both_o in_o soul_n and_o body_n yet_o no_o sin_n be_v transfer_v from_o he_o to_o posterity_n but_o only_o corporal_a punishment_n 2._o that_o adam_n sin_n be_v call_v original_a because_o it_o be_v derive_v from_o he_o to_o posterity_n not_o by_o transmission_n but_o by_o imitation_n 3._o that_o original_a sin_n be_v ignorance_n or_o contempt_n of_o god_n or_o want_v of_o fear_n without_o confidence_n in_o his_o majesty_n without_o divine_a love_n and_o with_o concupiscence_n and_o bad_a desire_n and_o general_o a_o corruption_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n in_o his_o will_n soul_n and_o body_n 4._o that_o in_o child_n there_o be_v a_o inclination_n to_o evil_a proceed_v from_o the_o corrupt_a nature_n so_o that_o after_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n it_o bring_v forth_o a_o loathe_n of_o divine_a thing_n and_o a_o immersion_n in_o matter_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o this_o be_v original_a sin_n 5._o that_o child_n at_o the_o least_o bear_v of_o faithful_a parent_n though_o they_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n yet_o they_o have_v no_o sin_n by_o descend_v from_o adam_n 6._o that_o original_a sin_n be_v not_o cancel_v in_o baptism_n but_o not_o impute_v or_o so_o raze_v that_o it_o begin_v to_o diminsh_fw-mi in_o this_o life_n and_o be_v whole_o root_v out_o in_o that_o to_o come_v 7._o that_o the_o sin_n remain_v in_o the_o baptize_v hinder_v his_o entrance_n into_o heaven_n 8._o that_o concupiscence_n which_o cherish_v sin_n and_o remain_v after_o baptism_n be_v true_o sin_n 9_o that_o the_o principal_a punishment_n due_a to_o original_a sin_n be_v hell_n fire_n beside_o corporal_a death_n and_o other_o imperfection_n unto_o which_o man_n be_v subject_a in_o this_o life_n the_o divine_n in_o the_o congregation_n agree_v that_o to_o discuss_v those_o article_n it_o be_v necessary_a not_o to_o proceed_v in_o that_o order_n but_o to_o examine_v all_o the_o matter_n methodical_o and_o see_v what_o be_v sin_n in_o adam_n and_o what_o derive_v from_o he_o to_o posterity_n be_v sin_n in_o all_o man_n call_v original_a how_o it_o be_v transmit_v and_o how_o remit_v in_o the_o first_o point_n also_o they_o agree_v that_o adam_n be_v deprive_v of_o righteousness_n sin_n the_o discussion_n of_o original_a sin_n his_o affection_n rebel_v against_o reason_n which_o the_o scripture_n use_v to_o express_v say_v the_o flesh_n rebell_v against_o the_o spirit_n and_o by_o one_o only_a name_n call_v his_o defect_n concupiscence_n that_o he_o incur_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n and_o corporal_a mortality_n threaten_v by_o god_n together_o with_o the_o spiritual_a death_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o yet_o that_o none_o of_o these_o defect_n can_v be_v call_v sin_n but_o punishment_n that_o follow_v for_o sin_n be_v formal_o the_o transgression_n of_o a_o divine_a precept_n and_o here_o many_o enlarge_v themselves_o to_o find_v out_o the_o kind_n of_o this_o fault_n some_o say_v it_o be_v pride_n some_o gluttony_n some_o infidelity_n and_o some_o more_o sound_o that_o it_o may_v be_v draw_v to_o all_o these_o and_o more_o but_o he_o that_o will_v take_v s._n paul_n word_n for_o his_o ground_n can_v put_v it_o in_o no_o other_o kind_n but_o of_o pure_a disobedience_n but_o seek_v to_o know_v what_o thing_n derive_v from_o adam_n be_v sin_n in_o we_o the_o opinion_n be_v more_o diverse_a for_o s._n austin_n who_o first_o seek_v into_o the_o essence_n thereof_o follow_v s._n paul_n say_v it_o be_v concupiscence_n and_o s._n anselmus_n many_o hundred_o year_n after_o hold_v that_o sin_n be_v cancel_v in_o the_o baptize_v concupiscence_n still_o remain_v maintain_v that_o it_o be_v the_o privation_n of_o original_a righteousness_n which_o in_o baptism_n be_v renew_v by_o a_o thing_n equivalent_a which_o be_v grace_n but_o s._n thomas_n and_o s._n bonaventure_n desire_v to_o reconcile_v these_o two_o opinion_n consider_v that_o in_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n there_o be_v two_o rebellion_n one_o of_o the_o soul_n against_o god_n the_o other_o of_o the_o sense_n against_o the_o soul_n and_o that_o this_o be_v concupiscence_n and_o that_o unrighteousness_n and_o therefore_o both_o together_o be_v the_o sin_n and_o s._n bonaventure_n give_v the_o first_o place_n to_o concupiscence_n say_v that_o this_o be_v positive_a and_o the_o other_o negative_a and_o s._n thomas_n contrary_o make_v
the_o cause_n of_o its_o truth_n but_o be_v so_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o a_o affirmative_a nor_o ever_o any_o proposition_n be_v false_a but_o because_o another_o be_v true_a neither_o can_v the_o falsity_n of_o the_o one_o be_v know_v but_o by_o he_o who_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o therefore_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n can_v be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n until_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v set_v down_o he_o that_o shall_v observe_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v in_o all_o counsel_n which_o have_v handle_v matter_n of_o faith_n will_v see_v that_o they_o have_v lay_v first_o a_o orthodox_n foundation_n and_o by_o that_o condemn_v the_o heresy_n and_o so_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o do_v now_o for_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v read_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v condemn_v the_o lutheran_n for_o say_v original_a sin_n be_v ignorance_n contempt_n distrust_n a_o hate_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o a_o corruption_n of_o the_o whole_a man_n in_o the_o will_n soul_n and_o body_n who_o be_v there_o that_o will_v not_o demand_v what_o be_v it_o then_o and_o will_v not_o say_v in_o himself_o if_o this_o opinion_n be_v heretical_a which_o be_v catholic_a and_o when_o he_o shall_v see_v the_o opinion_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la condemn_v that_o child_n the_o son_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v baptize_v into_o remission_n of_o sin_n though_o nothing_o be_v transmit_v from_o adam_n but_o the_o punishment_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o nature_n will_v not_o sudden_o ask_v what_o else_o be_v then_o transmit_v in_o sum_n he_o conclude_v that_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v principal_o to_o tell_v the_o catholic_a truth_n not_o only_o to_o condemn_v heresy_n the_o bishop_n say_v that_o these_o article_n have_v be_v so_o often_o dispute_v in_o the_o diet_n purpose_n the_o bishop_n of_o sinigaglia_n &_o friar_n jerom_n general_n of_o the_o augustin_n speak_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n of_o germany_n every_o one_o will_v expect_v from_o the_o council_n a_o perspicuous_a doctrine_n clear_v from_o all_o difficulty_n the_o general_n also_o who_o be_v somewhat_o suspect_v to_o be_v suborn_v by_o the_o ambassador_n toledo_n add_v that_o the_o true_a catholic_a doctrine_n of_o original_a sin_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o s._n austin_n that_o egidius_n romanus_n have_v write_v a_o book_n thereof_o that_o whensoever_o the_o father_n will_v take_v but_o a_o little_a pain_n they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o understand_v the_o truth_n and_o judge_v of_o it_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o suffer_v a_o fame_n to_o be_v spread_v that_o in_o trent_n that_o be_v resolve_v in_o four_o day_n which_o in_o germany_n have_v be_v so_o long_o discuss_v without_o conclusion_n these_o advertisement_n be_v not_o hearken_v unto_o because_o the_o prelate_n have_v no_o hope_n to_o be_v able_a by_o study_n to_o be_v well_o inform_v in_o the_o crabbed_a schoole-poynt_n neither_o dare_v they_o go_v about_o to_o make_v trial_n of_o it_o and_o because_o the_o legate_n have_v receive_v absolute_a command_n from_o rome_n to_o define_v this_o matter_n in_o the_o next_o session_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o avoid_v the_o difficulty_n especial_o because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n be_v resolve_v to_o make_v this_o great_a jump_n by_o all_o mean_n and_o therefore_o call_v unto_o he_o the_o general_n of_o the_o order_n and_o the_o divine_n catarinus_n and_o vega_n who_o speak_v more_o than_o the_o rest_n he_o charge_v they_o to_o pass_v by_o the_o difficulty_n and_o help_v forward_o the_o dispatch_n the_o prelate_n depute_v to_o frame_v the_o decree_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o divine_n divide_v the_o matter_n into_o five_o anathematism_n the_o first_o of_o the_o personal_a sin_n of_o adam_n the_o second_o of_o the_o transfusion_n into_o posterity_n the_o three_o of_o the_o remedy_n by_o baptism_n the_o four_o of_o the_o baptism_n of_o child_n the_o five_o of_o concupiscence_n remain_v after_o this_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o zwinglians_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o four_o first_o and_o of_o luther_n in_o the_o five_o they_o confer_v on_o these_o article_n almost_o all_o add_v and_o take_v away_o what_o they_o think_v fit_a with_o much_o concord_n but_o only_o that_o the_o franciscan_a bishop_n and_o friar_n approve_v not_o except_v the_o franciscan_n desire_v that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n shall_v be_v except_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v general_o say_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n pass_v into_o all_o mankind_n because_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o mother_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v comprehend_v if_o she_o be_v not_o particular_o except_v and_o they_o desire_v the_o exception_n the_o dominican_n say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o proposition_n so_o general_a and_o without_o exception_n be_v saint_n paul_n and_o all_o the_o holy_a doctor_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o alter_v it_o with_o a_o exception_n and_o that_o contradiction_n wax_v warm_a they_o fall_v into_o the_o question_n which_o the_o legate_n have_v often_o divert_v they_o say_v that_o though_o the_o church_n have_v tolerate_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o conception_n yet_o he_o that_o will_v examine_v the_o matter_n well_o may_v find_v that_o she_o be_v not_o exempt_v from_o the_o common_a infection_n and_o the_o other_o oppose_v that_o it_o will_v be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o condemn_v the_o church_n who_o celebrate_v the_o conception_n as_o immaculate_a and_o a_o kind_n of_o ingratitude_n derogate_a from_o the_o honour_n due_a unto_o she_o by_o who_o all_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n pass_v unto_o us._n the_o disputation_n turn_v into_o contention_n so_o far_o that_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n have_v hope_n to_o obtain_v his_o design_n that_o the_o matter_n may_v not_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o next_o session_n many_o thing_n be_v propose_v upon_o that_o occasion_n which_o cause_v they_o to_o worship_v a_o discourse_n of_o the_o author_n to_o show_v how_o the_o bless_a virgin_n come_v to_o be_v worship_v proceed_v to_o the_o decree_n which_o shall_v be_v rehearse_v which_o because_o it_o afford_v matter_n of_o discourse_n for_o the_o entire_a understanding_n of_o all_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o relate_v from_o the_o beginning_n the_o original_n of_o this_o controversy_n after_o that_o the_o impiety_n of_o nestorius_n have_v divide_v christ_n make_v two_o son_n and_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n who_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n the_o church_n to_o inculcate_v the_o catholic_a truth_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o faithful_a make_v often_o mention_v of_o she_o in_o the_o church_n as_o well_o of_o the_o east_n as_o of_o the_o west_n with_o this_o short_a form_n of_o word_n in_o greek_a maria_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o latin_a maria_n mater_fw-la dei_fw-la this_o be_v institute_v only_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n be_v by_o little_a and_o little_o communicate_v also_o to_o the_o mother_n and_o final_o apply_v to_o she_o alone_o and_o therefore_o when_o image_n begin_v to_o multiply_v christ_n be_v paint_v as_o a_o babe_n in_o his_o mother_n arm_n to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o the_o worship_n due_a unto_o he_o even_o in_o that_o age_n but_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n it_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o mother_n without_o the_o son_n he_o remain_v as_o a_o appendex_n in_o the_o picture_n the_o writer_n and_o preacher_n especial_o those_o that_o be_v contemplative_a carry_v with_o the_o torrent_n of_o the_o vulgar_a which_o be_v able_a to_o do_v much_o in_o these_o matter_n leave_v to_o mention_n christ_n invent_v with_o one_o accord_n new_a praise_n epithet_n and_o religious_a service_n in_o so_o much_o that_o about_o the_o year_n 1050._o a_o daily_a office_n be_v institute_v to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n distinguish_v by_o seven_o canonical_a hour_n in_o a_o form_n which_o ancient_o be_v ever_o use_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o divine_a majesty_n and_o in_o the_o next_o hundred_o year_n the_o worship_n so_o increase_v that_o it_o come_v to_o the_o height_n even_o to_o attribute_v that_o unto_o she_o which_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n and_o among_o these_o invent_a novity_n this_o be_v one_o her_o total_a exemption_n from_o original_a sin_n yet_o this_o remain_v only_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o some_o few_o private_a man_n have_v no_o place_n in_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n or_o among_o the_o learned_a about_o the_o year_n 1136._o the_o canon_n of_o lion_n dare_v to_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o ecclesiastical_a office_n saint_n bernard_n who_o live_v in_o those_o time_n esteem_v the_o most_o learned_a and_o pious_a of_o that_o age_n who_o be_v most_o frequent_a in_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n so_o far_o as_o to_o call_v she_o the_o neck_n of_o the_o church_n by_o which_o every_o grace_n and_o influence_n pass_v from_o the_o
head_n inveigh_v severe_o against_o the_o canon_n and_o write_v unto_o they_o reprehend_v they_o for_o introduce_v a_o dangerous_a novitie_n without_o reason_n or_o example_n of_o antiquity_n that_o there_o want_v not_o place_n to_o praise_v the_o virgin_n who_o can_v be_v please_v with_o a_o presumptuous_a novitie_n mother_n of_o rashness_n sister_n of_o superstition_n daughter_n of_o lightness_n the_o next_o age_n have_v schooledoctor_n of_o both_o the_o order_n franciscan_n and_o dominican_n who_o in_o their_o writing_n refute_v this_o opinion_n until_o about_o the_o year_n 1300._o when_v john_n scot_n a_o franciscan_a put_v the_o matter_n into_o disputation_n and_o examine_v the_o reason_n do_v fly_v to_o the_o omnipotency_n say_v that_o god_n have_v power_n to_o free_v she_o from_o sin_n or_o to_o cause_n sin_n to_o remain_v in_o she_o only_o for_o a_o instant_n or_o for_o a_o certain_a time_n that_o god_n only_o know_v which_o of_o these_o three_o be_v true_a yet_o it_o be_v probable_a to_o attribute_v the_o first_o to_o marry_o in_o case_n it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n the_o doctrine_n of_o this_o famous_a divine_a be_v follow_v by_o the_o franciscan_a order_n but_o in_o the_o particular_a of_o the_o conception_n see_v the_o way_n lay_v open_a they_o affirm_v absolute_o for_o true_a that_o which_o he_o have_v propose_v as_o possible_a and_o probable_a under_o this_o doubtful_a condition_n if_o it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n the_o dominican_n do_v constant_o resist_v and_o follow_v saint_n thomas_n one_o of_o their_o order_n famous_a for_o his_o learning_n franciscan_n s._n thomas_n be_v canonize_v by_o pope_n john_n the_o 22_o to_o disgrace_n the_o franciscan_n and_o for_o the_o approbation_n of_o pope_n john_n the_o two_o and_o twenty_o who_o to_o depress_v the_o franciscan_n who_o do_v for_o the_o most_o part_n adhere_v to_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n of_o bavaria_n excommunicate_v by_o he_o do_v canonize_v that_o doctor_n and_o his_o doctrine_n the_o show_n of_o piety_n and_o devotion_n make_v the_o franciscan_a opinion_n general_o more_o accept_v and_o more_o tenacious_o receive_v by_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n which_o be_v in_o credit_n for_o eminent_a learning_n and_o after_o long_a ventilation_n and_o discussion_n be_v afterward_o approve_v by_o the_o council_n of_o basill_n which_o forbid_v to_o preach_v and_o teach_v the_o contrary_n this_o take_v place_n in_o those_o country_n which_o receive_v the_o council_n final_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o four_o a_o franciscan_a make_v two_o bull_n in_o this_o matter_n one_o in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o four_o hundred_o seventîe_n six_o approve_v a_o new_a office_n compose_v by_o leonard_n nogarola_n protonotary_n with_o indulgence_n to_o he_o that_o do_v celebrate_v it_o or_o assist_v the_o other_o in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o four_o hundred_o eighty_o three_o condemn_v the_o assertion_n as_o false_a and_o erroneous_a that_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o hold_v the_o conception_n or_o a_o sin_n to_o celebrate_v it_o excommunicate_v the_o preacher_n and_o other_o who_o note_v that_o opinion_n of_o heresy_n or_o the_o contrary_a because_o it_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o decide_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n but_o this_o do_v not_o appease_v the_o contention_n which_o between_o the_o two_o order_n of_o friar_n still_o wax_v sharp_a and_o be_v renew_v every_o year_n in_o december_n so_o that_o pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o think_v to_o give_v a_o remedy_n by_o defer_v the_o controversy_n make_v letter_n be_v write_v unto_o diverse_a but_o afterward_o he_o have_v more_o important_a cogitation_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o novity_n of_o germany_n which_o in_o these_o contention_n wrought_v that_o which_o happen_v in_o state_n that_o the_o city_n be_v beleaguer_v the_o faction_n do_v cease_v and_o all_o join_v against_o the_o common_a enemy_n the_o dominican_n ground_v themselves_o upon_o the_o scripture_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a schoolman_n where_o not_o one_o jot_n be_v find_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o other_o but_o they_o allege_v for_o themselves_o miracle_n and_o contentment_n of_o the_o people_n john_n of_o vdine_n a_o dominican_n friar_n say_v either_o you_o will_v that_o saint_n paul_n and_o the_o father_n have_v believe_v this_o exemption_n of_o the_o virgin_n from_o the_o common_a condition_n or_o not_o if_o they_o have_v believe_v it_o and_o yet_o have_v speak_v general_o without_o ever_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o exception_n imitate_v they_o also_o now_o but_o if_o they_o have_v believe_v the_o contrary_a your_o opinion_n be_v a_o novitie_n jerolamus_fw-la lombardellus_n a_o franciscan_a friar_n say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v no_o less_o than_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a if_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o in_o those_o time_n make_v man_n speak_v without_o exception_n the_o consent_n of_o this_o which_o appear_v in_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n throughout_o aught_o to_o induce_v we_o not_o to_o omit_v it_o the_o legate_n write_v to_o rome_n of_o the_o marvelous_a agreement_n of_o all_o against_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n and_o the_o resólution_n take_v to_o condemn_v it_o and_o send_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o anathematism_n frame_v give_v advice_n withal_o of_o the_o contention_n raise_v about_o the_o conception_n whereunto_o it_o be_v answer_v from_o rome_n that_o by_o no_o mean_n they_o shall_v meddle_v with_o a_o matter_n which_o may_v cause_v a_o schism_n between_o catholic_n but_o shall_v strive_v to_o reconcile_v the_o party_n and_o give_v schism_n the_o pope_n command_v that_o the_o contention_n about_o the_o conception_n shall_v be_v omit_v for_o fear_n of_o make_v a_o schism_n they_o both_o satisfaction_n and_o above_o all_o to_o preserve_v in_o strength_n the_o brief_a of_o sistus_n 4._o the_o legate_n have_v receive_v the_o order_n do_v by_o themselves_o and_o by_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o prelate_n persuade_v both_o party_n to_o lay_v aside_o the_o contention_n and_o apply_v themselves_o joint_o against_o the_o lutheran_n they_o be_v on_o both_o side_n content_v to_o be_v silent_a so_o that_o their_o opinion_n be_v not_o prejudice_v yet_o the_o franciscan_n say_v that_o the_o canon_n be_v against_o they_o if_o the_o virgin_n be_v not_o except_v and_o the_o dominican_n that_o they_o be_v condemn_v if_o she_o be_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o find_v a_o way_n how_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v that_o she_o be_v neither_o comprehend_v nor_o affirmative_o except_v which_o be_v by_o say_v they_o have_v no_o intention_n either_o to_o comprehend_v or_o except_v she_o afterward_o at_o the_o great_a instance_n of_o the_o franciscan_n the_o other_o be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v say_v only_o they_o have_v no_o meaning_n to_o comprehend_v she_o and_o to_o obey_v the_o pope_n it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o constitution_n of_o sistus_n 4._o shall_v be_v observe_v while_o these_o thing_n be_v handle_v in_o trent_n the_o diet_n be_v assemble_v in_o ratisbon_n ratisbon_n the_o diet_n of_o ratisbon_n the_o emperor_n show_v great_a displeasure_n that_o the_o colloquy_n be_v dissolve_v without_o fruit_n and_o require_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v propose_v what_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o appease_v germany_n the_o protestant_n desire_v that_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n may_v be_v compose_v according_a to_o the_o recess_n of_o spira_n by_o a_o national_a council_n say_v it_o be_v more_o fit_a than_o a_o general_a because_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a difference_n in_o opinion_n between_o germany_n and_o other_o nation_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o avoid_v the_o raise_n of_o a_o great_a contention_n and_o whosoever_o will_v enforce_v germany_n to_o change_v opinion_n must_v first_o slay_v many_o thousand_o of_o man_n which_o will_v be_v a_o damage_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o a_o joy_n to_o the_o turk_n the_o emperor_n minister_n answer_v that_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o decree_n of_o spira_n be_v not_o execute_v and_o that_o it_o be_v know_v unto_o all_o that_o to_o make_v so_o necessary_a a_o peace_n with_o the_o french_a king_n he_o be_v constrain_v to_o yield_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n that_o the_o decree_n be_v fit_v to_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o time_n which_o be_v change_v it_o be_v also_o necessary_a to_o change_v opinion_n that_o in_o national_a counsel_n sometime_o manner_n be_v amend_v but_o faith_n and_o religion_n never_o handle_v that_o in_o colloquy_n one_o have_v to_o do_v with_o theologue_n who_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v untractable_a &_o obstinate_a so_o that_o with_o they_o one_o can_v come_v to_o such_o moderate_a counsel_n as_o be_v necessary_a that_o none_o love_v religion_n more_o than_o the_o emperor_n who_o will_v not_o swerve_v one_o jot_n from_o that_o which_o
shall_v not_o preah_a without_o the_o bishop_n licence_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o gratis_o if_o the_o preacher_n sow_v error_n or_o scandal_n the_o bishop_n shall_v prohibit_v he_o if_o heresy_n he_o shall_v proceed_v against_o he_o according_a to_o law_n and_o custom_n and_o if_o the_o preacher_n be_v a_o privilege_a person_n he_o shall_v do_v it_o as_o delegate_v yet_o take_v care_n that_o the_o preacher_n be_v not_o molest_v by_o false_a imputation_n and_o calumny_n and_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o they_o that_o they_o permit_v not_o that_o either_o regulars_n who_o live_v out_o of_o cloister_n or_o secular_a priest_n except_o they_o be_v know_v and_o allow_v by_o they_o do_v preach_v until_o a_o account_n be_v give_v thereof_o to_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o pardoner_n shall_v not_o preach_v nor_o cause_v any_o to_o preach_v and_o in_o case_n they_o do_v they_o shall_v be_v compel_v to_o obey_v by_o the_o bishop_n notwithstanding_o the_o privilege_n in_o fine_a the_o 29._o of_o julie_n be_v assign_v for_o the_o next_o session_n the_o decree_n be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o bishop_n that_o say_v mass_n the_o secretary_n of_o the_o council_n read_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o french_a king_n in_o which_o he_o depute_v for_o his_o ambassador_n in_o the_o council_n peter_n danesius_n who_o make_v a_o long_a on_o the_o 29._o of_o july_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o next_o session_n peter_n danesiu_n be_v ambassador_n for_o the_o french_a king_n and_o make_v a_o oration_n in_o the_o s_o 〈…〉_o on_o and_o eloquent_a oration_n to_o the_o father_n say_v in_o substance_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n since_o the_o first_o most_o christian_n king_n clodoveus_fw-la have_v always_o preserve_v christian_a religion_n most_o sincere_a that_o s._n gregory_n the_o first_o give_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_n to_o childebert_n in_o token_n of_o his_o incorrupt_a religion_n that_o the_o king_n have_v never_o suffer_v any_o sect_n in_o any_o part_n of_o france_n nor_o any_o but_o catholic_n yea_o have_v procure_v the_o conversion_n of_o stranger_n idolater_n and_o heretic_n and_o have_v constrain_v they_o with_o pious_a arm_n to_o profess_v the_o true_a and_o sound_a religion_n he_o show_v how_o childebert_n compel_v the_o visigothe_n who_o be_v arrian_n to_o join_v themselves_o with_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o how_o charles_n the_o great_a make_v war_n thirty_o year_n with_o the_o saxon_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o christian_a religion_n then_o he_o declare_v the_o favour_n do_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o recount_v the_o enterprise_n of_o pippin_n and_o charles_n the_o great_a against_o the_o lumbards_n and_o how_o in_o a_o synod_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v grant_v by_o adrian_n to_o charles_n to_o create_v the_o pope_n and_o to_o approve_v the_o bishop_n of_o his_o dominion_n and_o invest_v they_o after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n he_o add_v that_o though_o his_o son_n ludovicus_n pius_n surrender_v that_o authority_n to_o create_v the_o pope_n yet_o he_o reserve_v that_o legate_n shall_v be_v send_v unto_o he_o to_o preserve_v amity_n which_o have_v be_v ever_o maintain_v with_o mutual_a office_n for_o which_o confidence_n the_o pope_n in_o time_n of_o difficulty_n either_o chase_v out_o of_o their_o sea_n or_o fear_v sedition_n have_v retire_v themselves_o into_o that_o kingdom_n that_o it_o can_v be_v tell_v how_o many_o danger_n the_o french_a man_n have_v run_v and_o how_o much_o money_n and_o blood_n they_o have_v spend_v to_o enlarge_v the_o list_n of_o the_o christian_a empire_n or_o to_o recover_v that_o which_o have_v be_v usurp_v by_o the_o barbarian_n or_o to_o restore_v the_o pope_n or_o to_o deliver_v they_o from_o danger_n he_o add_v that_o king_n francis_n descend_v from_o these_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o reign_n after_o the_o victory_n achieve_v in_o lombary_n do_v with_o the_o same_o piety_n go_v to_o bolonia_n to_o meet_v leo_n the_o ten_o to_o confirm_v a_o peace_n with_o he_o which_o have_v continue_v with_o adrian_n clement_n and_o paul_n and_o in_o these_o 26._o year_n the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v bring_v into_o great_a ambiguity_n in_o diverse_a region_n he_o have_v take_v most_o exact_a care_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v innovate_v in_o the_o common_a ecclesiastical_a use_n but_o all_o reserve_v to_o the_o public_a censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o though_o he_o be_v of_o a_o quiet_a please_a and_o not_o bloody_a disposition_n yet_o he_o have_v use_v severity_n and_o make_v grievous_a edict_n and_o have_v bring_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o diligence_n and_o vigilancy_n of_o his_o judge_n that_o in_o so_o great_a a_o tempest_n which_o have_v subvert_v many_o city_n and_o whole_a nation_n that_o most_o noble_a kingdom_n shall_v not_o be_v shake_v in_o which_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n rite_n ceremony_n and_o manner_n do_v remain_v so_o that_o the_o council_n may_v ordain_v what_o they_o think_v to_o be_v true_a and_o fit_a for_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n he_o say_v further_o that_o the_o king_n know_v how_o profitable_a it_o be_v to_o christendom_n to_o have_v the_o pope_n for_o head_n and_o that_o be_v tempt_v and_o invite_v with_o most_o gaineful_a proffer_n to_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o another_o will_v not_o forsake_v his_o opinion_n and_o thereby_o have_v lose_v his_o neighbour_n love_n with_o some_o disadvantage_n that_o understand_v the_o convocation_n of_o the_o council_n he_o present_o send_v some_o of_o his_o bishop_n and_o when_o he_o see_v it_o go_v on_o in_o earnest_n and_o that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o be_v establish_v by_o many_o session_n he_o have_v send_v he_o for_o his_o ambassador_n to_o assist_v they_o and_o to_o procure_v that_o at_o the_o last_o they_o will_v constitute_v and_o propose_v the_o doctrine_n which_o ought_v every_o where_o to_o be_v profess_v by_o all_o christian_n and_o rectify_v the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n by_o the_o square_n of_o the_o canon_n promise_v that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n will_v cause_v all_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o protect_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n then_o he_o add_v that_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o french_a king_n be_v so_o great_a his_o privilege_n grant_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o pope_n aught_o to_o be_v preserve_v which_o ludovicus_n pius_n &_o all_o the_o king_n of_o france_n since_o have_v possess_v and_o the_o right_n privilege_n and_o immunity_n confirm_v to_o the_o church_n of_o france_n of_o which_o he_o be_v defender_n which_o if_o the_o council_n will_v do_v the_o frenchman_n will_v be_v thankful_a and_o the_o father_n will_v not_o repent_v they_o of_o their_o deed_n severollo_n and_o be_v answer_v by_o hercules_n severollo_n hercules_n severollo_n proctor_n of_o the_o council_n brief_o answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n thank_v the_o king_n show_v that_o the_o ambassador_n presence_n be_v most_o acceptable_a promise_v all_o diligence_n in_o the_o establish_n of_o faith_n and_o reformation_n of_o manner_n offer_v all_o favour_n to_o the_o kingdom_n and_o church_n of_o france_n but_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o session_n be_v print_v and_o go_v into_o germany_n afford_v germany_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o decree_n in_o germany_n matter_n of_o discourse_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pelagian_n impiety_n be_v superfluous_o handle_v be_v by_o so_o many_o counsel_n and_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o condemn_v that_o it_o have_v be_v tolerable_a if_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n have_v be_v confirm_v that_o in_o conformity_n unto_o it_o they_o have_v well_o propose_v a_o true_a universal_a proposition_n by_o say_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n do_v pass_v into_o all_o his_o posterity_n but_o after_o have_v destroy_v it_o by_o a_o exception_n that_o it_o help_v they_o not_o that_o the_o exception_n be_v not_o assertive_a but_o ambiguous_a for_o as_o one_o particular_a make_v false_a the_o contradictory_n universal_a so_o one_o ambiguons_a particular_a make_v the_o universal_a uncertain_a and_o who_o see_v not_o that_o so_o long_o as_o this_o exception_n remain_v though_o with_o ambiguity_n every_o one_o may_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o sin_n be_v pass_v into_o all_o the_o posterity_n because_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a whether_o it_o be_v pass_v into_o the_o virgin_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o reason_n which_o persuade_v that_o exception_n may_v persuade_v many_o more_o that_o bernard_n conclude_v well_o that_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o induce_v to_o celebrate_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n will_v conclude_v the_o like_a for_o her_o father_n and_o mother_n grandfather_n and_o great_a grandfather_n and_o all_o her_o genealogy_n since_o adam_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o abraham_n they_o shall_v go_v no_o further_o because_o there_o be_v
place_n of_o the_o other_o epistle_n where_o he_o say_v we_o have_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o god_n that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v well_o and_o where_o in_o give_v the_o cause_n why_o some_o have_v revolt_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o some_o stand_v firm_a he_o say_v it_o be_v because_o the_o foundation_n of_o god_n stand_v sure_a and_o have_v this_o seal_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o they_o add_v diverse_a passage_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n john_n and_o infinite_a authority_n of_o saint_n austin_n because_o that_o saint_n write_v nothing_o in_o his_o old_a age_n but_o in_o favour_n of_o this_o doctrine_n but_o some_o other_o though_o of_o less_o esteem_n oppose_v this_o opinion_n call_v it_o hard_o cruel_a inhuman_a horrible_a impious_a and_o that_o it_o show_v partiality_n in_o god_n if_o without_o any_o motive_n cause_n he_o elect_v one_o and_o reject_v another_o and_o unjust_a if_o he_o damn_a man_n for_o his_o own_o will_n and_o not_o for_o their_o fault_n and_o have_v create_v so_o great_a a_o multitude_n to_o condemneit_v they_o say_v it_o destroy_v free_a will_n because_o the_o elect_a can_v final_o do_v evil_a nor_o the_o reprobate_n good_a that_o it_o cast_v man_n into_o a_o gulf_n of_o desperation_n doubt_v that_o they_o be_v reprobate_n that_o it_o give_v occasion_n to_o the_o wicked_a of_o bad_a thought_n not_o care_v for_o penance_n but_o think_v that_o if_o they_o be_v elect_v they_o shall_v not_o perish_v if_o reprobate_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o do_v well_o because_o it_o will_v not_o help_v they_o they_o confess_v that_o not_o only_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n election_n because_o that_o it_o be_v before_o they_o &_o eternal_a but_o that_o neither_o work_n foresee_v can_v move_v god_n to_o predestine_v who_o be_v willing_a for_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n that_o all_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o to_o this_o end_n prepare_v sufficient_a assistance_n for_o all_o which_o every_o man_n have_v freewill_n receive_v or_o refuse_v as_o please_v he_o and_o god_n in_o his_o eternity_n forsee_v those_o who_o will_v receive_v his_o help_n and_o use_v it_o to_o good_a and_o those_o who_o will_v refuse_v and_o reject_v these_o elect_v and_o predestinate_v those_o they_o add_v that_o otherwise_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n why_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v complain_v of_o sinner_n nor_o why_o he_o shall_v exhort_v all_o to_o repentance_n and_o conversion_n if_o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o get_v they_o that_o the_o sufficient_a assistance_n invent_v by_o the_o other_o be_v unsufficient_a because_o in_o their_o opinion_n it_o never_o have_v or_o shall_v have_v any_o effect_n the_o first_o opinion_n as_o it_o be_v mystical_a and_o hide_a keep_v the_o mind_n humble_a and_o rely_v on_o god_n without_o any_o confidence_n in_o itself_o know_v the_o deformity_n of_o sin_n and_o the_o excellency_n of_o divine_a grace_n so_o this_o second_o be_v plausible_a and_o popular_a cherish_v humane_a presumption_n and_o make_v a_o great_a show_n and_o it_o please_v more_o the_o preach_a friar_n than_o the_o understanding_n divine_n and_o the_o courtier_n think_v it_o probable_a as_o consonant_a to_o politic_a reason_n it_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o salpi_n show_v himself_o very_o partial_a the_o defender_n of_o this_o use_v humane_a reason_n prevail_v against_o the_o other_o but_o come_v to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o be_v manifest_o overcome_v catarinus_n hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n to_o resolve_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o trouble_v they_o all_o invent_v a_o middle_a way_n that_o god_n of_o his_o goodness_n have_v elect_v some_o few_o who_o he_o will_v save_v absolute_o for_o who_o he_o have_v prepare_v most_o potent_a effectual_a and_o infallible_a mean_n the_o rest_n he_o desire_v for_o his_o part_n they_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o to_o that_o end_n have_v provide_v sufficient_a mean_n for_o all_o leave_v it_o to_o their_o choice_n to_o accept_v they_o and_o be_v save_v or_o refuse_v they_o and_o be_v damn_v among_o these_o there_o be_v some_o who_o receive_v they_o &_o be_v save_v though_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o elect_a of_o which_o kind_n there_o be_v very_o many_o other_o refuse_v to_o cooperate_v with_o god_n who_o wish_v their_o salvation_n be_v damn_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o first_o be_v predestinate_v be_v only_o the_o will_n of_o god_n why_o the_o other_o be_v save_v be_v the_o acceptation_n good_a use_n and_o cooperation_n with_o the_o divine_a assistance_n foresee_v by_o god_n why_o the_o last_o be_v reprobate_v be_v the_o foresee_v of_o their_o perverse_a will_n in_o refuse_v or_o abuse_v it_o that_o saint_n john_n saint_n paul_n and_o all_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n allege_v by_o the_o other_o part_n where_o all_o be_v give_v to_o god_n and_o which_o do_v show_v infallibility_n be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o first_o who_o be_v particular_o privilege_v and_o in_o other_o for_o who_o the_o common_a way_n be_v leave_v the_o admonition_n exhortation_n and_o general_a assistance_n be_v verify_v unto_o which_o he_o that_o will_v give_v care_n and_o follow_v they_o be_v save_v and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o perish_v by_o his_o own_o fault_n of_o those_o few_o who_o be_v privilege_v above_o the_o common_a condition_n the_o number_n be_v determinate_a and_o certain_a with_o god_n but_o not_o of_o those_o who_o be_v save_v by_o the_o common_a way_n depend_v on_o humane_a liberty_n but_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o the_o work_n of_o every_o one_o catarinus_n say_v he_o wonder_v at_o the_o stupidity_n of_o those_o who_o say_v the_o number_n be_v certain_a and_o determine_v and_o yet_o they_o add_v that_o other_o may_v be_v save_v which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o number_n be_v certain_a and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v enlarge_v and_o likewise_o of_o those_o who_o say_v that_o the_o reprobate_n have_v sufficient_a assistance_n for_o salvation_n though_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o he_o that_o be_v save_v to_o have_v a_o gratner_n which_o be_v to_o say_v a_o sufficient_a unsufsicient_a he_o add_v that_o saint_n augustine_n opinion_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o his_o time_n and_o himself_o confess_v it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o the_o work_n of_o any_o who_o write_v before_o he_o neither_o do_v himself_o always_o think_v it_o true_a but_o ascribe_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n will_v to_o merit_n say_v god_n take_v compassion_n on_o &_o harden_v who_o he_o list_v but_o that_o will_v of_o god_n can_v be_v unjust_a because_o it_o be_v cause_v by_o most_o secret_a merit_n and_o that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o sinner_n some_o who_o though_o they_o be_v justify_v yet_o deserve_v justification_n but_o after_o the_o heat_n of_o disputation_n against_o the_o pelagian_n transport_v he_o to_o think_v and_o speak_v the_o contrary_n yet_o when_o his_o opinion_n be_v hear_v all_o the_o catholic_n be_v scandalize_v as_o s_n prosper_n write_v to_o he_o and_o genadius_fw-la of_o marscille_n 50._o year_n after_o in_o his_o judgement_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o famous_a writer_n say_v that_o it_o happen_v to_o he_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o salmon_n that_o in_o much_o speak_v one_o can_v avoid_v sin_n and_o that_o by_o his_o fault_n exaggerated_a by_o the_o enemy_n the_o question_n be_v not_o then_o rise_v which_o may_v afterward_o bring_v forth_o heresy_n whereby_o the_o good_a father_n do_v intimate_v his_o fear_n of_o that_o which_o now_o appear_v that_o be_v that_o by_o that_o opinion_n some_o sect_n and_o division_n may_v arise_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o second_o article_n be_v diverse_a according_a to_o the_o three_o relate_a opinion_n catarinus_n think_v the_o first_o part_n true_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n towards_o those_o who_o be_v particular_o favour_v but_o the_o second_o false_a concern_v the_o suffiencie_n of_o god_n assistance_n unto_o all_o and_o man_n liberty_n in_o cooperate_n other_o ascribe_v the_o cause_n of_o predestination_n in_o all_o to_o humane_a consent_n condemn_v the_o whole_a article_n in_o both_o part_n but_o those_o that_o adhere_v to_o s._n austin_n and_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o the_o theologue_n do_v distinguish_v it_o and_o say_v it_o be_v true_a in_o a_o compound_a sense_n but_o damnable_a in_o a_o divide_a a_o subtlety_n which_o confound_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o his_o own_o though_o he_o do_v exemplify_v it_o by_o say_v he_o that_o move_v can_v stand_v still_o it_o be_v true_a in_o a_o compound_n sense_n because_o it_o be_v understand_v while_o he_o move_v but_o in_o a_o divide_a sense_n it_o be_v
the_o conclusion_n of_o that_o point_n every_o one_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o the_o cause_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v give_v for_o that_o no_o man_n can_v certain_o know_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v grace_n but_o to_o satisfy_v one_o part_n he_o add_v certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o dominican_n think_v this_o be_v not_o enough_o urge_v he_o to_o add_v catholic_a but_o because_o the_o adherent_n of_o catarinus_n be_v not_o content_v in_o stead_n of_o those_o word_n catholic_a faith_n it_o be_v say_v faith_n which_o can_v be_v subject_a to_o falsehood_n this_o content_v both_o side_n for_o one_o party_n infer_v then_o that_o certainty_n of_o faith_n which_o can_v be_v have_v herein_o may_v be_v false_a and_o therefore_o be_v uncertain_a the_o other_o infer_v that_o this_o certainty_n can_v have_v no_o doubt_n of_o falsehood_n while_o it_o remain_v but_o by_o change_v from_o the_o state_n of_o of_o grace_n to_o the_o state_n of_o sin_n it_o may_v become_v false_a as_o all_o contingent_a truth_n by_o alteration_n of_o their_o subject_n be_v make_v false_a but_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v not_o only_o certain_a but_o unchangeable_a because_o the_o subject_n of_o it_o 〈…〉_o thing_n necessary_a or_o past_a which_o can_v be_v alter_v and_o true_o concern_v these_o particular_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o rob_v the_o cardinal_n of_o his_o due_a praise_n who_o know_v how_o to_o satisfy_v man_n even_o obstinate_a in_o contrary_a opinion_n and_o those_o that_o will_v be_v better_o inform_v therein_o may_v understand_v that_o immediate_o after_o the_o session_n friar_n dominicus_n soto_n principal_a of_o the_o dominican_n 〈…〉_o dominicus_n soto_n principal_a 〈…〉_o the_o dominican_n and_o andreas_n vega_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d publish_v book_n as_o commentary_n of_o the_o decree_n contra●●_n one_o to_o a_o 〈…〉_o write_v three_o book_n and_o do_v entitle_v they_o of_o nature_n and_o grace_n for_o commentary_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o in_o his_o exposition_n all_o his_o opinion_n be_v find_v when_o this_o work_n be_v publish_v friar_n andrew_n vega_n the_o most_o esteem_v of_o the_o franciscan_n fetch_v forth_o fifteen_o great_a book_n for_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 〈…〉_o even_o point_n of_o that_o decree_n and_o do_v expound_v it_o all_o according_a to_o his_o own_o opinion_n these_o two_o opinion_n do_v not_o only_o differ_v almost_o in_o all_o the_o article_n but_o in_o many_o of_o they_o be_v express_o contrary_a both_o which_o work_n be_v print_v in_o the_o year_n 1548._o and_o he_o that_o shall_v read_v they_o observe_v that_o they_o do_v give_v very_o often_o interchangeable_a and_o doubtful_a sense_n to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n will_v marvel_v how_o these_o two_o person_n the_o chief_a for_o learning_n and_o estimation_n who_o have_v great_a part_n therein_o then_o other_o do_v not_o know_v the_o only_a sense_n and_o true_a scope_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o which_o also_o some_o few_o other_o of_o those_o which_o be_v interest_v have_v write_v diverse_o i_o can_v never_o find_v whether_o that_o assembly_n do_v agree_v in_o one_o sense_n or_o whether_o there_o be_v unity_n of_o word_n only_o but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o cardinal_n when_o the_o decree_n be_v approve_v there_o the_o decree_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n and_o approve_a there_o by_o all_o in_o trent_n he_o send_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n give_v it_o to_o the_o friar_n and_o learned_a man_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v consult_v of_o and_o it_o be_v approve_v by_o they_o because_o every_o one_o may_v understand_v it_o in_o his_o own_o sense_n i_o have_v rehearse_v altogether_o what_o be_v do_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o i_o may_v not_o divide_v thing_n that_o be_v connex_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n some_o day_n handle_v reformation_n be_v handle_v be_v spend_v about_o the_o reformation_n and_o in_o those_o congregation_n it_o be_v propose_v to_o set_v down_o the_o quality_n requisite_a in_o the_o promotion_n of_o the_o great_a prelate_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o very_o grave_a say_n be_v deliver_v with_o great_a ostentation_n but_o there_o be_v no_o way_n find_v how_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o speak_v may_v be_v observe_v for_o where_o the_o king_n have_v the_o presentation_n they_o see_v not_o with_o what_o bond_n to_o tie_v they_o where_o election_n have_v place_n the_o chapter_n do_v consist_v of_o great_a and_o mighty_a person_n for_o the_o residue_n all_o dignity_n be_v confer_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o more_o than_o two_o three_o of_o the_o benefice_n omit_v the_o point_n concern_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o prelate_n be_v omit_v be_v reserve_v to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o prescribe_v a_o law_n whereupon_o after_o many_o and_o long_a discourse_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o leave_v the_o business_n the_o discourse_n in_o point_n of_o residency_n be_v neither_o few_o nor_o short_a handle_v the_o point_n of_o residence_n be_v handle_v which_o end_v not_o in_o the_o resolution_n which_o be_v necessary_a &_o desire_v by_o many_o and_o make_v some_o confusion_n then_o and_o prepare_v matter_n for_o other_o time_n for_o the_o understanding_n whereof_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o resume_v this_o matter_n from_o the_o beginning_n the_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n be_v not_o original_o institute_v as_o dignity_n preeminency_n reward_n or_o honour_n as_o now_o they_o be_v and_o have_v be_v many_o residency_n a_o discourse_n of_o the_o author_n concern_v residency_n hundred_o year_n but_o as_o ministery_n and_o charge_n otherwise_o call_v by_o saint_n paul_n work_n and_o those_o that_o exercise_v they_o be_v call_v by_o christ_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n workman_n and_o therefore_o no_o man_n can_v then_o enter_v into_o cogitation_n to_o absent_v himself_o from_o the_o execution_n thereof_o in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o if_o any_o one_o which_o seldom_o happen_v retire_v from_o the_o work_n it_o be_v not_o think_v reasonable_a he_o shall_v have_v either_o title_n or_o profit_n and_o though_o the_o ministery_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o ancient_o call_v as_o now_o they_o be_v with_o care_n of_o soul_n other_o of_o temporal_a thing_n for_o the_o sustenance_n and_o service_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o sick_a as_o be_v the_o deaconry_n and_o other_o inferior_a work_n all_o hold_v themselves_o equal_o bind_v to_o that_o service_n in_o person_n neither_o do_v any_o think_v of_o a_o substitute_n but_o for_o a_o short_a time_n and_o for_o great_a impediment_n much_o less_o to_o take_v another_o charge_n which_o may_v hinder_v that_o the_o church_n be_v increase_v where_o there_o be_v many_o christian_n and_o free_a from_o persecution_n another_o sort_n of_o minister_n be_v institute_v to_o serve_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n aswell_o in_o read_v the_o divine_a scripture_n as_o in_o other_o function_n to_o stir_v up_o devotion_n there_o be_v institute_v also_o college_n of_o minister_n which_o may_v in_o common_a apply_v themselves_o to_o some_o charge_n and_o other_o as_o seminary_n from_o whence_o to_o take_v minister_n instruct_v already_o these_o of_o the_o college_n not_o have_v any_o personal_a charge_n see_v the_o congregation_n do_v administer_v as_o well_o with_o one_o more_o as_o with_o one_o less_o sometime_o by_o reason_n of_o study_n or_o great_a instruction_n or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o church_n one_o for_o a_o short_a time_n another_o for_o along_o without_o have_v title_n charge_n or_o profit_n so_o saint_n jerom_n a_o priest_n of_o antioch_n but_o without_o any_o particular_a cure_n and_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o aquileia_n and_o saint_n paulinus_n ordain_v priest_n of_o barcelona_n do_v reside_v but_o little_a but_o when_o the_o number_n of_o they_o increase_v they_o do_v degenerate_a and_o be_v call_v vagabond_n clerk_n because_o that_o manner_n of_o live_v make_v they_o odious_a who_o be_v often_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o law_n and_o novel_a constitution_n of_o justinian_n but_o never_o any_o thought_n to_o hold_v the_o title_n of_o a_o office_n or_o enjoy_v the_o profit_n without_o do_v service_n but_o only_o after_o the_o year_n seven_o hundred_o in_o the_o west_n church_n when_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministery_n be_v change_v and_o make_v dignity_n and_o honour_n and_o reward_n for_o service_n do_v and_o as_o before_o a_o person_n be_v choose_v fit_a for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o afterward_o a_o degree_n dignity_n or_o emolument_fw-fr be_v fit_v to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n from_o whence_o arise_v the_o exercise_v of_o the_o ministry_n by_o a_o substitute_n this_o abuse_n have_v draw_v in_o another_o by_o consequence_n that_o be_v to_o think_v one_o self_n disoblige_v not_o only_o to_o minister_v but_o to_o be_v present_a and_o assist_v he_o that_o
he_o upon_o who_o they_o be_v confer_v by_o who_o death_n the_o union_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v dissolve_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o the_o benefice_n return_v to_o their_o first_o state_n so_o they_o show_v the_o world_n their_o excellent_a invention_n confer_v a_o benefice_n which_o be_v but_o one_o in_o show_n but_o many_o in_o deed_n as_o one_o confess_v he_o have_v steal_v a_o bridle_n conceal_v it_o be_v upon_o a_o horse_n head_n which_o he_o steal_v with_o it_o to_o remedy_v plurality_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v the_o abuse_n of_o these_o three_o pretence_n this_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o prelate_n understanding_n agree_v uniform_o at_o the_o first_o propose_n to_o inhibit_v all_o of_o what_o condition_n soever_o to_o have_v more_o than_o three_o benefice_n and_o some_o add_v when_o two_o amount_v not_o to_o the_o value_n of_o four_o hundred_o ducat_n of_o gold_n and_o that_o if_o one_o be_v worth_a so_o much_o no_o man_n whatsoever_o shall_v have_v any_o more_o nor_o more_o than_o three_o though_o they_o be_v not_o worth_a so_o much_o of_o this_o there_o be_v much_o disputation_n and_o pluvalitie_n a_o dispute_n about_o the_o remedy_n of_o pluvalitie_n much_o more_o when_o aluise_n lipomano_n bishop_n of_o verona_n propose_v that_o this_o decree_n may_v touch_v they_o also_o who_o be_v now_o possessor_n of_o more_o who_o without_o exception_n of_o any_o shall_v be_v constrain_v to_o renounce_v those_o that_o be_v supernumerary_n within_o six_o month_n if_o they_o be_v in_o italy_n and_o within_o nine_o if_o in_o other_o place_n which_o if_o they_o do_v not_o they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v without_o any_o further_a declaration_n notwithstanding_o the_o benefice_n be_v unite_v or_o commend_v or_o possess_v by_o any_o othertitle_v to_o this_o opinion_n the_o bishop_n of_o feltre_n do_v adhere_v but_o do_v moderate_v it_o by_o distinguish_a dispensation_n commendaes_n and_o union_n say_v that_o some_o be_v make_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o some_o in_o favour_n of_o the_o possessor_n desire_v that_o the_o former_a shall_v remain_v in_o force_n and_o the_o other_o shall_v be_v regulate_v the_o bishop_n of_o lanciano_n do_v not_o admit_v this_o distinction_n say_v that_o he_o that_o will_v make_v a_o last_a law_n must_v not_o put_v exception_n into_o the_o body_n of_o it_o in_o regard_n the_o malice_n of_o man_n be_v apt_a to_o invent_v they_o and_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o rule_n the_o bishop_n of_o albenga_n make_v a_o long_a oration_n to_o show_v that_o good_a law_n do_v regulate_v backward_o law_n ought_v to_o look_v forward_o only_o and_o not_o backward_o the_o future_a only_a and_o that_o he_o who_o not_o contain_v himself_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o reason_n will_v amend_v that_o which_o be_v past_a do_v ever_o raise_v tumult_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o reform_v make_v a_o great_a deformation_n that_o it_o be_v strange_a to_o deprive_v man_n of_o their_o possession_n and_o persuade_v they_o to_o be_v content_a he_o add_v that_o he_o foresee_v that_o if_o such_o a_o decree_n be_v make_v either_o it_o will_v not_o be_v receive_v or_o if_o it_o be_v will_v cause_v colourable_a and_o simoniacal_a resignation_n and_o great_a mischief_n than_o plurality_n can_v for_o hereafter_o the_o provision_n seem_v unto_o he_o superfluous_a for_o no_o man_n be_v to_o have_v more_o benefice_n but_o by_o the_o pope_n dispensation_n it_o suffice_v that_o he_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o dispense_v in_o that_o congregation_n among_o many_o tragical_a exclamation_n make_v by_o diverse_a man_n bernardus_n dias_n bishop_n of_o calabora_n say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o vicenza_n be_v so_o disorder_v as_o all_o man_n know_v that_o it_o require_v rather_o a_o apostle_n than_o a_o bishop_n tax_v the_o cardinal_n ridolfi_n who_o possess_v that_o bishopric_n beside_o many_o other_o benefice_n not_o govern_v it_o nor_o have_v the_o episcopal_a order_n never_o see_v it_o nor_o know_v any_o thing_n but_o the_o rent_n and_o every_o one_o speak_v against_o the_o inconvenience_n that_o famous_a church_n shall_v never_o see_v their_o bishop_n because_o they_o be_v employ_v in_o other_o bishopricke_n or_o more_o beneficial_a dignity_n some_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o may_v provide_v against_o this_o and_o be_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o albenga_n that_o he_o alone_o may_v make_v the_o reformation_n this_o please_v the_o legate_n as_o well_o for_o the_o pope_n dignity_n as_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o take_v pain_n in_o this_o matter_n which_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o interest_n they_o think_v will_v be_v of_o a_o hard_a digestion_n hope_v that_o when_o they_o have_v go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o leave_v this_o reformation_n to_o the_o pope_n they_o shall_v easy_o leave_v also_o unto_o he_o the_o point_n of_o residency_n which_o be_v as_o hard_o to_o be_v concoct_v for_o that_o it_o be_v popular_a and_o draw_v with_o it_o the_o regain_n of_o the_o episcopal_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n therefore_o the_o legate_n be_v in_o hope_n that_o it_o may_v be_v obtain_v especial_o if_o it_o be_v propose_v as_o a_o thing_n do_v not_o to_o be_v do_v they_o present_o send_v the_o pope_n word_n of_o it_o who_o be_v glad_a of_o the_o news_n because_o both_o the_o court_n and_o himself_o be_v doubtful_a where_o the_o attempt_n and_o design_n of_o the_o prelate_n may_v end_v and_o think_v fit_a to_o strike_v the_o iron_n while_o it_o be_v hot_a he_o make_v a_o great_a stride_n than_o the_o legate_n will_v have_v have_v he_o and_o dispatch_v a_o bull_n by_o which_o he_o recall_v unto_o himself_o the_o whole_a business_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o in_o trent_n whilst_o a_o answer_n be_v expect_v from_o rome_n they_o proceed_v in_o the_o treaty_n begin_v and_o make_v a_o draught_n of_o the_o decree_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v more_o than_o one_o bishopric_n and_o he_o that_o have_v more_o shall_v quit_v the_o rest_n that_o hereafter_o whosoever_o shall_v obtain_v many_o inferior_a incompatible_a benefice_n shall_v be_v deprive_v without_o further_a declaration_n and_o he_o that_o former_o have_v possess_v more_o than_o one_o shall_v show_v his_o dispensation_n to_o the_o ordinary_a who_o shall_v proceed_v according_a to_o the_o decretal_a of_o innocentius_n 4._o ordinarij_fw-la in_o give_v their_o voice_n upon_o these_o point_n many_o desire_v to_o have_v dispensation_n forbid_v the_o show_v of_o the_o dispensation_n plurality_n of_o dispensation_n for_o plurality_n and_o the_o proceed_n according_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n please_v but_o few_o because_o it_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o approbation_n of_o they_o all_o and_o a_o increase_n of_o the_o mischief_n for_o innocentius_n say_v that_o if_o the_o dispensation_n be_v find_v good_a they_o shall_v be_v admit_v if_o there_o be_v any_o doubt_n recourse_n shall_v be_v have_v to_o rome_n in_o which_o case_n no_o man_n doubt_v but_o that_o any_o of_o they_o may_v be_v doubt_v of_o and_o receive_v a_o declaration_n at_o rome_n conformable_a to_o the_o grant_n many_o fear_v that_o when_o they_o be_v examine_v and_o approve_v there_o remain_v no_o doubt_n the_o abuse_n will_v be_v confirm_v and_o therefore_o will_v have_v have_v they_o prohibit_v absolute_o other_o say_v they_o have_v always_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v necessary_a and_o that_o all_o be_v in_o use_v they_o well_o marcus_n vigerius_n bishop_n of_o sinigaglia_n be_v of_o a_o opinion_n which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v receive_v and_o believe_v will_v easy_o have_v reform_v the_o whole_a clergy_n he_o say_v the_o synod_n may_v remove_v all_o inconvenience_n by_o declare_v that_o a_o lawful_a cause_n be_v necessary_a for_o a_o dispensation_n and_o that_o whosoever_o do_v otherwise_o grant_v it_o do_v sin_n and_o can_v be_v absolve_v but_o by_o revoke_v it_o and_o that_o he_o who_o obtain_v it_o be_v not_o secure_a in_o his_o conscience_n notwithstanding_o the_o dispensation_n and_o continue_v in_o sin_n until_o he_o quit_v the_o benefice_n so_o get_v this_o opinion_n want_v not_o contradictor_n for_o some_o stand_v up_o and_o say_v that_o he_o who_o grant_v licence_n of_o plurality_n without_o a_o lawful_a cause_n do_v sin_n yet_o the_o dispensation_n be_v good_a and_o the_o dispense_v be_v secure_a in_o his_o conscience_n though_o he_o know_v the_o unlawfulnesse_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o the_o difference_n continue_v many_o day_n these_o say_n that_o it_o be_v to_o take_v all_o authority_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o that_o the_o pope_n authority_n stretch_v not_o so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v that_o evil_n shall_v not_o be_v evil_a from_o this_o they_o go_v to_o another_o doubt_n whether_o plurality_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o law_n of_o forbid_v a_o doubt_n move_v by_o what_o law_n plurality_n be_v forbid_v god_n or_o of_o man_n those_o
the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o see_v not_o why_o they_o shall_v depart_v with_o the_o legate_n who_o promise_v in_o the_o general_a congregation_n and_o in_o the_o public_a session_n to_o return_v to_o trent_n so_o soon_o as_o the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o sickness_n do_v cease_v especial_o if_o germany_n will_v submit_v to_o the_o council_n that_o they_o remain_v there_o believe_v they_o will_v return_v especial_o when_o they_o understand_v that_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o emperor_n germany_n do_v submit_v itself_o and_o that_o some_o have_v receive_v scandal_n by_o their_o abide_n in_o trent_n as_o his_o holiness_n say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o they_o that_o they_o have_v not_o give_v it_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o departure_n of_o other_o have_v trouble_v many_o that_o the_o successor_n of_o saint_n peter_n have_v ever_o be_v very_o venerable_a to_o their_o nation_n wherein_o themselves_o have_v not_o be_v defectuous_a they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o what_o they_o have_v do_v to_o a_o good_a end_n and_o do_v humble_o beseech_v he_o not_o to_o consent_v they_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o a_o suit_n in_o regard_n the_o cause_n be_v not_o they_o but_o god_n saying_n that_o if_o it_o be_v they_o they_o will_v be_v content_a to_o endure_v any_o wrong_n but_o be_v god_n and_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v it_o belong_v more_o to_o none_o then_o to_o his_o vicar_n in_o fine_a they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n to_o set_v the_o interrupt_a council_n on_o its_o foot_n again_o and_o cause_v the_o legate_n and_o father_n to_o return_v to_o the_o same_o place_n and_o to_o do_v this_o by_o a_o brief_a without_o treat_v of_o translation_n they_o pray_v he_o to_o take_v their_o word_n in_o good_a part_n not_o speak_v to_o signify_v what_o the_o duty_n of_o his_o holiness_n be_v but_o what_o they_o hope_v from_o he_o the_o spaniard_n answer_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v send_v to_o the_o answer_n the_o reply_n of_o the_o proctor_n of_o the_o father_n of_o bolonia_n the_o spaniard_n answer_n cardinal_n to_o who_o the_o cause_n be_v commit_v by_o who_o it_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o proctor_n of_o those_o of_o bolonia_n that_o they_o may_v proceed_v these_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v glad_a that_o the_o spaniard_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o judgement_n and_o the_o judge_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v a_o party_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o retort_v some_o thing_n deliver_v in_o their_o answer_n to_o make_v the_o truth_n appear_v in_o that_o they_o say_v his_o holiness_n shall_v first_o have_v be_v advise_v with_o it_o be_v superfluous_a in_o regard_n a_o special_a bull_n be_v then_o read_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v be_v neglect_v it_o can_v be_v say_v because_o so_o great_a esteem_n have_v be_v hold_v of_o his_o majesty_n as_o of_o the_o pope_n the_o cause_n itself_o not_o comport_v any_o delay_n see_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o dissolve_v or_o translate_v the_o council_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o progress_n which_o the_o pestilent_a sickness_n make_v in_o the_o city_n and_o border_n of_o the_o actual_a and_o eminent_a departure_n of_o many_o father_n of_o the_o doctor_n oath_n especial_o of_o fracastorius_fw-la who_o have_v a_o public_a stipend_n and_o of_o the_o fear_n that_o the_o commerce_n of_o the_o neighbour_n city_n will_v be_v take_v away_o all_o which_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n transport_v to_o rome_n by_o his_o holiness_n commandment_n that_o the_o legate_n after_o the_o decree_n exhort_v they_o to_o go_v to_o bolonia_n and_o be_v arrive_v there_o do_v admonish_v they_o by_o letter_n so_o that_o they_o can_v say_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o legate_n because_o they_o confent_v not_o to_o the_o translation_n for_o the_o suffrage_n of_o all_o in_o the_o council_n be_v free_a they_o may_v dissent_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n but_o the_o mayor_n part_n have_v make_v a_o decree_n it_o be_v meet_v the_o lesser_a part_n shall_v yield_v or_o else_o never_o any_o thing_n will_v be_v determine_v that_o the_o return_n have_v be_v promise_v be_v true_a but_o it_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o decree_n in_o what_o form_n the_o promise_n be_v make_v if_o they_o tarry_v believe_v that_o the_o other_o will_v return_v why_o do_v they_o not_o answer_v the_o legate_n letter_n who_o admonish_v they_o to_o go_v to_o bolonia_n but_o when_o they_o say_v the_o suspicion_n of_o the_o pestilence_n be_v pretend_v it_o be_v probable_a they_o speak_v it_o by_o chance_n otherwise_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o the_o translation_n and_o not_o send_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n decree_n they_o shall_v incur_v the_o censure_n neither_o be_v that_o division_n ought_v worth_n if_o the_o cause_n be_v they_o or_o of_o god_n for_o as_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o no_o man_n will_v do_v they_o wrong_n as_o unto_o christ_n see_v the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o fact_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o clear_v that_o which_o be_v not_o manifest_a in_o the_o fact_n whereupon_o the_o emperor_n have_v call_v the_o legate_n pretend_v and_o the_o father_n of_o bolonia_n not_o a_o council_n but_o a_o private_a assembly_n and_o utter_v many_o opprobrious_a term_n against_o the_o translation_n it_o be_v reasonable_a the_o pope_n shall_v assume_v the_o cause_n not_o to_o cherish_v but_o to_o appease_v contention_n whether_o scandal_n have_v rise_v by_o the_o translation_n or_o by_o their_o remain_v in_o trent_n may_v be_v see_v by_o this_o only_a that_o their_o remain_v be_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o return_n can_v be_v and_o when_o they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n to_o cause_v the_o interrupt_a council_n to_o return_v if_o they_o understand_v it_o of_o the_o usual_a congregation_n they_o have_v never_o be_v intermit_v if_o of_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o decree_n this_o have_v be_v refer_v for_o their_o sake_n and_o so_o many_o thing_n be_v already_o discuss_v in_o bolonia_n as_o well_o of_o faith_n as_o reformation_n that_o a_o long_a session_n may_v be_v make_v thereof_o therefore_o they_o pray_v his_o holiness_n to_o give_v sentence_n consider_v that_o no_o council_n but_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n have_v last_v so_o long_o as_o this_o so_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v desire_v by_o their_o church_n unto_o which_o it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v restore_v this_o writing_n be_v present_v in_o the_o end_n of_o april_n after_o which_o there_o be_v no_o further_a proceed_n in_o the_o cause_n for_o that_o the_o depute_a cardinal_n know_v not_o how_o to_o conclude_v to_o pronounce_v the_o translation_n proceed_v the_o cardinal_n depute_v in_o this_o cause_n know_v not_o how_o to_o proceed_v lawful_a in_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o contradictor_n be_v to_o make_v a_o schism_n have_v no_o mean_n to_o enforce_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o sentence_n and_o they_o see_v less_o mean_n to_o force_v they_o to_o assist_v in_o the_o cause_n the_o pope_n be_v much_o trouble_v see_v no_o way_n to_o compose_v the_o difficulty_n without_o form_n of_o judgement_n while_o these_o thing_n be_v in_o question_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o duke_n his_o son_n the_o pope_n do_v continual_o demand_v the_o restitution_n of_o piacenza_n and_o of_o other_o place_n usurp_v in_o the_o district_n of_o parma_n make_v use_n of_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o emperor_n daughter_n wife_n to_o duke_n octavius_n son_n of_o he_o that_o be_v dead_a but_o the_o emperor_n purpose_v to_o join_v that_o city_n to_o the_o dukedom_n of_o milan_n and_o to_o recompense_v his_o son_n in_o law_n in_o something_o else_o delay_v the_o time_n with_o diverse_a answer_n and_o offer_v hope_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v eighty_o year_n of_o age_n and_o grieve_v for_o his_o son_n death_n and_o have_v many_o other_o distaste_v will_v end_v all_o the_o controversy_n by_o his_o death_n but_o the_o pope_n see_v he_o piacenza_n difference_n between_o the_o pope_n &_o emperor_n about_o the_o restitution_n of_o piacenza_n be_v delude_v with_o delay_n molest_v with_o request_n for_o the_o return_n of_o the_o council_n to_o trent_n and_o offend_v by_o the_o remain_a of_o the_o spaniard_n in_o the_o city_n to_o make_v a_o diversion_n at_o the_o least_o he_o let_v the_o emperor_n know_v that_o the_o usurper_n of_o piacenza_n a_o town_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n have_v incur_v the_o censure_n to_o the_o declaration_n of_o which_o he_o will_v proceed_v fulminate_v also_o more_o of_o they_o if_o within_o a_o certain_a time_n prefix_v it_o be_v not_o restore_v to_o he_o the_o emperor_n write_v back_o a_o sharp_a letter_n advise_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o cherish_v the_o fugitive_n of_o naples_n show_v that_o all_o the_o practice_n be_v know_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o he_o do_v understand_v the_o
it_o for_o themselves_o but_o in_o the_o article_n of_o concupiscence_n it_o speak_v just_a as_o the_o lutheran_n do_v as_o also_o of_o justification_n place_v it_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o promise_n and_o attribute_v too_o much_o yea_o all_o to_o faith_n in_o the_o article_n of_o good_a work_n nothing_o be_v say_v of_o the_o merit_n of_o condignity_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a point_n in_o that_o matter_n in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o have_v not_o derive_v unity_n from_o the_o visible_a head_n which_o be_v essential_a and_o which_o be_v worse_o have_v make_v a_o church_n invisible_a by_o charity_n and_o then_o make_v the_o same_o visible_a that_o it_o be_v a_o secret_a artifice_n to_o destroy_v the_o hierarchy_n and_o establish_v the_o lutheran_n opinion_n that_o to_o have_v make_v note_n of_o the_o church_n soundness_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v give_v a_o way_n to_o all_o sect_n to_o hold_v obstinate_o themselves_o to_o be_v the_o church_n conceal_v the_o true_a mark_n which_o be_v the_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o say_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v appoint_v for_o remedy_n of_o schism_n and_o bishop_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v endure_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v make_v most_o lutheran-like_a in_o that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o believe_v to_o receive_v with_o this_o sacrament_n that_o which_o christ_n have_v promise_v it_o happen_v to_o every_o one_o as_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v conceal_v that_o it_o be_v expiatory_a and_o propitiatory_a for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a that_o have_v grant_v wife_n to_o priest_n and_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o laity_n every_o one_o may_v see_v that_o with_o those_o two_o abuse_n the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n be_v overthrow_v all_o the_o court_n lay_v with_o one_o voice_n that_o the_o principal_a point_n be_v in_o question_n that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v shake_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o employ_v all_o their_o force_n to_o excite_v all_o prince_n to_o send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o nation_n and_z by_o all_o mean_n to_o resist_v this_o beginning_n from_z whence_o will_v undoubted_o follow_v not_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o that_o be_v impossible_a but_o a_o great_a deformation_n and_o dishonour_n than_o ever_o but_o the_o old_a pope_n be_v most_o sensible_a who_o with_o the_o acuteness_n of_o other_o where_o the_o pope_n differ_v in_o opinion_n from_o all_o other_o his_o judgement_n see_v more_o than_o they_o all_o do_v immediate_o penetrate_v to_o the_o bottom_n and_o judge_v that_o the_o enterprise_n will_v be_v good_a for_o he_o and_o pernicious_a for_o the_o emperor_n he_o marvel_v much_o at_o the_o wisdom_n and_o counsel_n of_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n that_o by_o one_o victory_n he_o shall_v think_v he_o be_v make_v judge_n of_o all_o mankind_n and_o presuppose_v he_o be_v able_a to_o contest_v with_o both_o party_n that_o a_o prince_n adhere_v to_o one_o may_v oppress_v another_o but_o to_o contend_v with_o both_o be_v too_o much_o boldness_n of_o vanity_n he_o foresee_v that_o the_o doctrine_n will_v general_o more_o displease_v the_o catholic_n than_o the_o court_n and_o the_o protestant_n most_o of_o all_o and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v impugn_a by_o all_o and_o defend_v by_o none_o wherein_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o his_o pain_n because_o his_o enemy_n will_v work_v for_o he_o more_o than_o himself_o can_v do_v and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o permit_v the_o publication_n of_o it_o then_o to_o hinder_v it_o and_o rather_o be_v in_o this_o state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v then_o when_o it_o be_v reform_v that_o it_o may_v more_o easy_o fall_v only_o there_o be_v need_n of_o three_o thing_n that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v not_o know_v this_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v put_v upon_o the_o business_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v and_o that_o the_o first_o blow_n shall_v be_v against_o the_o protestant_n to_o effect_v the_o first_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o make_v a_o light_a opposition_n in_o some_o thing_n for_o the_o second_o to_o set_v on_o foot_n the_o interest_n of_o the_o german_a prelate_n and_o for_o the_o three_o to_o make_v it_o cunning_o appear_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v collect_v not_o to_o unite_v both_o party_n but_o only_o to_o curb_v the_o protestant_n by_o which_o mean_v a_o great_a point_n be_v gain_v that_o be_v that_o a_o secular_a prince_n do_v not_o make_v article_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o faithful_a but_o for_o those_o that_o err_v therefore_o he_o send_v instruction_n to_o cardinal_n sfondrato_n to_o make_v some_o germany_n his_o instruction_n to_o his_o legate_n in_o germany_n opposition_n and_o when_o the_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v publish_v that_o he_o may_v not_o be_v present_a to_o take_v leave_n and_o be_v go_v the_o cardinal_n according_a to_o his_o commission_n declare_v in_o the_o pope_n name_n that_o the_o permission_n to_o continue_v the_o receive_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o holy_a communion_n though_o he_o that_o receive_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v the_o custom_n of_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v abrogate_a long_o since_o be_v a_o thing_n reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o also_o the_o grant_n of_o marriage_n to_o priest_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o it_o have_v never_o be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n and_o the_o greek_n and_o eastern_a people_n who_o do_v not_o bind_v they_o to_o a_o single_a life_n do_v grant_v that_o marry_a man_n may_v receive_v order_n and_o keep_v their_o wife_n may_v exercise_v the_o ministry_n but_o do_v not_o nor_o ever_o do_v permit_v they_o to_o marry_v who_o be_v in_o order_n before_o he_o add_v that_o without_o doubt_n if_o his_o majesty_n will_v grant_v these_o thing_n to_o be_v lawful_a he_o shall_v grievous_o offend_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n but_o hold_v they_o unlawful_a he_o may_v permit_v they_o to_o the_o heretic_n as_o a_o lesser_a evil_n it_o be_v tolerable_a and_o belong_v to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o a_o prince_n when_o all_o evil_n can_v be_v remoove_v to_o suffer_v the_o least_o that_o the_o great_a may_v be_v root_v out_o that_o his_o holiness_n peruse_v the_o book_n see_v it_o be_v only_o a_o permission_n to_o the_o lutheran_n that_o they_o may_v not_o without_o end_n pass_v from_o one_o error_n to_o another_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o grant_v to_o the_o catholic_n to_o believe_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n but_o according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a sea_n which_o only_o as_o mistress_n of_o the_o faithful_a may_v make_v decree_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o be_v assure_v that_o this_o be_v his_o majesty_n purpose_n he_o tell_v he_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o make_v a_o express_a declaration_n thereof_o and_o not_o to_o give_v the_o reins_n so_o much_o to_o the_o lutheran_n especial_o in_o the_o power_n of_o change_a ceremony_n consider_v that_o in_o the_o last_o point_n he_o seem_v to_o give_v they_o too_o much_o liberty_n where_o he_o grant_v that_o the_o ceremony_n which_o may_v give_v cause_n of_o superstition_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o he_o add_v that_o the_o lutheran_n will_v hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o retain_v the_o ecclesiastical_a good_n and_o jurisdiction_n usurp_v if_o they_o be_v not_o command_v to_o make_v restitution_n wherein_o a_o council_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v but_o execution_n present_o make_v and_o that_o the_o spoil_n be_v notorious_o know_v he_o need_v not_o observe_v the_o nice_a point_n of_o law_n but_o proceed_v summary_o and_o with_o his_o princely_a power_n this_o censure_n be_v impart_v by_o caesar_n to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a elector_n who_o protestant_n the_o ecclesiastical_a elector_n approve_v the_o pope_n censure_n of_o the_o interim_n especial_o concern_v restitution_n of_o good_n usurp_v by_o the_o protestant_n do_v approve_v it_o but_o particular_o for_o the_o point_n of_o restitution_n of_o ecclesiastical_a good_n they_o affirm_v it_o be_v necessary_a without_o which_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n can_v not_o be_v restore_v nor_o religion_n preserve_v nor_o peace_n well_o assure_v and_o that_o because_o the_o spoil_n be_v manifest_a justice_n do_v require_v a_o short_a proceed_n all_o the_o bishop_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n the_o secular_a prince_n be_v silent_a for_o fear_v of_o offend_v the_o emperor_n and_o by_o their_o example_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o city_n speak_v but_o little_a and_o of_o that_o little_a little_a account_n interim_n wherefore_o the_o emperor_n make_v a_o proheme_n to_o the_o interim_n be_v make_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o legate_n remonstrance_n the_o emperor_n cause_v a_o proheme_n to_o be_v make_v
to_o treat_v with_o cardinal_n pacceco_n but_o that_o he_o will_v let_v he_o know_v the_o capitulation_n which_o he_o require_v that_o he_o may_v resolve_v whether_o that_o medicine_n will_v cure_v the_o malady_n of_o germany_n or_o shall_v think_v of_o other_o remedy_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o continue_v long_o in_o that_o state_n the_o pope_n consider_v with_o his_o inward_a friend_n that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o important_a deliberation_n which_o can_v happen_v in_o all_o his_o papacy_n do_v balance_v make_v and_o the_o pope_n do_v serious_o deliberate_v what_o answer_n to_o make_v the_o reason_n which_o may_v persuade_v or_o dissuade_v it_o first_o he_o consider_v that_o remit_v the_o council_n to_o trent_n he_o condemn_v the_o translation_n to_o bolonia_n which_o be_v principal_o his_o deed_n and_o so_o shall_v plain_o confess_v he_o have_v do_v amiss_o either_o willing_o or_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o another_o and_o if_o there_o have_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o translation_n it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a weight_n but_o have_v make_v himself_o a_o party_n to_o defend_v it_o and_o so_o earnest_o he_o can_v not_o excuse_v himself_o of_o malice_n if_o he_o do_v so_o easy_o retract_v it_o and_o which_o import_v most_o he_o shall_v put_v himself_o into_o all_o those_o danger_n from_o which_o paul_n a_o most_o wise_a prince_n think_v fit_a to_o secure_v himself_o &_o persevere_v in_o that_o opinion_n until_o his_o death_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a error_n to_o reenter_v into_o they_o and_o though_o many_o be_v not_o ill_o affect_v to_o he_o be_v a_o new_a pope_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o mayor_n part_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v greve_v at_o the_o pope_n but_o at_o the_o popedom_n and_o for_o this_o particular_a no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o something_o may_v not_o happen_v in_o the_o progress_n which_o may_v raise_v he_o great_a hatred_n though_o without_o his_o fault_n beside_o all_o man_n be_v not_o move_v with_o hatred_n but_o those_o that_o hurt_v most_o desire_v to_o advantage_n themselves_o by_o depress_v other_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v conclude_v that_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o move_v paul_n will_v constrain_v julius_n also_o to_o the_o same_o resolution_n he_o consider_v the_o great_a trouble_n that_o paul_n sustain_v 26._o month_n for_o this_o cause_n and_o the_o indignity_n which_o he_o do_v necessary_o suffer_v and_o the_o diminution_n of_o the_o papal_a authority_n not_o only_o in_o germany_n but_o in_o italy_n also_o and_o if_o this_o do_v derogate_v from_o paul_n confirm_v so_o many_o year_n in_o the_o papacy_n and_o esteem_v by_o all_o it_o will_v do_v it_o from_o he_o much_o more_o be_v a_o new_a pope_n not_o have_v as_o yet_o make_v intelligence_n and_o adherence_n necessary_a for_o the_o enterprise_n of_o contest_v and_o if_o a_o protestation_n shall_v he_o lay_v on_o his_o back_n or_o a_o decree_n as_o the_o interim_n his_o authority_n will_v be_v scorn_v by_o all_o he_o be_v not_o to_o reckon_v of_o the_o pain_n in_o translate_n the_o council_n and_o his_o constancy_n in_o defend_v it_o because_o with_o the_o change_n of_o fortune_n whatsoever_o depend_v on_o it_o be_v change_v and_o the_o action_n of_o john_n maria_n di_fw-fr monte_fw-fr do_v not_o appertain_v to_o pope_n julius_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o give_v reputation_n unto_o that_o man_n do_v not_o give_v it_o unto_o this_o then_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o do_v as_o he_o do_v to_o show_v himself_o a_o faithful_a servant_n of_o his_o lord_n but_o now_o be_v lord_n himself_o the_o respect_n of_o constancy_n in_o serve_v well_o do_v quite_o cease_v and_o another_o do_v succeed_v which_o require_v wisdom_n in_o apply_v himself_o to_o the_o time_n he_o consider_v how_o popular_a the_o emperor_n request_n be_v in_o regard_n the_o reduce_n of_o germany_n be_v in_o question_n and_o how_o scandalous_a it_o will_v be_v not_o to_o hearken_v unto_o it_o the_o cause_n which_o move_v to_o make_v the_o council_n be_v plain_a and_o manifest_a to_o all_o those_o which_o dissuade_v be_v secret_a &_o know_v to_o few_o final_o the_o oath_n make_v and_o iterate_v aught_o to_o be_v regard_v which_o though_o it_o do_v bind_v to_o prosecute_v the_o council_n without_o prescribe_v the_o place_n yet_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o without_o the_o emperor_n consent_n be_v king_n of_o spain_n and_o naples_n prince_n of_o the_o low_a country_n and_o have_v other_o adherence_n in_o italy_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o make_v a_o general_a council_n so_o that_o to_o refuse_v to_o bring_v it_o back_o to_o trent_n and_o not_o to_o prosecute_v it_o be_v all_o one_o he_o incline_v to_o this_o part_n most_o as_o most_o agreeable_a to_o his_o disposition_n desirous_a rather_o to_o fly_v present_a incommodity_n then_o avoid_v future_a danger_n for_o choose_v to_o celebrate_v the_o council_n he_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o trouble_n which_o the_o emperor_n will_v give_v he_o and_o for_o the_o danger_n which_o it_o bring_v he_o begin_v to_o esteem_v they_o less_o he_o think_v the_o emperor_n fortune_n be_v not_o then_o the_o same_o as_o it_o be_v two_o year_n before_o for_o at_o that_o time_n the_o expectation_n of_o the_o victory_n which_o he_o after_o obtain_v give_v he_o reputation_n which_o now_o seem_v rather_o to_o be_v burdensome_a to_o he_o than_o any_o ease_n he_o hold_v two_o prince_n prisoner_n as_o wolf_n by_o the_o ear_n the_o city_n of_o germany_n do_v open_o inchne_v to_o rebellion_n the_o eccleisastic_n have_v a_o satiety_n of_o that_o domination_n there_o be_v also_o domestical_a cross_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o son_n brother_n and_o nephew_n who_o aspire_v to_o the_o empire_n a_o business_n which_o perhaps_o may_v give_v he_o trouble_v beyond_o his_o force_n in_o fine_a he_o conclude_v according_a to_o his_o disposition_n let_v we_o get_v out_o of_o the_o present_a difficulty_n with_o hope_n that_o our_o good_a fortune_n will_v not_o abandon_v us._n and_o conceal_v his_o resolution_n he_o depute_v a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n prelate_n he_o conceal_v his_o resolution_n until_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o a_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n and_o prelate_n and_o other_o prelate_n for_o the_o most_o part_n imperialist_n that_o they_o may_v fall_v upon_o the_o resolution_n which_o he_o have_v take_v mingle_v some_o few_o of_o his_o trusty_a friend_n among_o they_o to_o govern_v the_o business_n according_a to_o his_o purpose_n to_o these_o he_o propose_v the_o emperor_n request_n give_v order_n that_o without_o all_o respect_n every_o one_o shall_v speak_v what_o he_o think_v convenient_a for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o in_o case_n they_o think_v fit_a to_o condescend_v they_o shall_v think_v how_o to_o do_v it_o with_o honour_n security_n and_o fruit_n the_o congregation_n have_v often_o consult_v relate_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o they_o be_v of_o opinion_n the_o council_n shall_v be_v prosecute_v because_o such_o a_o oath_n be_v take_v in_o the_o conclave_n and_o by_o his_o holiness_n after_o his_o assumption_n and_o to_o take_v away_o scandal_n from_o the_o world_n which_o without_o doubt_n will_v be_v very_o great_a incase_o i●_n be_v not_o do_v and_o it_o may_v be_v prosecute_v two_o way_n one_o by_o continue_v it_o in_o bolonid_n another_o by_o remit_v it_o to_o trent_n it_o can_v not_o be_v continue_v in_o bolonia_n because_o paul_n have_v call_v to_o he_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o translation_n and_o inhibit_v to_o proceed_v any_o further_a if_o his_o holiness_n do_v not_o first_o give_v sentence_n that_o the_o translation_n be_v good_a it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o go_v on_o in_o that_o city_n and_o if_o he_o do_v he_o will_v give_v a_o lawful_a pretence_n to_o be_v suspect_v it_o be_v know_v that_o the_o translation_n be_v make_v by_o he_o as_o be_v the_o prime_a legate_n and_o precedent_n therefore_o only_a the_o other_o way_n remain_v to_o remit_v it_o to_o trent_n and_o all_o occasion_n be_v so_o take_v away_o from_o germany_n to_o spurn_v against_o it_o and_o the_o emperor_n be_v satisfy_v which_o be_v a_o very_a essential_a point_n this_o advice_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o pope_n be_v approve_v by_o he_o and_o so_o they_o pass_v to_o that_o which_o remain_v and_o first_o it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o consent_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o french_a debate_v the_o difficulty_n 〈…〉_o thing_fw-mi y_fw-es e_fw-it council_n to_o trent_n be_v debate_v king_n be_v necessary_a and_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n otherwise_o the_o reputation_n of_o the_o council_n will_v be_v very_o weak_a and_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o loose_v france_n only_o to_o endeavour_v to_o regain_v germany_n which_o be_v lose_v which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o
exhortation_n to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o then_o the_o archbishop_n the_o mass_n be_v sing_v and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ceremony_n end_v the_o secretary_n read_v a_o exhortation_n to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o precedent_n to_o this_o purpose_n that_o by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o two_o electour_n be_v enter_v into_o hope_n that_o many_o bishop_n of_o that_o and_o other_o nation_n will_v assist_v in_o the_o council_n they_o think_v fit_a in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o place_n they_o bear_v to_o give_v a_o little_a admonition_n to_o themselves_o and_o they_o though_o they_o see_v all_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o good_a pastor_n because_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v handle_v be_v of_o great_a moment_n that_o be_v to_o extirpate_v heresy_n to_o reform_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n from_o the_o corruption_n whereof_o heresy_n have_v rise_v and_o final_o to_o pacify_v the_o discord_n of_o prince_n that_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o exhortation_n aught_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o own_o insufficiency_n fly_v to_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n who_o will_v not_o fail_v they_o whereof_o they_o see_v many_o argument_n already_o but_o especial_o the_o come_n of_o the_o two_o prince_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o general_n counsel_n be_v always_o very_o great_a the_o holy_a ghost_n preside_v in_o they_o and_o their_o decree_n esteem_v not_o humane_a but_o divine_a that_o a_o example_n hereof_o have_v be_v leave_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o father_n follow_v see_v that_o by_o counsel_n all_o heretic_n have_v be_v condemn_v the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o priest_n and_o people_n reform_v and_o the_o discord_n of_o the_o church_n appease_v therefore_o be_v now_o assemble_v to_o do_v as_o much_o they_o must_v awaken_v themselves_o that_o they_o may_v regain_v the_o sheep_n that_o leap_v out_o of_o the_o lord_n fold_v and_o keep_v those_o which_o have_v not_o go_v astray_o as_o yet_o wherein_o the_o salvation_n of_o those_o only_o be_v not_o in_o question_n but_o their_o own_o too_o in_o regard_n they_o must_v give_v a_o account_n to_o god_n by_o who_o if_o they_o perform_v their_o duty_n they_o shall_v be_v reward_v and_o all_o posterity_n will_v attribute_v great_a praise_n to_o that_o council_n but_o they_o shall_v not_o aim_v at_o that_o but_o only_o at_o their_o own_o duty_n and_o charity_n towards_o the_o church_n which_o be_v afflict_v wound_a and_o deprive_v of_o so_o many_o dear_a child_n lift_v up_o her_o hand_n to_o god_n and_o they_o to_o restore_v they_o to_o she_o that_o therefore_o they_o will_v handle_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o council_n with_o all_o gentleness_n and_o without_o contention_n as_o become_v so_o great_a a_o assembly_n use_v perfect_a charity_n and_o consent_n of_o mind_n know_v that_o god_n do_v behold_v and_o judge_v they_o the_o exhortation_n be_v end_v the_o decree_n be_v read_v by_o the_o bishop_n that_o read_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o session_n be_v read_v say_v mass_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o holy_a synod_n which_o in_o the_o session_n past_a do_v determine_v to_o proceed_v in_o this_o have_v defer_v to_o do_v it_o until_o now_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o german_a nation_n and_o the_o small_a number_n of_o the_o father_n rejoice_v for_o the_o arrival_n of_o the_o two_o prince_n elector_n hope_v that_o many_o more_o of_o that_o and_o other_o nation_n will_n by_o their_o example_n hasten_v their_o come_n do_v defer_v the_o session_n for_o forty_o day_n that_o be_v until_o the_o eleven_o of_o october_n and_o prosecute_a the_o council_n in_o the_o state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v have_v treat_v already_o of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o confirmation_n do_v ordain_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o for_o reformation_n to_o handle_v those_o thing_n which_o do_v facilitate_v residency_n then_o the_o emperor_n proxy_n be_v read_v the_o earl_n of_o mountfort_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n after_o he_o have_v obtain_v the_o reduction_n of_o the_o council_n to_o trent_n never_o cease_v to_o labour_v that_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o state_n shall_v go_v thither_o which_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o electour_n and_o the_o frequency_n of_o the_o father_n do_v demonstrate_v and_o to_o testify_v his_o mind_n the_o more_o he_o have_v send_v don_n pedro_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n another_o of_o his_o patrimonial_a state_n and_o himself_o of_o germany_n though_o unworthy_a pray_v to_o be_v receive_v for_o such_o john_n baptista_n castello_n the_o speaker_n answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o council_n that_o they_o be_v glad_a to_o hear_v the_o emperor_n mandate_n have_v by_o it_o and_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o proctor_n conceive_v how_o much_o they_o may_v promise_v themselves_o therefore_o that_o it_o hope_v for_o assistance_n from_o they_o and_o do_v as_o much_o as_o it_o can_v admit_v the_o emperor_n mandate_n likewise_o the_o proxy_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n in_o the_o person_n of_o paulus_n gregorianus_n bishop_n of_o zagabria_n and_o of_o frederick_n nausea_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n be_v read_v and_o this_o second_o do_v speak_v and_o be_v answer_v as_o those_o of_o the_o emperor_n after_o this_o jacobus_n amiotus_fw-la abbot_n of_o bellosana_n appear_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o french_a king_n with_o letter_n of_o his_o majesty_n which_o he_o present_v to_o the_o legate_n synod_n the_o abbot_n of_o ballosana_n present_v the_o french_a king_n letter_n the_o inscription_n whereof_o give_v distaste_n to_o the_o synod_n desire_v they_o may_v be_v read_v and_o his_o credency_n hear_v the_o legate_n receive_v they_o give_v they_o to_o the_o secretary_n to_o be_v read_v the_o superscription_n be_v sanctissimis_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la patribus_fw-la conuentus_fw-la tridentini_n the_o bishop_n of_o orange_n and_o after_o he_o the_o other_o spaniard_n say_v aloud_o that_o those_o letter_n be_v not_o send_v unto_o they_o who_o be_v a_o general_a council_n and_o not_o a_o convent_n and_o therefore_o that_o they_o ought_v neither_o to_o be_v read_v nor_o open_v in_o public_a session_n but_o if_o the_o messenger_n have_v aught_o to_o say_v he_o shall_v go_v home_o much_o be_v speak_v concern_v the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n conuentus_fw-la the_o spaniard_n persist_v that_o it_o be_v injurious_a so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n be_v force_v to_o say_v that_o if_o they_o will_v not_o receive_v a_o letter_n from_o the_o king_n of_o france_n who_o call_v they_o sanctissimus_fw-la conuentus_fw-la how_o will_v they_o hearken_v to_o the_o protestant_n who_o call_v they_o conuentus_fw-la malignantium_fw-la but_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n continue_v still_o to_o be_v more_o tumultuous_a than_o the_o rest_n the_o legate_n with_o the_o nuncij_fw-la and_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n retire_v into_o the_o vestry_n and_o have_v a_o long_a disputation_n hereof_o at_o the_o last_o return_v to_o their_o place_n they_o make_v it_o be_v tell_v to_o the_o speaker_n that_o the_o synod_n do_v resolve_v to_o read_v the_o letter_n without_o prejudice_n think_v that_o the_o word_n conuentus_fw-la be_v not_o mean_v in_o a_o ill_a sense_n and_o if_o it_o be_v do_v protest_v of_o the_o nullity_n then_o the_o king_n letter_n be_v open_v and_o read_v which_o be_v date_v the_o 13._o of_o august_n and_o say_v in_o substance_n that_o it_o seem_v agreeable_a to_o the_o observance_n which_o his_o ancestor_n have_v always_o use_v towards_o the_o church_n to_o signify_v to_o they_o the_o cause_n why_o he_o have_v be_v force_v not_o to_o send_v any_o b._n to_o the_o convent_n call_v by_o julius_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o public_a council_n be_v assure_v that_o they_o the_o father_n will_v not_o condemn_v any_o man_n fact_n before_o they_o know_v it_o and_o that_o when_o they_o shall_v understand_v what_o he_o have_v do_v they_o will_v commend_v it_o that_o he_o be_v compel_v for_o preservation_n of_o his_o honour_n to_o continue_v in_o his_o resolution_n to_o protect_v the_o duke_n of_o parma_n from_o which_o he_o will_v not_o refuse_v to_o depart_v if_o justice_n and_o equity_n do_v permit_v that_o he_o write_v to_o they_o as_o to_o honourable_a judge_n pray_v they_o to_o receive_v the_o letter_n not_o as_o from_o a_o addersary_n they_o the_o content_n of_o they_o or_o a_o person_n unknowen_a but_o as_o from_o the_o prince_n and_o principal_a son_n of_o the_o church_n by_o inheritance_n of_o his_o ancestor_n who_o he_o promise_v always_o to_o imitate_v and_o while_o he_o defend_v himself_o from_o wrong_n not_o to_o lay_v aside_o his_o charity_n towards_o the_o church_n but_o ever_o to_o receive_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v constitute_v by_o she_o so_o that_o due_a order_n be_v observe_v in_o make_v the_o decree_n
man_n but_o be_v by_o all_o other_o know_v to_o be_v a_o error_n in_o the_o nine_o article_n the_o first_o part_n that_o as_o much_o be_v not_o contain_v under_o one_o species_n as_o under_o both_o be_v think_v to_o be_v heretical_a by_o the_o dutch_a divine_n but_o the_o italian_n say_v it_o must_v be_v distinguish_v before_o it_o can_v be_v condemn_v for_o if_o it_o be_v understand_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o consecration_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o under_o the_o bread_n there_o be_v the_o body_n only_o and_o under_o the_o wine_n the_o blood_n only_o but_o by_o consequence_n which_o the_o divine_n call_v concomitancie_n under_o the_o bread_n there_o be_v the_o blood_n soul_n and_o divinity_n and_o under_o the_o wine_n there_o be_v the_o body_n and_o the_o other_o thing_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v in_o so_o general_a term_n but_o for_o the_o second_o that_o as_o much_o be_v receive_v by_o one_o as_o by_o both_o there_o be_v a_o difference_n for_o many_o do_v think_v that_o although_o no_o more_o of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o more_o grace_n be_v receive_v so_o that_o they_o do_v desire_v a_o declaration_n herein_o in_o the_o ten_o some_o will_v have_v the_o first_o part_n expound_v of_o dead_a faith_n because_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o a_o lively_a faith_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o necessity_n of_o confession_n the_o dominican_n consider_v that_o many_o learned_a and_o holy_a catholic_n hold_v that_o opinion_n so_o that_o to_o condemn_v that_o will_v be_v to_o condemn_v they_o other_o propose_v for_o a_o temper_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v condemn_v as_o heretical_a but_o as_o pernicious_a some_o will_v have_v this_o condition_n add_v if_o there_o be_v commodity_n for_o a_o confessor_n the_o last_o part_n for_o communicate_v at_o easter_n it_o not_o be_v command_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o church_n only_o the_o common_a opinion_n be_v that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o heretical_a it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o hear_v of_o that_o one_o shall_v be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n for_o not_o approve_v a_o particular_a humane_a precept_n many_o divine_n do_v propose_v another_o article_n also_o take_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o luther_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o condemn_v and_o it_o be_v this_o that_o although_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o recite_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o the_o cause_n be_v the_o faith_n of_o he_o who_o receive_v it_o after_o all_o the_o divine_n have_v speak_v the_o depute_a father_n do_v collect_v seven_o compose_v out_o of_o which_o 7._o anathematism_n be_v compose_v anathematism_n out_o of_o their_o opinion_n which_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o general_a congregation_n it_o be_v first_o of_o all_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o pass_v over_o the_o matter_n with_o anathematism_n only_o that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o teach_v but_o only_o to_o confirm_v that_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v not_o do_v so_o which_o always_o have_v expound_v the_o catholic_a opinion_n and_o then_o condemn_v the_o contrary_a that_o the_o same_o succeed_v well_o to_o this_o council_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o justification_n and_o although_o it_o be_v force_v in_o the_o session_n of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o change_v this_o course_n for_o urgent_a respect_n yet_o that_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v imitate_v which_o be_v then_o do_v by_o reason_n then_o that_o which_o be_v after_o change_v by_o necessity_n this_o opinion_n be_v cherish_v by_o the_o italian_a divine_n who_o see_v there_o be_v but_o one_o way_n to_o regain_v their_o reputation_n lose_v for_o as_o the_o dutch_a and_o flemish_a divine_n be_v of_o ability_n to_o prove_v the_o conclusion_n by_o authority_n so_o to_o expound_v they_o and_o find_v their_o cause_n there_o be_v need_n of_o school_n divinity_n in_o which_o themselves_o be_v well_o see_v this_o opinion_n do_v prevail_v and_o order_n be_v give_v that_o the_o head_n of_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v frame_v and_o father_n depute_v to_o see_v it_o do_v the_o head_n be_v reduce_v to_o the_o number_n of_o eight_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o excellency_n discuss_v eight_o head_n of_o doctrine_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v discuss_v of_o transubstantiation_n of_o worship_n of_o preparation_n to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o laity_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o child_n it_o be_v propose_v also_o to_o make_v a_o collection_n of_o the_o abuse_n which_o do_v occur_v and_o to_o add_v the_o remedy_n then_o in_o that_o congregation_n and_o some_o of_o those_o that_o follow_v the_o father_n begin_v to_o speak_v their_o opinion_n concern_v the_o seven_o anathematism_n wherein_o nothing_o remarkable_a be_v say_v but_o that_o in_o condemn_v those_o who_o confess_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n many_o desire_v that_o the_o canon_n shall_v be_v more_o fat_a and_o pregnant_a for_o so_o their_o word_n be_v that_o in_o the_o eucharist_n there_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o same_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n do_v suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n be_v bury_v raise_v and_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n and_o some_o of_o they_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o there_o want_v one_o very_o important_a point_n that_o be_v to_o declare_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o priest_n lawful_o ordain_v which_o they_o do_v because_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n do_v often_o say_v that_o every_o christian_n may_v do_v it_o even_o a_o woman_n but_o the_o earl_n of_o montfort_n perceive_v that_o they_o treat_v of_o a_o matter_n much_o controverse_v especial_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n which_o be_v the_o most_o palpable_a popular_a and_o best_a understand_v by_o all_o he_o think_v that_o if_o kind_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o ferdinand_n dissuade_v the_o discussion_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n that_o be_v determine_v the_o protestant_n will_v never_o be_v induce_v to_o come_v to_o the_o council_n and_o all_o the_o labour_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o have_v impart_v this_o to_o his_o colleague_n and_o the_o ambassador_n of_o ferdinand_n they_o go_v all_o together_o to_o the_o precedent_n to_o who_o when_o they_o have_v show_v what_o pain_n caesar_n have_v take_v both_o in_o war_n and_o in_o the_o negotiation_n to_o make_v the_o protestant_n submit_v to_o the_o council_n which_o they_o will_v never_o do_v if_o they_o go_v not_o thither_o they_o show_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o apply_v themselves_o principal_o to_o this_o and_o to_o that_o end_n the_o emperor_n have_v give_v they_o a_o safe_a conduct_n but_o they_o be_v not_o content_v with_o it_o allege_v that_o it_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o real_o execute_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o bind_v by_o the_o safe_a conduct_n of_o any_o whatsoever_o he_o be_v and_o therefore_o they_o require_v one_o from_o the_o synod_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o they_o by_o caesar_n who_o give_v charge_n to_o they_o his_o ambassador_n to_o obtain_v it_o of_o the_o council_n whereunto_o the_o legate_n make_v a_o very_a complemental_a answer_n and_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o session_n which_o shall_v be_v hold_v to_o gain_v time_n that_o he_o may_v give_v a_o account_n thereof_o to_o rome_n the_o earl_n add_v that_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n he_o think_v it_o not_o fit_a that_o before_o their_o come_n the_o controversed_a point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v be_v handle_v that_o there_o want_v not_o matter_n of_o reformation_n to_o be_v treat_v on_o or_o other_o in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n the_o legate_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v resolve_v long_o ago_o to_o handle_v the_o eucharist_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v alter_v because_o it_o be_v conclude_v before_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n and_o reformation_n shall_v go_v hand_n in_o hand_n and_o that_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n do_v follow_v that_o of_o reformation_n which_o be_v handle_v last_o before_o they_o go_v to_o bolonia_n but_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v more_o controversed_a with_o the_o zinglian_n swiss_n then_o with_o the_o protestant_n who_o be_v not_o sacramentary_n as_o those_o the_o count_n speak_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o say_v that_o if_o that_o point_n be_v decide_v against_o they_o which_o be_v understand_v by_o all_o the_o people_n and_o a_o thing_n whereon_o they_o stand_v most_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o reduce_v they_o that_o caesar_n also_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o
order_n with_o who_o blood_n justice_n have_v nothing_o to_o do_v if_o so_o much_o solemnity_n do_v not_o precede_v it_o be_v just_o order_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o do_v it_o but_o in_o public_a apparel_v with_o the_o holy_a vestment_n and_o which_o more_o import_v with_o the_o assistance_n of_o twelve_o bishop_n in_o the_o degradation_n of_o a_o bishop_n of_o six_o in_o the_o degradation_n of_o a_o priest_n of_o three_o in_o the_o degradation_n of_o a_o deacon_n who_o be_v to_o be_v present_a in_o their_o pontifical_a ornament_n and_o it_o seem_v strange_a that_o a_o bishop_n who_o may_v give_v a_o degree_n without_o company_n can_v not_o take_v it_o away_o alone_o pope_n innocentius_n the_o three_o remoove_v the_o marvel_v with_o a_o maxim_n which_o have_v not_o much_o probability_n say_v that_o temporal_a building_n be_v hardly_o erect_v and_o easy_o pull_v down_o but_o spiritual_a contrary_o be_v easy_o build_v and_o hardly_o destroy_v the_o vulgar_a hold_v the_o degradation_n for_o a_o necessary_a thing_n and_o when_o it_o happen_v run_v to_o it_o with_o unspeakable_a frequency_n but_o learned_a man_n do_v know_v the_o bottom_n of_o it_o for_o have_v determine_v that_o in_o the_o collation_n of_o the_o order_n a_o sign_n be_v imprint_v in_o the_o soul_n call_v a_o character_n which_o be_v impossible_a to_o blot_v out_o or_o remove_v by_o degradation_n this_o remain_v a_o pure_a ceremony_n perform_v for_o reputation_n only_o in_o germany_n there_o be_v but_o few_o bishop_n it_o can_v not_o be_v do_v without_o immense_a charge_n to_o bring_v so_o many_o into_o one_o place_n and_o those_o dutch_a prelate_n who_o be_v in_o the_o council_n for_o the_o most_o part_n prince_n do_v know_v more_o than_o other_o how_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o example_n sake_n to_o punish_v with_o death_n the_o wickedness_n of_o priest_n wherefore_o they_o desire_v that_o provision_n shall_v be_v make_v therein_o this_o particular_a be_v much_o discuss_v and_o in_o the_o end_n it_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o change_v the_o ceremony_n by_o any_o mean_n but_o to_o find_v a_o temper_n that_o the_o difficulty_n and_o the_o cost_n may_v be_v moderate_v the_o legate_n though_o every_o week_n he_o have_v give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o all_o occurrence_n yet_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o establish_v in_o congregation_n the_o draught_n of_o the_o decree_n that_o he_o may_v send_v a_o copy_n of_o they_o and_o receive_v a_o answer_n before_o the_o session_n wherefore_o the_o general_a congregation_n be_v assemble_v not_o make_v mention_n of_o what_o be_v write_v to_o he_o from_o rome_n he_o make_v a_o relation_n of_o that_o which_o the_o earl_n of_o mountfort_n have_v represent_v add_v that_o the_o request_n for_o a_o safe_a conduct_n seem_v reasonable_a and_o also_o the_o defer_v of_o whatsoever_o can_v be_v defer_v with_o honour_n for_o have_v appoint_v already_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o day_n of_o september_n they_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o do_v it_o but_o to_o omit_v some_o point_n more_o important_a and_o more_o controversed_a be_v a_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v grant_v and_o the_o voice_n be_v collect_v all_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o safe_a conduct_n shall_v be_v give_v but_o concern_v the_o matter_n to_o be_v handle_v some_o thought_n that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o their_o honour_n to_o defer_v it_o if_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o give_v security_n that_o they_o will_v come_v to_o handle_v it_o and_o submit_v themselves_o to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n other_o say_v that_o their_o honour_n be_v save_v if_o it_o be_v do_v at_o their_o protestant_n a_o dispute_n what_o point_v of_o doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v handle_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o protestant_n request_n and_o this_o be_v the_o more_o common_a opinion_n then_o the_o legate_n add_v that_o they_o may_v reserve_v the_o matter_n of_o minister_a the_o cup_n to_o the_o laity_n and_o to_o show_v that_o they_o do_v not_o come_v for_o one_o article_n only_o they_o may_v join_v also_o with_o it_o the_o communion_n of_o child_n and_o order_n be_v take_v to_o compose_v the_o decree_n in_o this_o particular_a which_o be_v read_v some_o thought_n it_o be_v too_o little_a to_o reserve_v two_o article_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o divide_v the_o first_o into_o three_o and_o so_o reserve_v four_o and_o to_o add_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o controversy_n whereof_o be_v great_a for_o so_o it_o will_v appear_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v reserve_v and_o the_o most_o principal_a and_o in_o this_o opinion_n all_o do_v agree_v and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o protestant_n desire_v to_o be_v hear_v concern_v these_o a_o prelate_n of_o germany_n stand_v up_o and_o ask_v by_o who_o and_o to_o who_o this_o request_n be_v make_v because_o it_o do_v much_o import_n that_o this_o shall_v appear_v otherwise_o when_o they_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v not_o true_a the_o honour_n of_o the_o council_n will_v be_v much_o blemish_v but_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o what_o count_n mountfort_n have_v say_v as_o of_o himself_o and_o that_o also_o not_o restrain_v to_o those_o four_o head_n nor_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o in_o general_a of_o all_o the_o controversy_n they_o be_v much_o trouble_v how_o to_o resolve_v to_o show_v that_o this_o reservation_n be_v make_v by_o their_o own_o motion_n beside_o that_o it_o be_v a_o indignity_n it_o do_v draw_v a_o objection_n upon_o they_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o reserve_v all_o this_o way_n be_v find_v to_o be_v least_o ill_a not_o to_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n make_v request_n but_o that_o they_o desire_v to_o be_v hear_v whereof_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n make_v because_o they_o have_v say_v it_o upon_o diverse_a occasion_n and_o though_o they_o mean_v concern_v all_o the_o controversy_n yet_o it_o be_v no_o falsity_n to_o speak_v that_o of_o a_o part_n which_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o whole_a number_n not_o exclude_v the_o rest_n some_o thought_n that_o this_o be_v to_o hide_v themselves_o behind_o a_o thread_n but_o yet_o it_o do_v pass_v because_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o do_v better_o for_o this_o cause_n the_o matter_n reserve_v be_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o head_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o anathematism_n these_o which_o remain_v be_v for_o more_o perspicuity_n divide_v and_o reduce_v to_o eleven_o when_o they_o be_v to_o make_v the_o decree_n against_o the_o abuse_n they_o know_v not_o where_o to_o put_v they_o among_o those_o of_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v place_v be_v of_o ceremony_n and_o use_n with_o those_o of_o reformation_n they_o do_v not_o agree_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o diversity_n of_o the_o matter_n to_o rank_n they_o by_o themselves_o be_v a_o novitie_n and_o do_v alter_v the_o order_n set_v down_o after_o a_o long_o dispute_v it_o be_v conclude_v to_o omit_v they_o now_o and_o after_o to_o place_v they_o with_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o point_n of_o the_o reformation_n be_v accept_v without_o difficulty_n have_v be_v already_o establish_v by_o themselves_o there_o remain_v the_o form_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n which_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o precedent_n to_o compose_v by_o the_o help_n of_o those_o who_o have_v experience_n in_o such_o thing_n which_o assist_v the_o legate_n to_o make_v that_o form_n pass_v which_o be_v send_v he_o from_o rome_n the_o eleven_o of_o october_n be_v come_v they_o go_v to_o the_o church_n as_o they_o be_v wont_a the_o bishop_n of_o maiorica_n sing_v mass_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o torre_n make_v the_o sermon_n which_o be_v all_o in_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o other_o usual_a ceremony_n be_v perform_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v read_v by_o the_o bishop_n that_o do_v celebrate_v the_o mass_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n assemble_v to_o declare_v the_o ancient_a faith_n hold_v a_o session_n be_v hold_v and_o to_o remedy_v the_o inconvenience_n cause_v by_o the_o sect_n do_v desire_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o root_v cut_v the_o cockle_n sow_v in_o the_o field_n of_o the_o eucharist_n therefore_o eucharist_n the_o decree_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o eucharist_n teach_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n ever_o believe_v by_o the_o church_n it_o do_v prohibit_v all_o the_o faithful_a hereafter_o to_o believe_v teach_v or_o preach_v otherwise_o then_o be_v declare_v first_o it_o teach_v that_o in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o the_o consecration_n christ_n be_v contain_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o under_o the_o appearance_n of_o the_o sensible_a thing_n notwithstanding_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n by_o a_o natural_a existence_n because_o he_o be_v present_a in_o his_o substance_n in_o
saint_n james_n do_v understand_v the_o ancient_n for_o age_n and_o not_o the_o priest_n ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o if_o any_o marvel_n why_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o head_n of_o the_o doctrine_n that_o end_n 14._o article_n of_o reformation_n be_v handle_v in_o which_o the_o precedent_n of_o the_o synod_n &_o the_o bishop_n have_v diverse_a end_n this_o sacrament_n be_v insinuate_v by_o christ_n our_o lord_n in_o saint_n mark_v and_o publish_v in_o saint_n james_n whereas_o the_o antecedence_n and_o consequence_n of_o the_o word_n do_v require_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v say_v insinuate_v but_o institute_v he_o may_v know_v that_o it_o be_v first_o so_o write_v but_o a_o divine_a have_v observe_v that_o the_o apostle_n who_o anoint_a the_o sick_a of_o who_o saint_n mark_v speak_v be_v not_o priest_n because_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v that_o priesthood_n be_v confer_v upon_o they_o only_o in_o the_o last_o supper_n it_o seem_v a_o contradiction_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o unction_n which_o they_o give_v be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o that_o priest_n only_o be_v minister_n of_o it_o whereunto_o some_o who_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n and_o at_o that_o time_n institute_v by_o christ_n do_v answer_v that_o christ_n command_v they_o to_o minister_v the_o unction_n make_v they_o priest_n concern_v that_o act_n only_o as_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v a_o simple_a priest_n to_o give_v the_o sacrament_n of_o chrism_n he_o make_v he_o a_o bishop_n for_o that_o act_n yet_o it_o be_v think_v too_o dangerous_a to_o affirm_v it_o absolute_o therefore_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o word_n institutum_fw-la they_o put_v insinuatum_fw-la which_o word_n what_o it_o may_v signify_v in_o such_o a_o matter_n every_o one_o may_v judge_v who_o understand_v what_o insinuare_fw-la be_v and_o do_v apply_v it_o to_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n than_o do_v and_o to_o that_o which_o be_v command_v by_o saint_n james_n and_o to_o the_o determination_n make_v by_o this_o council_n but_o in_o matter_n of_o reformation_n as_o have_v be_v say_v fourteen_o article_n be_v propose_v all_o belong_v to_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n whereof_o when_o they_o have_v understand_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o canonist_n in_o the_o particular_a congregation_n and_o read_v all_o in_o the_o general_a they_o come_v to_o frame_v the_o decree_n herein_o the_o aim_n of_o the_o b_o b_o be_v to_o increase_v their_o authority_n &_o to_o recover_v that_o which_o the_o pope_n have_v usurp_v from_o they_o and_o of_o the_o precedent_n to_o grant_v as_o little_a as_o they_o can_v but_o both_o party_n do_v proceed_v cunning_o and_o make_v show_v to_o regard_v only_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a discipline_n the_o bishop_n think_v they_o be_v hinder_v in_o execute_v their_o office_n for_o when_o they_o do_v suspend_v any_o from_o exercise_n of_o their_o order_n or_o ecclesiastical_a degree_n and_o dignity_n for_o cause_n know_v to_o themselves_o or_o do_v refuse_v to_o let_v they_o pass_v to_o high_a degree_n all_o be_v retract_v by_o a_o licence_n or_o dispensation_n get_v at_o rome_n which_o cause_v a_o disreputation_n of_o the_o bishop_n damnation_n of_o soul_n and_o a_o total_a ruin_n of_o discipline_n concern_v this_o the_o first_o head_n be_v make_v that_o such_o licence_n and_o restitution_n shall_v not_o be_v offorce_o but_o the_o precedent_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n will_v not_o have_v the_o pope_n name_v nor_o the_o chief_a penitentiary_n nor_o any_o minister_n of_o the_o court_n from_o who_o such_o licence_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v obtain_v the_o titular_a bishop_n do_v also_o hinder_v they_o who_o be_v deprive_v by_o a_o decree_n publish_v in_o the_o sixth_o session_n of_o power_n to_o exercise_v the_o pontifical_a office_n in_o the_o diocese_n without_o leave_n of_o the_o proper_a bishop_n do_v retire_v themselves_o into_o a_o place_n exempt_a from_o all_o bishopriques_n admit_v those_o to_o holy_a order_n who_o be_v before_o reject_v as_o unfit_a by_o their_o own_o bishop_n which_o they_o do_v by_o virtue_n of_o a_o privilege_n to_o ordain_v any_o that_o offer_v himself_o unto_o they_o this_o be_v prohibit_v in_o the_o second_o head_n but_o with_o this_o moderation_n that_o for_o reverence_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n mention_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v who_o grant_v the_o privilege_n and_o consequent_o in_o the_o three_o head_n power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n to_o suspend_v for_o what_o time_n they_o please_v any_o one_o ordain_v without_o their_o examination_n or_o with_o licence_n by_o faculty_n give_v by_o whosoever_o these_o thing_n the_o wise_a sort_n of_o bishop_n know_v to_o be_v of_o small_a weight_n because_o the_o canonist_n do_v hold_v that_o 344_o 344_o licence_n privilege_n and_o faculty_n grant_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v never_o comprehend_v in_o general_a word_n without_o special_a mention_n be_v make_v of_o they_o but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o obtain_v more_o they_o be_v content_a with_o this_o hope_v that_o time_n may_v open_v they_o a_o way_n to_o proceed_v further_o it_o be_v also_o decree_v in_o the_o same_o six_o session_n that_o no_o secular_a clerk_n by_o virtue_n of_o personal_a privilege_n nor_o regular_a dwell_v out_o of_o the_o monastery_n by_o vigour_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o order_n shall_v be_v exempt_a from_o the_o correction_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o delegate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n which_o some_o think_v not_o to_o contain_v the_o canon_n of_o cathedral_n church_n and_o other_o collegiate_n dignity_n who_o not_o by_o privilege_n but_o by_o ancient_a custom_n or_o by_o sentence_n put_v in_o execution_n or_o by_o concordates_n with_o the_o bishop_n establish_v and_o swear_v be_v in_o possession_n of_o not_o be_v subject_n to_o bishop_n and_o other_o also_o restrain_v it_o only_o to_o visitation_n it_o be_v ordain_v in_o the_o four_o head_n that_o concern_v secular_a clerk_n it_o shall_v be_v extend_v to_o all_o time_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o excess_n and_o declare_v that_o none_o of_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a shall_v withstand_v another_o disorder_n as_o great_a do_v arise_v because_o the_o pope_n do_v grant_v a_o judge_n at_o the_o election_n of_o the_o supplicant_n to_o whosoever_o do_v seek_v it_o by_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n use_v in_o court_n with_o authority_n to_o defend_v protect_v and_o maintain_v he_o in_o possession_n of_o his_o right_n and_o to_o remove_v the_o molestation_n give_v he_o extend_v also_o this_o favour_n to_o all_o his_o domestics_n and_o this_o sort_n of_o judge_n be_v call_v conseruator_n who_o do_v stretch_v their_o authority_n in_o place_n of_o defend_v the_o supplicant_n from_o molestation_n to_o withdraw_v he_o from_o just_a correction_n and_o also_o at_o their_o instance_n to_o molest_v and_o trouble_v the_o bishop_n and_o other_o ordinary_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n with_o censure_n the_o five_o point_n make_v provision_n against_o this_o disorder_n ordain_v that_o conseruatorie_a grace_n shall_v not_o help_v any_o body_n nor_o free_v he_o from_o inquisition_n accusation_n and_o convention_n before_o the_o ordinary_a in_o criminal_a and_o mix_v cause_n and_o in_o civil_a also_o in_o which_o he_o be_v plaintiff_n and_o in_o other_o cause_n if_o the_o conseruator_fw-la be_v suspect_v or_o difficulty_n arise_v between_o he_o and_o the_o ordinary_a who_o be_v competent_a judge_n that_o arbitrator_n shall_v be_v choose_v according_a to_o the_o form_n of_o the_o law_n and_o that_o conseruatory_n letter_n which_o comprehend_v domestic_n shall_v be_v extend_v but_o unto_o two_o who_o do_v live_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n and_o that_o these_o and_o the_o like_a grace_n shall_v not_o continue_v above_o five_o year_n and_o that_o the_o conseruator_n shall_v not_o have_v tribunal_n but_o the_o synod_n do_v not_o mean_a to_o contain_v in_o this_o decree_n university_n college_n of_o doctor_n and_o scholar_n place_n of_o regulars_n and_o hospital_n concern_v which_o exception_n when_o this_o point_n be_v handle_v there_o be_v very_o great_a contention_n it_o seem_v to_o the_o bishop_n that_o against_o all_o right_a the_o exception_n be_v large_a than_o the_o rule_n because_o the_o number_n of_o doctor_n scholar_n regulars_n and_o hospitalary_n be_v great_a than_o of_o all_o other_o who_o can_v have_v conseruatorie_a letter_n and_o that_o the_o provision_n against_o any_o particular_a man_n be_v easy_a but_o the_o disorder_n of_o university_n and_o college_n be_v of_o the_o great_a importance_n the_o legate_n give_v a_o account_n hereof_o to_o rome_n where_o it_o be_v decide_v by_o that_o which_o be_v consult_v under_o paul_n the_o three_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n that_o the_o friar_n and_o university_n shall_v total_o depend_v on_o
though_o for_o other_o end_n as_o have_v be_v say_v yet_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_v all_o the_o singularity_n of_o they_o now_o that_o christ_n will_v introduce_v a_o rite_n to_o confess_v our_o sin_n in_o particular_a so_o exact_o as_o that_o no_o use_n be_v ever_o the_o like_a it_o seem_v strange_a that_o he_o will_v be_v understand_v by_o word_n from_o which_o it_o must_v be_v draw_v by_o a_o very_a unjointed_a consequence_n yea_o by_o many_o consequence_n very_o far_o fetch_v as_o be_v do_v by_o the_o council_n and_o they_o wonder_v why_o the_o institution_n be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n remitto_fw-la the_o form_n be_v not_o i_o remit_v thy_o sin_n rather_o than_o jabsolue_v thou_o other_o add_v that_o if_o by_o those_o word_n a_o sacrament_n of_o absolution_n be_v institute_v with_o this_o form_n absoluo_fw-la te_fw-la by_o which_o one_o be_v absolve_v one_o must_v say_v by_o a_o unresistable_a necessity_n that_o another_o or_o the_o same_o be_v institute_v in_o which_o this_o form_n shall_v likewise_o be_v ligo_fw-la te_fw-la because_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v how_o the_o same_o authority_n to_o loose_v and_o bind_v found_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n absolute_o alike_o do_v require_v in_o absolution_n the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o word_n absoluo_fw-la te_fw-la and_o that_o other_o of_o bind_v do_v not_o require_v the_o pronounce_v of_o the_o word_n ligo_fw-la te_fw-la nor_o by_o what_o reason_n to_o execute_v that_o which_o christ_n have_v say_v quorum_fw-la retinueritis_fw-la etc._n etc._n &_o quaecunqne_a ligaveritis_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o say_v ligo_fw-la te_fw-la but_o to_o execute_v quorum_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la &_o quaecunque_fw-la solueritis_fw-la it_o be_v necessary_a to_o say_v absoluo_fw-la te_fw-la likewise_o the_o doctrine_n infer_v in_o the_o fifteen_v point_n be_v censure_v by_o critic_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n by_o the_o same_o word_n do_v constitute_v the_o priest_n judge_n of_o sin_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o confess_v they_o all_o absolute_o and_o in_o particular_a together_o with_o the_o circumstance_n which_o alter_v the_o kind_n see_v that_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o he_o have_v not_o distinguish_v two_o sort_n of_o sin_n one_o to_o be_v remit_v and_o the_o other_o to_o be_v retain_v whereby_o it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o know_v of_o which_o the_o delinquent_n be_v guilty_a but_o one_o only_o which_o do_v comprehend_v all_o and_o therefore_o the_o word_n peccata_fw-la in_o general_n be_v only_o use_v but_o he_o have_v distinguish_v two_o sort_n of_o sinner_n say_v quorum_fw-la &_o quorum_fw-la one_o of_o the_o penitent_a unto_o who_o remission_n be_v grant_v another_o of_o the_o obstinate_a unto_o who_o it_o be_v deny_v therefore_o they_o be_v rather_o to_o know_v the_o state_n of_o the_o delinquent_n than_o the_o nature_n and_o number_n of_o the_o sin_n but_o concern_v the_o circumstance_n which_o alter_v the_o kind_n it_o be_v say_v that_o every_o honest_a man_n may_v swear_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n that_o the_o holy_a apostle_n and_o their_o disciple_n most_o skilful_a in_o thing_n celestial_a not_o regard_v humane_a subtlety_n do_v never_o know_v what_o be_v the_o circumstance_n which_o alter_v the_o kind_n and_o perhaps_o if_o aristotle_n have_v not_o make_v this_o speculation_n the_o world_n will_v not_o have_v know_v it_o until_o now_o and_o yet_o there_o be_v make_v of_o it_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o as_o it_o be_v approve_v that_o absoluo_fw-la be_v a_o judicial_a word_n and_o repute_v a_o good_a consequence_n that_o if_o the_o priest_n do_v absolve_v they_o be_v judge_n so_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o inconstancy_n to_o condemn_v those_o who_o say_v it_o be_v a_o naked_a ministry_n to_o pronounce_v it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n be_v nothing_o but_o to_o pronounce_v he_o innocent_a who_o be_v so_o and_o the_o transgressor_n guilty_a and_o that_o this_o metaphor_n of_o the_o judge_n do_v not_o bear_v that_o the_o priest_n can_v make_v a_o just_a man_n of_o a_o delinquent_n as_o be_v ascribe_v to_o he_o the_o prince_n may_v pard_n on_o offender_n and_o restore_v they_o to_o their_o good_a name_n to_o who_o he_o that_o make_v a_o wicked_a man_n just_a be_v more_o like_a then_o to_o a_o judge_n who_o do_v ever_o transgress_v his_o office_n when_o he_o pronounce_v any_o thing_n but_o that_o which_o he_o first_o find_v to_o be_v true_a but_o they_o be_v amaze_v most_o of_o all_o when_o they_o read_v the_o point_n where_o the_o specifical_a and_o singular_a confession_n of_o sin_n with_o the_o circumstance_n be_v prove_v because_o the_o judicature_n can_v be_v execute_v without_o knowledge_n of_o the_o cause_n nor_o equity_n observe_v in_o impose_v punishment_n if_o the_o fault_n be_v know_v only_o in_o general_n and_o afterward_o that_o christ_n have_v command_v this_o confession_n that_o they_o may_v impose_v the_o condign_a punishment_n they_o say_v that_o this_o be_v plain_o to_o mock_v the_o world_n and_o think_v all_o man_n fool_n &_o to_o persuade_v themselves_o that_o all_o their_o absurdity_n shall_v be_v believe_v without_o more_o to_o do_v for_o who_o know_v not_o and_o see_v not_o daily_o that_o the_o confessor_n enjoin_v penance_n not_o only_o without_o weigh_v the_o merit_n of_o the_o fault_n but_o without_o have_v the_o least_o consideration_n of_o they_o it_o will_v seem_v consider_v the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n that_o the_o confessor_n shall_v have_v a_o balance_n to_o make_v difference_n of_o every_o grain_n and_o yet_o oftentimes_o to_o recite_v five_o pater_n noster_n shall_v be_v a_o penance_n for_o many_o murder_n adultery_n and_o theft_n and_o the_o most_o learned_a confessor_n and_o general_o all_o in_o give_v penance_n do_v say_v to_o every_o man_n that_o they_o do_v impose_v only_a part_n of_o the_o penance_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o impose_v that_o exact_a penance_n which_o the_o fault_n do_v deserve_v nor_o to_o have_v a_o particular_a enumeration_n make_v of_o the_o sin_n and_o circumstance_n but_o what_o need_v one_o go_v so_o far_o when_o the_o same_o council_n in_o the_o nine_o point_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o thirteen_o anathematisme_n do_v ordain_v that_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v by_o voluntary_a penance_n and_o suffer_v of_o adversity_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a yea_o not_o just_o to_o impose_v in_o confession_n the_o punishment_n that_o be_v correspondent_a and_o by_o consequence_n not_o to_o make_v a_o specifical_a enumeration_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v ordain_v for_o this_o end_n and_o they_o add_v that_o not_o consider_v any_o thing_n speak_v before_o the_o confessor_n though_o most_o learned_a attentive_a and_o wise_a have_v hear_v the_o confession_n of_o a_o ordinary_a man_n for_o one_o year_n much_o more_o of_o a_o great_a sinner_n for_o many_o year_n it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v judge_v aright_o though_o he_o have_v canon_n of_o the_o punishment_n due_a to_o any_o sin_n whatsoever_o without_o danger_n to_o err_v more_o than_o half_a to_o speak_v the_o least_o for_o a_o confessor_n see_v all_o in_o writing_n and_o consider_v many_o day_n of_o it_o can_v not_o make_v a_o balance_n to_o decide_v just_o much_o less_o hear_v and_o resolve_v present_o as_o the_o custom_n be_v they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o fit_a they_o shall_v be_v so_o contemn_v &_o hold_v so_o insensible_a as_o to_o believe_v such_o absurdity_n of_o the_o reservation_n of_o case_n enough_o be_v say_v by_o the_o divine_n of_o lovine_n and_o collen_n which_o be_v attribute_v to_o a_o desire_n of_o dominion_n and_o to_o avarice_n the_o next_o day_n there_o be_v a_o general_a congregation_n to_o give_v order_n for_o the_o handle_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o of_o child_n be_v handle_v discussion_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o of_o child_n and_o although_o the_o decree_n be_v already_o make_v for_o the_o session_n of_o the_o eleven_o of_o october_n and_o defer_v yet_o they_o discourse_v again_o as_o if_o nothing_o have_v be_v say_v and_o do_v choose_v father_n to_o collect_v the_o article_n to_o be_v dispute_v on_o and_o other_o to_o make_v the_o decree_n and_o because_o they_o make_v haste_n seven_o article_n be_v sudden_o frame_v whereon_o they_o dispute_v twice_o every_o day_n in_o which_o number_n be_v the_o ambassador_n of_o ferdinand_n and_o julius_n plugius_n bishop_n of_o namburg_n and_o for_o great_a reputation_n the_o electour_n of_o collen_n that_o all_o that_o doctrine_n may_v seem_v to_o come_v from_o germany_n and_o not_o from_o rome_n they_o make_v also_o thirteen_o anathematism_n condemn_v those_o for_o heretic_n who_o do_v not_o
hold_v wherein_o the_o dilation_n make_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o protestant_a divine_n shall_v be_v publish_v and_o father_n elect_v who_o together_o with_o the_o nuncio_n of_o sponto_n shall_v make_v the_o decree_n the_o protestation_n and_o safe_a conduct_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n desire_v to_o have_v the_o draught_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n before_o it_o be_v publish_v to_o show_v it_o the_o protestant_n that_o if_o it_o do_v not_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n it_o may_v be_v so_o amend_v that_o they_o may_v not_o have_v occasion_n to_o refuse_v it_o as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o the_o day_n follow_v be_v spend_v in_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a which_o be_v protestant_n a_o exhortation_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n pictavius_n to_o the_o protestant_n finish_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n call_v the_o protestant_n to_o they_o and_o the_o ambassador_n pictavius_n have_v make_v a_o eloquent_a encomiastique_a oration_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o father_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o give_v some_o little_a part_n of_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o council_n as_o they_o receive_v much_o from_o it_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o be_v conclude_v to_o receive_v their_o mandate_n and_o person_n and_o to_o hear_v their_o proposition_n and_o to_o defer_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n though_o already_o discuss_v and_o digest_v to_o expect_v the_o divine_n and_o hear_v they_o first_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o very_a ample_a safe_a conduct_n as_o they_o desire_v whereof_o the_o draught_n be_v make_v and_o he_o be_v copious_a in_o show_v that_o these_o be_v memorable_a favour_n and_o grace_n say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o yield_v something_o to_o the_o time_n and_o not_o to_o desire_v all_o at_o once_o that_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v enter_v into_o the_o business_n occasion_n will_v make_v they_o obtain_v many_o thing_n which_o before_o seem_v hard_o that_o the_o father_n do_v desire_v the_o come_n of_o the_o divine_n that_o themselves_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n have_v matter_n to_o propose_v of_o great_a moment_n and_o do_v stand_v only_o expect_v that_o the_o protestant_n shall_v begin_v that_o afterward_o they_o may_v come_v forth_o themselves_o also_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o pray_v they_o to_o proceed_v slow_o in_o their_o demand_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v submit_v himself_o to_o the_o council_n for_o the_o father_n do_v know_v that_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v amend_v in_o the_o papal_a greatness_n but_o withal_o that_o they_o must_v go_v on_o cunning_o that_o themselves_o have_v daily_a experience_n what_o dexterity_n and_o art_n must_v be_v use_v in_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n minister_n likewise_o the_o reexamination_n of_o the_o thing_n already_o conclude_v be_v not_o to_o be_v propose_v in_o the_o very_a beginning_n because_o it_o will_v be_v too_o great_a a_o infamy_n and_o dishonour_n to_o the_o council_n therefore_o let_v their_o divine_a come_v who_o shall_v have_v a_o convenient_a audience_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v themselves_o wrong_v it_o shall_v ever_o be_v free_a for_o they_o to_o depart_v the_o protestant_n retire_v themselves_o and_o consider_v the_o draught_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n be_v not_o content_a because_o it_o be_v not_o like_a to_o that_o of_o basill_n in_o which_o four_o thing_n more_o be_v grant_v to_o the_o bohemian_o 1._o that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o decisive_a voice_n 2._o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o practice_n of_o ancient_a church_n the_o counsel_n and_o interpreter_n conformable_a to_o the_o scripture_n shall_v be_v judge_n 3._o that_o they_o may_v exercise_v their_o religion_n in_o their_o house_n 4._o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o contempt_n and_o disdain_n of_o their_o doctrine_n of_o conduct_n who_o be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o form_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n these_o four_o the_o second_o be_v different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v in_o this_o draught_n and_o the_o three_o other_o be_v total_o leave_v out_o they_o suspect_v also_o because_o the_o council_n do_v not_o promise_v they_o security_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o college_n of_o cardinal_n as_o do_v that_o of_o basil_n yet_o they_o resolve_v not_o to_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o but_o to_o demand_v the_o insert_v of_o the_o other_o 4._o clause_n and_o tell_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n plain_o that_o they_o can_v not_o receive_v it_o in_o this_o form_n because_o they_o have_v this_o express_a commission_n in_o their_o instruction_n toledo_n show_v some_o disdain_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o content_v themselves_o with_o that_o which_o he_o and_o his_o colleague_n have_v obtain_v with_o so_o much_o pain_n that_o the_o chief_a importance_n be_v in_o the_o security_n of_o come_v and_o depart_v and_o that_o the_o residue_n appertain_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o their_o negotiation_n which_o may_v more_o easy_o be_v conclude_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o divine_n that_o it_o be_v too_o much_o obstinacy_n to_o yield_v in_o nothing_o and_o to_o desire_v to_o give_v law_n alone_o to_o the_o whole_a offend_v for_o which_o cause_n toledo_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v offend_v church_n but_o it_o not_o be_v impossible_a to_o remove_v they_o with_o these_o reason_n from_o their_o resolution_n they_o say_v in_o the_o end_n that_o they_o will_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o father_n to_o who_o they_o restore_v the_o draught_n of_o the_o safe_a conduct_n with_o the_o addition_n which_o be_v require_v the_o legate_n and_o precedent_n understand_v the_o request_n and_o resolution_n of_o the_o protestant_n show_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n how_o unjust_a and_o unmeet_a their_o demand_n be_v for_o in_o the_o form_n or_o that_o of_o basil_n they_o never_o find_v that_o it_o be_v grant_v to_o have_v a_o decisive_a voice_n in_o the_o council_n but_o that_o the_o scripture_n practise_v of_o the_o church_n counsel_n and_o doctor_n who_o ground_n themselves_o on_o it_o shall_v be_v judge_n be_v say_v because_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o when_o it_o be_v say_v the_o holy_a father_n it_o be_v understand_v that_o they_o ground_n themselves_o on_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o have_v no_o other_o gound_n the_o three_o to_o exercise_v their_o religion_n in_o their_o own_o house_n be_v understand_v with_o condition_n that_o it_o be_v not_o know_v and_o do_v without_o scandal_n the_o prohibition_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v in_o contempt_n of_o they_o be_v express_v when_o it_o be_v promise_v that_o by_o no_o mean_n they_o shall_v be_v offend_v therefore_o that_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o they_o complain_v without_o cause_n only_o to_o cavil_n and_o in_o regard_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o content_v they_o there_o do_v remain_v nothing_o but_o to_o give_v they_o the_o safe_a conduct_n as_o it_o be_v make_v and_o to_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o liberty_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o or_o not_o the_o earl_n of_o mountfort_n reply_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o serviceable_a to_o the_o public_a cause_n then_o to_o take_v from_o they_o all_o pretence_n and_o cavil_n and_o to_o make_v they_o unexcusable_a to_o the_o world_n therefore_o in_o regard_n there_o be_v no_o real_a difference_n between_o the_o safe_a conduct_n of_o basil_n and_o this_o to_o stop_v their_o mouth_n that_o may_v be_v copy_v out_o verbatim_o change_v only_o the_o name_n of_o the_o person_n place_n and_o time_n the_o precedent_n move_v with_o that_o subtle_a and_o strict_a answer_n look_v one_o upon_o another_o and_o the_o legate_n take_v the_o matter_n upon_o he_o answer_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o father_n in_o the_o congregation_n and_o resolve_v according_a to_o their_o determination_n the_o precedent_n do_v recommend_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n every_o one_o to_o his_o familiar_a friend_n to_o the_o italian_n and_o spaniard_n they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v great_a injury_n to_o be_v compel_v to_o follow_v a_o company_n of_o schismatic_n who_o have_v speak_v unaduised_o and_o contrary_a to_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o bind_v themselves_o to_o follow_v the_o scripture_n only_o but_o unto_o all_o in_o general_a they_o say_v it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a indignity_n if_o the_o council_n shall_v so_o speak_v as_o that_o a_o inextricable_a dispute_n shall_v present_o arise_v for_o in_o set_v down_o what_o doctor_n do_v ground_n themselves_o upon_o the_o scripture_n they_o shall_v never_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v honourable_a for_o the_o council_n to_o speak_v plain_o and_o that_o the_o expression_n make_v be_v just_a the_o declaration_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o such_o persuasion_n they_o use_v as_o that_o almost_o all_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o change_v the_o draught_n hope_v that_o though_o the_o protestant_n
religion_n many_o be_v burn_v in_o england_n for_o religion_n they_o have_v be_v live_v and_o their_o body_n dig_v up_o and_o burn_v a_o action_n commend_v by_o some_o as_o a_o revenge_n of_o what_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v do_v against_o s._n thomas_n by_o other_o compare_v to_o that_o which_o the_o pope_n stephanus_n the_o six_o and_o sergius_n the_o three_o do_v against_o the_o corpse_n of_o pope_n formosus_fw-la many_o also_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n burn_v in_o france_n for_o religion_n not_o also_o and_o in_o france_n also_o without_o the_o indignation_n of_o honest_a man_n who_o know_v that_o the_o diligence_n use_v against_o those_o poor_a people_n be_v not_o for_o piety_n or_o religion_n but_o to_o satiate_v valentina_n which_o be_v do_v to_o satiate_v the_o covetousness_n of_o diana_n valentina_n the_o covetousness_n of_o diana_n valentina_n the_o king_n mistress_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v all_o the_o confiscation_n of_o good_n make_v in_o the_o kingdom_n for_o cause_n of_o heresy_n it_o be_v wonder_v also_o that_o those_o of_o the_o new_a reformation_n shall_v meddle_v with_o blood_n for_o cause_n of_o religion_n for_o michael_n seruetus_fw-la of_o tarragona_n make_v a_o divine_a of_o a_o physician_n renew_v the_o old_a opinion_n of_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o marcellus_n anciranus_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n subsist_v and_o therefore_o that_o christ_n be_v a_o pure_a man_n be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o geneva_n michael_n seruetus_fw-la be_v burn_v in_o geneva_n it_o in_o geneva_n by_o counsel_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o zuric_n berne_n and_o schiaffusa_fw-la and_o john_n caluin_n who_o be_v blame_v for_o it_o by_o many_o write_v a_o book_n defend_v that_o the_o magistrate_n may_v punish_v heretic_n with_o loss_n of_o life_n which_o doctrine_n be_v draw_v to_o diverse_a sense_n as_o it_o be_v understand_v more_o strict_o or_o more_o large_o or_o as_o the_o name_n of_o heretic_n be_v take_v diverse_o may_v sometime_o do_v hurt_v to_o he_o who_o another_o time_n it_o have_v help_v at_o that_o time_n ferdinand_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n publish_v a_o edict_n to_o all_o religion_n the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n publish_v a_o edict_n against_o all_o innovation_n in_o religion_n the_o people_n subject_a unto_o he_o that_o in_o point_n of_o religion_n and_o rite_n they_o shall_v not_o innovate_v but_o follow_v the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o particular_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a communion_n they_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o bread_n only_o wherein_o though_o many_o person_n of_o note_n the_o nobility_n and_o many_o of_o the_o city_n make_v supplication_n unto_o he_o that_o at_o the_o least_o the_o cup_n may_v be_v grant_v they_o say_v that_o the_o institution_n be_v of_o christ_n which_o may_v not_o be_v alter_v by_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o use_n of_o the_o old_a church_n as_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n promise_v all_o submission_n and_o obedience_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n pray_v he_o not_o to_o burden_n their_o conscience_n but_o to_o accommodate_v his_o commandment_n to_o the_o order_n set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o ferdinand_n persevere_v in_o his_o resolution_n and_o answer_v they_o that_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o new_a but_o a_o ancient_a institution_n use_v by_o his_o ancestor_n emperor_n king_n and_o duke_n of_o austria_n and_o that_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v a_o novitie_n bring_v in_o by_o curiosity_n or_o pride_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o prince_n yet_o he_o moderate_v the_o rigour_n of_o the_o answer_n say_v that_o the_o question_n be_v of_o a_o point_n that_o concern_v salvation_n he_o will_v think_v of_o it_o more_o diligent_o and_o answer_v they_o in_o fit_a time_n but_o that_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n he_o expect_v from_o they_o obedience_n and_o observation_n of_o the_o edict_n he_o publish_v also_o a_o catechism_n the_o fourteen_o of_o catechism_n and_o a_o catechism_n august_n make_v by_o his_o authority_n by_o some_o learned_a and_o pious_a divine_n rome_n 1555_o paul_n 4._o charles_n 5._o mary_n 〈◊〉_d henry_n 2._o which_o give_v distaste_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n command_v all_o the_o magistrate_n of_o those_o country_n not_o to_o suffer_v any_o schoolmaster_n to_o read_v any_o but_o that_o either_o in_o public_a or_o in_o private_a because_o by_o diverse_a pamphlet_n which_o go_v about_o religion_n be_v much_o corrupt_v in_o those_o country_n this_o constitution_n distaste_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n because_o it_o be_v not_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v approve_v by_o his_o authority_n nor_o come_v forth_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o country_n the_o secular_a prince_n assume_v the_o office_n to_o cause_n to_o be_v compose_v and_o to_o authorize_v book_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n especial_o by_o name_n of_o catechism_n to_o show_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o secular_a power_n to_o determine_v what_o religion_n the_o people_n shall_v follow_v and_o what_o refuse_v the_o two_o year_n of_o the_o suspension_n of_o the_o council_n be_v expire_v they_o treat_v in_o the_o consistory_n what_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v do_v for_o although_o the_o condition_n in_o the_o decree_n be_v that_o the_o council_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n again_o when_o the_o impediment_n be_v remoove_v which_o do_v still_o continue_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o war_n of_o sienna_n piedmont_n and_o other_o between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n yet_o it_o seem_v that_o any_o man_n of_o a_o unquiet_a spirit_n may_v say_v that_o those_o impediment_n be_v not_o sufficient_a and_o that_o it_o be_v understand_v that_o the_o council_n be_v on_o foot_n again_o so_o that_o to_o free_v themselves_o from_o those_o danger_n it_o may_v be_v good_a to_o make_v a_o new_a declaration_n but_o wise_a man_n end_v it_o be_v resolve_v in_o rome_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n though_o the_o two_o year_n of_o suspension_n be_v end_v give_v counsel_n not_o to_o move_v the_o evil_a while_o it_o be_v quiet_a while_o the_o world_n be_v silent_a while_o neither_o prince_n nor_o people_n demand_v the_o council_n lest_o by_o show_v they_o be_v afraid_a they_o may_v excite_v other_o to_o require_v it_o this_o advice_n prevayl_v and_o make_v the_o pope_n resolve_v never_o to_o speak_v more_o of_o it_o in_o the_o year_n 1555._o there_o be_v a_o diet_n in_o ausburg_n which_o the_o emperor_n religion_n 1555._o a_o diet._n 〈◊〉_d have_v in_o ausburg_n to_o compose_v the_o difference_n in_o religion_n have_v intimate_v principal_o to_o compose_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n in_o regard_n this_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o the_o trouble_n and_o calamity_n of_o germany_n with_o the_o loss_n not_o only_o of_o the_o life_n of_o many_o thousand_o of_o man_n but_o of_o their_o soul_n also_o ferdinand_n begin_v the_o diet_n in_o the_o emperor_n name_n the_o five_o of_o february_n where_o he_o show_v at_o large_a the_o lamentable_a spectacle_n of_o germany_n in_o which_o man_n of_o the_o same_o baptism_n language_n oration_n in_o which_o ferdinand_n make_v a_o oration_n and_o empire_n be_v distract_v by_o so_o various_a a_o profession_n of_o faith_n there_o arise_v new_a sect_n every_o day_n which_o do_v show_v not_o only_o small_a reverence_n towards_o god_n and_o great_a perturbation_n of_o man_n mind_n but_o be_v cause_n also_o that_o the_o multitude_n know_v not_o what_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o many_o of_o the_o principal_a nobility_n and_o other_o be_v without_o all_o faith_n and_o honesty_n make_v no_o conscience_n of_o their_o action_n which_o take_v away_o all_o commerce_n so_o that_o now_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o the_o german_n be_v better_a than_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o barbarous_a people_n for_o which_o cause_v god_n have_v afflict_v it_o with_o so_o great_a calamity_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o take_v in_o hand_n the_o business_n of_o religion_n he_o say_v a_o general_a free_a and_o pious_a council_n be_v former_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o faith_n be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v handle_v by_o all_o and_o the_o emperor_n employ_v all_o his_o force_n herein_o do_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v assemble_v more_o than_o once_o but_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o say_v why_o no_o fruit_n come_v by_o it_o it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a now_o if_o they_o desire_v to_o prove_v the_o same_o remedy_n again_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o remove_v the_o impediment_n which_o do_v 2._o 1555_o marcdilus_n 〈◊〉_d charles_n 5._o mary_n henry_n 2._o hinder_v they_o from_o attain_v the_o wish_a end_n but_o if_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o accident_n
it_o in_o a_o mercurial_a so_o they_o call_v the_o judicature_n institute_v to_o examine_v and_o correct_v the_o action_n of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o king_n hold_v in_o paris_n the_o 15._o of_o june_n where_o they_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o religion_n after_o the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v enter_v in_o person_n he_o say_v he_o have_v establish_v peace_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o the_o marriage_n of_o his_o sister_n and_o daughter_n that_o he_o may_v provide_v against_o the_o inconvenience_n breed_v in_o his_o kingdom_n about_o religion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o principal_a care_n of_o prince_n therefore_o understanding_n they_o be_v to_o treat_v of_o this_o subject_n he_o exhort_v they_o to_o handle_v god_n cause_n with_o sincerity_n and_o have_v command_v they_o to_o prosecute_v the_o thing_n begin_v claude_n viol_n one_o of_o they_o speak_v much_o against_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o bad_a custom_n grow_v to_o be_v pernicious_a error_n which_o have_v cause_v the_o new_a sect_n therefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o mitigate_v the_o severe_a punishment_n until_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n be_v remoove_v and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n amend_v by_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n the_o only_a remedy_n for_o these_o evil_n as_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n have_v judge_v command_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v every_o ten_o year_n his_o opinion_n be_v follow_v by_o ludovicus_n faber_n and_o some_o other_o anne_n du_fw-fr bourg_n do_v add_v that_o many_o villainy_n be_v comit_v condemn_v by_o the_o law_n for_o punishment_n whereof_o the_o rope_n and_o fire_n be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o frequent_a blasphemy_n against_o god_n perjury_n adultery_n not_o only_o secret_a but_o even_o cherish_v with_o impudent_a licence_n make_v himself_o to_o be_v plain_o understand_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o the_o grandee_n of_o the_o court_n but_o of_o the_o king_n himself_o also_o add_v that_o while_o man_n live_v thus_o dissolute_o diverse_a torment_n be_v prepare_v against_o those_o who_o be_v guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n the_o vice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o desire_v a_o amendment_n of_o they_o in_o opposition_n of_o all_o this_o egidius_n magister_n the_o prime_a precedent_n speak_v against_o the_o new_a sect_n conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o that_o which_o be_v former_o use_v against_o the_o albigense_n of_o who_o philippus_n augustus_n put_v to_o death_n six_o hundred_o in_o one_o day_n and_o against_o the_o waldense_n who_o be_v choke_v in_o the_o cave_n whither_o they_o retire_v to_o hide_v themselves_o when_o all_o the_o voice_n be_v give_v the_o king_n say_v he_o have_v now_o hear_v with_o his_o own_o ear_n that_o which_o before_o be_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v hence_o arise_v imprison_v 1559_o pius_fw-la 4._o ferdinand_z philip_z 2._o elizabeth_n henry_n 2._o and_o command_v some_o of_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v imprison_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o parliament_n who_o do_v despise_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o he_o that_o he_o well_o know_v they_o be_v but_o few_o but_o the_o cause_n of_o many_o evil_n therefore_o he_o exhort_v those_o who_o be_v good_a subject_n to_o continue_v in_o do_v their_o duty_n and_o immediate_o give_v order_n that_o faber_n and_o du_fw-fr bourg_n shall_v be_v imprison_v and_o afterward_o cause_v four_o more_o to_o be_v apprehend_v in_o their_o house_n which_o do_v much_o daunt_v those_o who_o embrace_v the_o new_a religion_n for_o the_o counsellor_n of_o parliament_n in_o france_n be_v repute_v most_o sacred_a and_o inviolable_a who_o notwithstanding_o be_v put_v into_o prison_n for_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n in_o public_a assembly_n they_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n will_v pardon_v none_o but_o example_n of_o great_a fear_n be_v always_o join_v with_o other_o of_o equal_a boldness_n paris_n 15●9_n the_o reformatist_n hold_v a_o synod_n in_o paris_n for_o at_o the_o same_o time_n as_o if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o danger_n at_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o reform_a for_o so_o the_o protestant_n be_v call_v in_o france_n assemble_v in_o paris_n in_o the_o suburb_n of_o saint_n german_n make_v a_o synod_n in_o which_o franciscus_n morellus_n the_o chief_a man_n among_o they_o be_v precedent_n ordain_v diverse_a constitution_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o hold_v counsel_n of_o remove_v the_o domination_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o election_n and_o office_n of_o minister_n of_o censure_n of_o marriage_n of_o divorce_n of_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n that_o throughout_o all_o france_n they_o may_v not_o only_o have_v a_o uniform_a faith_n but_o discipline_n also_o and_o their_o courage_n do_v increase_v because_o the_o fame_n of_o the_o severity_n use_v in_o france_n come_v into_o germany_n the_o three_o elector_n and_o germany_n and_o be_v encourage_v by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o protestant_a prince_n of_o germany_n other_o protestant_a prince_n send_v ambassador_n to_o the_o king_n pray_v he_o to_o proceed_v with_o piety_n and_o christian_a charity_n against_o the_o professor_n of_o their_o religion_n guilty_a of_o nothing_o but_o of_o accuse_v the_o corrupt_a manner_n and_o the_o discipline_n pervert_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o have_v be_v do_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o year_n since_o by_o other_o godly_a doctor_n of_o france_n for_o that_o kingdom_n be_v now_o in_o quiet_a the_o difference_n of_o religion_n may_v easy_o be_v compose_v by_o the_o disputation_n of_o able_a man_n desirous_a of_o peace_n who_o may_v examine_v their_o confession_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n suspend_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o severity_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o they_o will_v receive_v as_o a_o thing_n most_o grateful_a and_o remain_v much_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o it_o the_o king_n give_v a_o courteous_a answer_n in_o general_a word_n promise_v good_a which_o do_v they_o no_o good_a to_o give_v they_o satisfaction_n and_o to_o send_v one_o express_o to_o signify_v so_o much_o unto_o they_o yet_o he_o remit_v nothing_o of_o the_o severity_n but_o after_o the_o ambassador_n be_v part_v he_o depute_v four_o judge_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o parliament_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o prisoner_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o paris_n and_o the_o inquisitor_n antony_n de_fw-fr mocares_fw-la command_v they_o to_o proceed_v with_o all_o expedition_n the_o pope_n unto_o who_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v know_v as_o he_o be_v much_o discontent_v with_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n in_o the_o state_n of_o both_o the_o king_n so_o he_o be_v please_v that_o those_o prince_n do_v think_v of_o it_o and_o move_v they_o by_o his_o nuncij_fw-la and_o by_o their_o ambassador_n reside_v with_o he_o to_o do_v so_o still_o but_o he_o will_v not_o have_v any_o other_o mean_v then_o that_o of_o the_o inquisition_n which_o he_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n as_o he_o say_v upon_o all_o occasion_n judge_v that_o the_o council_n will_v do_v as_o former_o it_o have_v do_v that_o be_v reduce_v all_o into_o a_o worse_a state_n while_o he_o be_v possess_v with_o these_o cogitation_n and_o weak_a of_o body_n the_o king_n of_o france_n die_v the_o second_o of_o july_n by_o a_o wound_n in_o the_o eye_n run_v at_o tilt_n for_o which_o he_o seem_v very_o sorrowful_a and_o be_v so_o indeed_o for_o although_o he_o suspect_v and_o with_o reason_n the_o intelligence_n between_o the_o july_n 1559._o paul_n 4._o ferdinand_z elizabeth_z francis_n 2._o henry_n the_o second_o die_v the_o second_o of_o july_n two_o king_n yet_o he_o have_v still_o hope_n to_o separate_v they_o but_o the_o one_o be_v dead_a he_o see_v he_o be_v at_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o other_o alone_o who_o he_o more_o fear_v because_o he_o be_v more_o offend_v by_o he_o and_o be_v of_o a_o more_o close_a nature_n hard_o to_o be_v sound_v he_o fear_v also_o that_o in_o france_n a_o gate_n will_v be_v set_v wide_o open_a to_o let_v in_o sect_n which_o may_v be_v confirm_v before_o the_o new_a king_n can_v get_v so_o much_o wisdom_n and_o reputation_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o oppose_v so_o great_a difficulty_n he_o live_v some_o few_o day_n afflict_v with_o these_o cogitation_n but_o now_o lay_v aside_o all_o hope_n which_o have_v until_o then_o keep_v he_o alive_a he_o die_v the_o eighteen_o inquisition_n the_o pope_n jy_v the_o 18._o of_o august_n recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n nothing_o but_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n of_o august_n recommend_v to_o the_o cardinal_n nothing_o but_o the_o office_n of_o the_o inquisition_n the_o only_a mean_n as_o he_o say_v to_o
conspiracy_n so_o that_o they_o disarm_v within_o 24._o hour_n afterward_o the_o king_n by_o his_o edict_n pardon_v all_o the_o reformatist_n until_o they_o return_v to_o the_o church_n he_o forbid_v all_o assembly_n for_o religion_n and_o commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n the_o hear_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o heresy_n this_o displease_v the_o chancellor_n though_o he_o consent_v for_o fear_v the_o spanish_a inquisition_n will_v be_v bring_v in_o as_o the_o guisard_n desire_v the_o humour_n move_v be_v not_o quiet_v by_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o conspirator_n and_o the_o pardon_n publish_v nor_o the_o hope_n lay_v aside_o which_o they_o have_v conceive_v to_o have_v liberty_n of_o religion_n yea_o great_a tumult_n of_o the_o people_n be_v raise_v in_o provence_n languedoc_n and_o poitou_n whether_o the_o preacher_n of_o geneva_n geneva_n the_o protestant_n do_v increase_v by_o mean_n of_o the_o preacher_n of_o geneva_n be_v call_v and_o come_v willing_o by_o who_o sermon_n the_o number_n of_o the_o protestant_n do_v increase_v this_o general_a and_o sudden_a combination_n make_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o kingdom_n resolute_a that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a remedy_n and_o that_o very_o quick_o and_o a_o nationall_n synod_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n the_o cardinal_n of_o armignac_n say_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v do_v without_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o make_v provision_n that_o they_o shall_v write_v to_o rome_n and_o expect_v a_o answer_n to_o which_o opinion_n some_o few_o prelate_n do_v adhere_v but_o the_o bishop_n of_o valence_n say_v that_o a_o sudden_a remedy_n can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o the_o pope_n because_o he_o be_v far_o distant_a nor_o a_o fit_a one_o because_o he_o be_v not_o inform_v of_o the_o particular_a necessity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o a_o charitable_a one_o because_o he_o be_v busy_v in_o make_v his_o nephew_n great_a that_o god_n have_v give_v to_o all_o kingdom_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o govern_v they_o that_o france_n have_v prelate_n of_o its_o own_o to_o regulate_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n who_o better_a know_v the_o want_n of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n to_o see_v paris_n burn_v have_v the_o river_n of_o some_o and_o marne_n full_a of_o water_n and_o to_o believe_v that_o water_n must_v be_v bring_v from_o tiber_n to_o quench_v the_o fire_n the_o resolution_n france_n a_o nationall_n synod_n be_v intimate_v in_o france_n of_o the_o council_n be_v that_o there_o be_v need_n of_o a_o strong_a and_o sudden_a remedy_n the_o prelate_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v assemble_v to_o find_v a_o way_n to_o hinder_v the_o course_n of_o these_o great_a mischief_n and_o the_o eleven_o of_o april_n the_o synod_n be_v intimate_v for_o the_o ten_o of_o september_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o take_v it_o in_o ill_a part_n a_o curriet_n be_v dispatch_v to_o rome_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o to_o inform_v he_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o that_o remedy_n and_o to_o pray_v he_o not_o to_o take_v it_o amiss_o the_o ambassador_n represent_v to_o his_o holiness_n the_o infection_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o danger_n and_o the_o hope_n which_o the_o king_n have_v of_o some_o good_a remedy_n by_o a_o general_a convocation_n of_o the_o prelate_n without_o which_o he_o see_v no_o mean_n to_o make_v a_o effectual_a povision_n therefore_o he_o be_v force_v not_o to_o defer_v long_o nor_o to_o expect_v remedy_n from_o place_n romote_v which_o be_v uncertain_a and_o long_o in_o come_v and_o to_o use_v that_o which_o be_v in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o he_o add_v that_o no_o constitution_n of_o that_o synod_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n before_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o holiness_n the_o pope_n on_o the_o contrary_a do_v grievous_o complain_v that_o the_o king_n have_v pardon_v the_o error_n commit_v against_o religion_n even_o of_o here●●kes_n the_o pope_n blame_v the_o french_a king_n for_o pardon_v here●●kes_n those_o who_o do_v not_o ask_v it_o wherein_o none_o have_v power_n but_o himself_o and_o what_o king_n be_v there_o he_o say_v who_o think_v he_o be_v able_a to_o pardon_v offence_n against_o god_n that_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o by_o the_o just_a wrath_n of_o god_n there_o be_v so_o many_o tumult_n in_o that_o kingdom_n where_o the_o sacred_a canon_n be_v disesteem_v and_o the_o pope_n authority_n usurp_v he_o say_v that_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o prelate_n will_v do_v no_o good_a yea_o will_v cause_v a_o great_a division_n that_o he_o have_v propose_v a_o general_a council_n which_o be_v the_o only_a remedy_n that_o the_o cause_n why_o it_o be_v not_o essemble_v already_o proceed_v from_o they_o who_o will_v not_o have_v it_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o celebrate_v it_o though_o it_o be_v desire_v by_o none_o but_o synod_n and_o will_v not_o approve_v the_o nationall_n synod_n will_v not_o by_o any_o mean_n consent_v to_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o prelate_n either_o in_o france_n or_o elsewhere_o that_o this_o be_v never_o tolerate_v by_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n that_o if_o every_o prince_n shall_v celebrate_v counsel_n of_o himself_o a_o confusion_n and_o separation_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o follow_v he_o complain_v much_o that_o the_o assembly_n be_v first_o intimate_v and_o then_o his_o consent_n demand_v which_o he_o must_v needs_o think_v be_v do_v with_o small_a respect_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o all_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v not_o to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n when_o they_o be_v do_v but_o to_o receive_v from_o he_o authority_n to_o do_v they_o that_o the_o edict_n publish_v do_v infer_v a_o apostasy_n in_o that_o kingdom_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o he_o will_v send_v a_o express_a nuncio_n to_o make_v his_o will_n know_v to_o the_o king_n he_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o viterbo_n with_o instruction_n to_o show_v he_o that_o a_o nationall_n it_o but_o send_v a_o nuncio_n into_o spain_n to_o dissuade_v it_o council_n of_o that_o kingdom_n will_v be_v a_o kind_n of_o schism_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n give_v a_o bad_a example_n to_o other_o nation_n and_o make_v his_o prelate_n proud_a assume_v great_a authority_n which_o diminution_n of_o his_o own_o that_o it_o be_v general_o know_v how_o earnest_o they_o desire_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o pragmatique_a which_o they_o will_v first_o of_o all_o bring_v in_o by_o which_o mean_v the_o king_n will_v lose_v his_o whole_a collation_n of_o the_o regality_n and_o the_o presentation_n of_o the_o bishopricke_n and_o abbey_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o prelate_n not_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n will_v refuse_v to_o obey_v he_o and_o yet_o with_o all_o these_o inconvenience_n the_o evil_n which_o do_v now_o press_v he_o will_v not_o be_v provide_v against_o for_o the_o heretic_n do_v profess_v already_o that_o they_o esteem_v not_o the_o prelate_n so_o that_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v do_v will_v be_v oppose_v by_o the_o protestant_a minister_n if_o for_o no_o other_o cause_n because_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o that_o the_o true_a remedy_n be_v to_o make_v the_o prelate_n and_o other_o curate_n reside_v and_o keep_v their_o flock_n oppose_v the_o fury_n of_o the_o wolf_n and_o to_o proceed_v in_o justice_n against_o those_o who_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v heretic_n by_o the_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o where_o it_o can_v be_v do_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o multitude_n to_o use_v force_n of_o arm_n to_o compel_v all_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o their_o duty_n before_o the_o contagion_n do_v increase_v that_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v now_o all_o difference_n may_v be_v complete_o endded_a by_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o general_a council_n which_o he_o will_v immediate_o intimate_v that_o if_o the_o king_n will_v resolve_v to_o reduce_v the_o contumacious_a to_o obedience_n before_o they_o do_v more_o increase_n in_o number_n and_o strength_n he_o promise_v to_o assist_v he_o with_o all_o his_o power_n and_o to_o labour_v that_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o prince_n of_o italy_n shall_v do_v the_o like_a but_o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v persuade_v to_o compel_v his_o subject_n by_o force_n the_o nuncio_n have_v instruction_n to_o propose_v unto_o he_o that_o all_o the_o mischief_n which_o trouble_v france_n and_o the_o poison_n which_o infect_v that_o kingdom_n and_o the_o neighbour_n place_n come_v from_o geneva_n that_o the_o extirpation_n of_o that_o root_n geneva_n and_o to_o persuade_v y_z e_o king_n to_o make_v ware_n against_o geneva_n will_v take_v away_o a_o great_a nourishment_n of_o the_o evil_a that_o make_v war_n out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o
some_o of_o those_o prelate_n have_v a_o purpose_n divine_n the_o pope_n be_v trouble_v with_o the_o design_n of_o the_o portugal_n divine_n that_o the_o superiority_n of_o the_o council_n above_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v define_v in_o the_o synod_n which_o point_n they_o have_v study_v and_o cause_v many_o divine_n to_o do_v the_o like_a the_o pope_n be_v trouble_v with_o this_o advice_n and_o consider_v what_o he_o may_v look_v for_o when_o the_o prelate_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o council_n and_o do_v treat_v altogether_o who_o have_v such_o high_a thought_n before_o they_o part_v from_o home_n and_o fear_v that_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsel_n have_v a_o finger_n in_o it_o yet_o as_o a_o wise_a prince_n he_o consider_v that_o when_o the_o council_n be_v hold_v not_o that_o novitie_n only_o will_v be_v propose_v but_o many_o more_o to_o the_o disadvantage_n of_o other_o as_o well_o as_o of_o himself_o say_v that_o every_o weight_n have_v his_o counterpoise_v and_o that_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v attempt_v not_o one_o in_o a_o thousand_o do_v take_v effect_n he_o be_v more_o attentive_a to_o the_o enterprise_n of_o the_o frenchman_n as_o be_v more_o imminent_a and_o of_o person_n who_o be_v not_o flegmaticall_a in_o resolve_v as_o the_o spaniard_n be_v therefore_o he_o impart_v to_o the_o ambassador_n every_o advice_n that_o come_v unto_o he_o and_o tell_v he_o in_o diverse_a conference_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o think_v of_o nationall_n counsel_n assembly_n or_o colloquy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n because_o he_o can_v not_o but_o esteem_v they_o all_o for_o schismatical_a that_o he_o pray_v the_o king_n not_o to_o use_v those_o remedy_n which_o will_v certain_o reduce_v france_n not_o only_o into_o a_o worse_a condition_n but_o into_o the_o worst_a of_o all_o that_o the_o difficulty_n of_o spain_n be_v remoove_v the_o council_n shall_v certain_o be_v celebrate_v because_o those_o which_o do_v continue_v in_o germany_n be_v not_o considerable_a that_o the_o catholic_a prince_n and_o bishop_n will_v consent_v and_o perhaps_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n also_o as_o he_o have_v make_v show_n by_o separate_v himself_o from_o the_o other_o assemble_v in_o neumburg_n that_o he_o hope_v the_o emperor_n will_v assist_v personal_o if_o there_o be_v need_n as_o himself_o do_v promise_v to_o do_v if_o he_o think_v it_o fit_a wherein_o he_o will_v not_o subject_v himself_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o but_o himself_o easter_n draw_v near_o which_o time_n be_v appoint_v to_o begin_v the_o council_n place_n one_o of_o the_o precedent_n fall_v sick_a and_o another_o be_v put_v in_o his_o place_n and_o cardinal_n puteus_fw-la be_v very_o sick_a he_o put_v in_o his_o room_n friar_n jerolamus_n cardinal_n seripando_n a_o divine_a of_o much_o fame_n and_o cause_v he_o to_o depart_v present_o and_o to_o pass_v by_o mantua_n take_v with_o he_o the_o other_o legate_n and_o to_o be_v at_o trent_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v notwithstanding_o which_o commandment_n they_o come_v not_o thither_o until_o the_o three_o feast_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o find_v there_o nine_o bishop_n who_o be_v arrive_v before_o they_o the_o pope_n be_v diligent_a to_o make_v the_o italian_a bishop_n put_v themselves_o in_o order_n and_o therefore_o write_v effect_v all_o error_n to_o the_o viceroy_n of_o naples_n and_o to_o his_o nuncio_n there_o and_o cause_v his_o minister_n to_o persuade_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o state_n of_o milan_n to_o be_v ready_a for_o their_o journey_n to_o the_o council_n as_o soon_o as_o may_v be_v he_o desire_v also_o the_o state_n of_o venice_n to_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o their_o territory_n in_o italy_n of_o candia_n dalmatia_n and_o cyprus_n with_o all_o possible_a expedition_n and_o to_o create_v ambassador_n to_o assist_v in_o the_o council_n in_o the_o name_n of_o that_o republic_n the_o italian_a prelate_n be_v not_o easy_o move_v because_o they_o know_v the_o beginning_n can_v not_o be_v before_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o they_o the_o italian_a prelate_n be_v not_o so_o hasty_a to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n as_o y_z e_z pope_n will_v have_v have_v they_o emperor_n do_v come_v which_o be_v still_o prolong_v because_o the_o spaniard_n and_o frenchman_n be_v expect_v before_o who_o arrival_n in_o italy_n they_o think_v it_o superfluous_a to_o go_v to_o trent_n and_o many_o of_o they_o especial_o the_o courtier_n can_v not_o believe_v but_o that_o the_o pope_n do_v counterfeit_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o be_v assure_v he_o can_v not_o avoid_v the_o council_n he_o do_v desire_v to_o see_v it_o quick_o he_o say_v he_o know_v what_o inconvenience_n the_o prolongation_n do_v cause_n but_o know_v not_o what_o the_o celebration_n may_v do_v and_o think_v that_o the_o enemy_n of_o his_o own_o person_n and_o of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n may_v do_v he_o more_o hurt_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o expectation_n than_o they_o can_v do_v in_o the_o council_n itself_o and_o be_v of_o a_o resolute_a nature_n he_o use_v the_o proverb_n it_o be_v better_a to_o prove_v the_o evil_a once_o then_o always_o to_o fear_v it_o while_o these_o delay_n be_v use_v the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n make_v a_o composition_n montsenis_fw-la the_o duke_n of_o savoy_n make_v 〈◊〉_d composition_n with_o the_o waldense_n of_o montsenis_fw-la with_o the_o waldense_n of_o the_o valley_n of_o montsenis_fw-la for_o have_v make_v more_o than_o a_o year_n trial_n to_o reduce_v they_o by_o punishment_n and_o after_o they_o stand_v upon_o their_o guard_n as_o have_v be_v say_v maintain_v soldier_n against_o they_o for_o which_o the_o pope_n do_v assist_v he_o with_o money_n howsoever_o they_o proceed_v rather_o with_o skirmish_n than_o any_o set_a war_n because_o of_o the_o craggednesse_n of_o the_o country_n yet_o at_o the_o last_o they_o come_v to_o a_o formal_a battle_n in_o which_o the_o duke_n have_v a_o great_a overthrow_n lose_v seven_o thousand_o man_n and_o slay_v but_o fourteen_o of_o the_o enemy_n and_o although_o he_o do_v often_o repair_v his_o army_n yet_o he_o have_v always_o the_o worse_a overthrow_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o great_a overthrow_n therefore_o consider_v he_o do_v nothing_o but_o make_v his_o rebel_n more_o warlike_a consume_v his_o own_o country_n and_o spend_v his_o money_n he_o resolve_v to_o receive_v they_o into_o favour_n and_o make_v a_o agreement_n with_o they_o the_o five_o of_o june_n in_o which_o he_o pardon_v all_o fault_n past_a give_v they_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n assign_v they_o certain_a place_n where_o they_o may_v make_v their_o congregation_n in_o other_o place_n give_v they_o leave_v to_o comfort_v the_o sick_a and_o do_v other_o duty_n of_o religion_n but_o not_o to_o preach_v give_v leave_n to_o those_o that_o be_v flee_v to_o return_v again_o and_o restitution_n of_o good_n to_o those_o that_o be_v banish_v it_o be_v agree_v also_o that_o the_o duke_n may_v send_v away_o which_o of_o their_o pastor_n he_o please_v and_o that_o they_o may_v provide_v themselves_o of_o other_o that_o the_o roman_a religion_n may_v be_v exercise_v in_o all_o place_n but_o no_o man_n enforce_v to_o profess_v it_o the_o pope_n be_v much_o distaste_v that_o a_o italian_a prince_n assist_v by_o he_o and_o not_o so_o potent_a but_o that_o pope_n which_o give_v distaste_n to_o the_o pope_n he_o may_v still_o have_v need_n of_o he_o shall_v permit_v heretic_n to_o live_v free_o in_o his_o state_n and_o the_o example_n do_v trouble_v he_o above_o all_o because_o it_o will_v be_v allege_v to_o he_o by_o great_a prince_n when_o they_o will_v permit_v another_o religion_n he_o make_v a_o bitter_a complaint_n hereof_o in_o the_o consistory_n compare_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o catholic_a king_n with_o that_o duke_n who_o have_v at_o the_o same_o time_n discover_v three_o thousand_o lutheran_n who_o go_v out_o of_o cosenza_n and_o retire_v themselves_o to_o the_o mountain_n to_o live_v according_a to_o their_o doctrine_n do_v hang_v some_o burn_v other_o and_o put_v the_o rest_n into_o the_o galley_n and_o he_o exhort_v all_o the_o cardinal_n to_o think_v of_o a_o remedy_n but_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o oppress_v a_o few_o disarm_v person_n far_o from_o help_n and_o over_o come_v a_o great_a number_n of_o arm_a man_n in_o a_o place_n advantageous_a for_o they_o with_o potent_a succour_n at_o their_o shoulder_n the_o duke_n send_v to_o iustific_a his_o cause_n and_o the_o pope_n not_o able_a to_o answer_v his_o reason_n be_v pacify_v in_o france_n though_o the_o queen_n and_o prelate_n do_v desire_v to_o satisfy_v the_o pope_n in_o refer_v the_o cause_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o council_n yet_o a_o congregation_n of_o the_o france_n who_o be_v pacify_v by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n be_v offend_v with_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o prelate_n
coccus_n archbishop_n of_o corfu_n make_v the_o oration_n when_o the_o mass_n be_v end_v 〈◊〉_d a_o question_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n and_o hungary_n about_o the_o precedency_n of_o their_o master_n 〈◊〉_d the_o mandate_n of_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v read_v there_o grow_v a_o question_n between_o the_o ambassador_n of_o hungary_n and_o portugal_n each_o pretend_v that_o his_o shall_v first_o be_v read_v as_o of_o the_o more_o eminent_a king_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o the_o precedence_n of_o the_o ambassador_n themselves_o because_o that_o of_o portugal_n as_o a_o secular_a sit_v at_o the_o right_a side_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o the_o other_o as_o a_o ecclesiastike_a at_o the_o left_a the_o legate_n have_v consult_v hereof_o say_v that_o the_o mandate_n shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o order_n as_o they_o be_v present_v not_o according_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o pope_n brief_n refer_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o index_n to_o the_o council_n be_v read_v also_o this_o index_n have_v be_v make_v in_o rome_n by_o paul_n the_o four_o as_o have_v be_v say_v with_o which_o if_o the_o council_n have_v meddle_v it_o may_v have_v seem_v to_o challenge_v superiority_n above_o the_o pope_n therefore_o they_o think_v fit_a that_o the_o pope_n shall_v voluntary_o give_v leave_n to_o prevent_v that_o prejudice_n the_o mass_n patriarch_n read_v the_o decree_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n index_n the_o decree_n concern_v the_o index_n mean_v to_o restore_v the_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o its_o purity_n and_o correct_v manner_n in_o regard_n the_o number_n of_o pernicious_a and_o suspect_a book_n be_v increase_v because_o the_o censure_n make_v in_o diverse_a province_n and_o rome_n have_v do_v no_o good_a have_v determine_v to_o depute_v some_o father_n to_o consider_v hereof_o and_o to_o relate_v to_o the_o synod_n in_o time_n convenient_a what_o they_o think_v fit_a to_o have_v do_v more_o to_o separate_v the_o cockle_n from_o the_o good_a corn_n to_o remove_v all_o scruple_n out_o of_o man_n mind_n and_o to_o take_v away_o all_o cause_n of_o complaint_n ordain_v that_o this_o shall_v be_v publish_v with_o that_o decree_n that_o if_o any_o have_v interest_n in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o book_n and_o censure_n or_o any_o other_o to_o be_v handle_v in_o council_n he_o may_v know_v and_o be_v assure_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v courteous_o hear_v and_o because_o the_o synod_n do_v hearty_o desire_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n that_o all_o may_v acknowledge_v their_o common_a mother_n it_o do_v invite_v all_o who_o do_v not_o communicate_v with_o she_o to_o reconciliation_n and_o concord_n and_o to_o come_v to_o trent_n where_o they_o shall_v be_v embrace_v with_o all_o office_n of_o charity_n and_o further_o have_v decree_v that_o a_o safe_a conduct_n may_v be_v grant_v in_o a_o general_a congregation_n and_o shall_v be_v of_o the_o same_o force_n and_o strength_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v grant_v in_o public_a session_n the_o decree_n be_v read_v the_o title_n whereof_o be_v of_o the_o holy_a ecumenicall_a general_a question_v the_o title_n of_o the_o council_n be_v question_v synod_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o christ_n the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n require_v that_o these_o word_n represent_v the_o universal_a church_n shall_v be_v add_v as_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o all_o the_o late_a counsel_n antonius_n perague_n archbishop_n of_o caglieri_n make_v the_o same_o request_n and_o these_o two_o be_v follow_v by_o almost_o all_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n desire_v that_o this_o request_n may_v be_v note_v in_o the_o act_n no_o answer_n be_v make_v but_o for_o conclusion_n the_o next_o session_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v the_o 14_o of_o may._n the_o decree_n be_v print_v not_o only_o because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n but_o because_o censure_v the_o decree_n be_v censure_v it_o be_v make_v of_o purpose_n to_o be_v publish_v to_o all_o and_o it_o be_v censure_v by_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n it_o be_v demand_v how_o the_o synod_n do_v call_v those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n if_o they_o be_v not_o know_v and_o say_v that_o former_o all_o thing_n be_v handle_v beside_o expectation_n and_o who_o can_v prophesy_v what_o the_o legate_n will_v propose_v because_o they_o know_v not_o themselves_o still_o expect_v commission_n from_o rome_n those_o who_o be_v interest_v in_o any_o book_n how_o can_v they_o know_v that_o any_o thing_n will_v be_v speak_v against_o it_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o citation_n and_o incertainty_n of_o the_o cause_n may_v induce_v every_o one_o to_o go_v to_o trent_n because_o every_o one_o have_v interest_n in_o some_o particular_a which_o may_v perhaps_o be_v treat_v on_o it_o be_v conclude_v general_o that_o they_o be_v call_v in_o show_n and_o exclude_v indeed_o notwithstanding_o these_o thing_n which_o they_o can_v not_o praise_v they_o commend_v the_o ingenuous_a confession_n of_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o former_a prohibition_n have_v beget_v scruple_n in_o man_n mind_n and_o give_v cause_n of_o complaint_n in_o germany_n that_o part_n be_v suspect_v where_o the_o synod_n give_v authority_n to_o itself_o to_o give_v a_o safe_a conduct_n in_o a_o general_a congregation_n for_o they_o understand_v not_o any_o difference_n in_o regard_n the_o same_o person_n meet_v in_o both_o assembly_n but_o only_o that_o they_o do_v wear_v mitre_n in_o the_o session_n and_o cap_n in_o the_o congregation_n nor_o why_o if_o the_o safe-conduct_n can_v not_o then_o be_v grant_v they_o can_v not_o make_v a_o session_n express_o for_o it_o in_o sum_n they_o think_v that_o there_o be_v some_o great_a mystery_n cover_v in_o it_o howsoever_o the_o most_o understand_a man_n do_v believe_v that_o the_o synod_n be_v assure_v that_o no_o protestant_n will_v come_v to_o trent_n with_o any_o safe-conduct_n whatsoever_o except_o it_o be_v by_o force_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1552._o because_o of_o the_o resolution_n of_o charles_n a_o thing_n which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n the_o pope_n write_v back_o to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o heretic_n shall_v not_o be_v invite_v to_o repentance_n with_o promise_n of_o pardon_n because_o it_o have_v be_v do_v by_o julius_n and_o another_o time_n by_o paul_n the_o four_o no_o good_a issue_n come_v of_o it_o among_o the_o heretic_n those_o who_o be_v in_o a_o place_n of_o liberty_n will_v not_o accept_v it_o and_o those_o who_o remain_v where_o the_o inquisition_n have_v power_n if_o they_o fear_v to_o be_v discover_v will_v receive_v the_o pardon_n fained_o to_o secure_v themselves_o of_o that_o legate_n the_o pope_n answer_n to_o the_o legate_n which_o be_v past_a with_o purpose_n to_o do_v worse_o more_v wary_o for_o the_o safe_a conduct_n he_o be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o all_o who_o be_v not_o under_o the_o inquisition_n but_o so_o as_o that_o the_o exception_n shall_v not_o be_v express_v in_o regard_n that_o when_o julius_n grant_v his_o pardon_n except_o only_o to_o those_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n and_o portugal_n much_o be_v speak_v against_o it_o and_o it_o pass_v with_o small_a reputation_n as_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o the_o same_o power_n over_o that_o inquisition_n as_o over_o other_o but_o for_o the_o manner_n of_o express_v it_o he_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o synod_n for_o the_o form_n he_o commend_v that_o which_o the_o council_n give_v to_o germany_n in_o the_o year_n 1552_o in_o regard_n that_o be_v see_v already_o and_o that_o so_o many_o protestant_n come_v that_o year_n to_o trent_n upon_o that_o security_n concern_v the_o index_n he_o ordain_v that_o the_o deputy_n shall_v proceed_v until_o a_o occasion_n be_v offer_v to_o make_v a_o public_a decree_n without_o the_o opposition_n of_o any_o prince_n the_o answer_n be_v come_v the_o second_o of_o march_n and_o the_o day_n follow_v congregation_n be_v hold_v to_o resolve_v whether_o the_o general_a pardon_n ought_v to_o be_v publish_v and_o a_o safe_a conduct_n grant_v and_o what_o form_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o the_o four_o day_n after_o long_a disputation_n all_o be_v conclude_v the_o legate_n have_v make_v the_o determination_n fall_v where_o they_o aim_v without_o intere_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o invite_v the_o heretic_n to_o repentance_n be_v omit_v for_o the_o reason_n allege_v in_o rome_n it_o be_v much_o dispute_v whether_o a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o french_a english_a and_o scottish_a man_n and_o some_o speak_v of_o the_o greek_n and_o other_o nation_n of_o the_o east_n it_o be_v present_o see_v that_o these_o poor_a man_n afflict_v in_o servitude_n
temptation_n which_o the_o devil_n will_v use_v to_o divert_v the_o father_n from_o the_o right_a way_n say_v that_o if_o they_o give_v ear_n to_o he_o they_o will_v make_v counsel_n lose_v all_o authority_n add_v that_o many_o counsel_n have_v be_v hold_v in_o germany_n and_o italy_n with_o no_o fruit_n or_o very_o little_a of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v neither_o free_a nor_o lawful_a because_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o will_n of_o another_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v careful_a to_o use_v well_o the_o power_n and_o liberty_n give_v they_o by_o god_n for_o if_o in_o private_a cause_n they_o deserve_v severe_a punishment_n who_o do_v gratify_v any_o man_n against_o justice_n they_o deserve_v it_o much_o more_o who_o be_v judge_n in_o cause_n divine_a do_v follow_v a_o popular_a applause_n or_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v make_v gown_a slave_n to_o the_o prince_n to_o who_o they_o be_v oblige_v and_o say_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v examine_v himself_o what_o passion_n do_v possess_v he_o and_o because_o the_o defect_n of_o some_o former_a synod_n have_v make_v a_o prejudice_n to_o this_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o show_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v past_a that_o every_o one_o may_v dispute_v without_o be_v burn_v that_o public_a faith_n be_v not_o break_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v call_v for_o from_o heaven_n only_o and_o that_o this_o be_v not_o that_o council_n which_o be_v begin_v by_o paul_n 3._o and_o prosecute_v by_o julius_n 3._o in_o turbulent_a time_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o arm_n which_o be_v dissolve_v without_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a but_o a_o new_a free_a peaceable_a and_o lawful_a council_n call_v according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n to_o which_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o republic_n do_v give_v consent_n to_o which_o germany_n will_v run_v and_o bring_v with_o the_o author_n of_o the_o new_a dispute_n the_o most_o grave_a and_o eloquent_a man_n which_o it_o have_v he_o conclude_v that_o they_o the_o ambassador_n do_v promise_v to_o this_o end_n the_o assistance_n of_o the_o king_n it_o seem_v that_o some_o of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o legate_n themselves_o do_v not_o take_v those_o word_n well_o to_o which_o the_o speaker_n not_o know_v make_v to_o which_o the_o speaker_n know_v not_o what_o answer_n to_o make_v what_o to_o answer_v nor_o what_o compliment_n to_o make_v the_o congregation_n end_v with_o the_o oration_n the_o next_o day_n the_o same_o ambassador_n go_v to_o the_o legate_n assemble_v for_o that_o purpose_n where_o they_o excuse_v the_o french_a prelate_n for_o not_o come_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o tumult_n promise_v that_o when_o they_o be_v end_v as_o they_o hope_v new_a the_o french_a ambassador_n demand_v of_o the_o legate_n a_o declaration_n that_o the_o council_n be_v new_a they_o will_v be_v short_o they_o shall_v come_v with_o speed_n afterward_o they_o declare_v that_o the_o hugonot_n do_v suspect_v the_o continuation_n of_o the_o council_n and_o do_v require_v a_o new_a that_o the_o king_n have_v treat_v hereof_o with_o the_o emperor_n who_o desire_v the_o same_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o confessionist_n that_o he_o have_v demand_v the_o same_o also_o of_o the_o pope_n who_o answer_v that_o the_o difference_n be_v only_o between_o they_o and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o that_o it_o concern_v not_o he_o but_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n therefore_o they_o demand_v a_o declaration_n in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o indication_n be_v new_a and_o not_o in_o these_o word_n indicendo_fw-la continuamus_fw-la &_o continuando_fw-la indicimus_fw-la which_o be_v a_o ambiguity_n not_o befit_v christian_n and_o impli_v a_o contradiction_n and_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n already_o make_v by_o the_o council_n be_v not_o receive_v by_o the_o french_a church_n nor_o by_o the_o pope_n himself_o and_o that_o henry_n 2._o do_v protest_v against_o it_o that_o concern_v this_o point_n they_o be_v address_v to_o they_o the_o legate_n because_o the_o pope_n have_v often_o say_v that_o the_o question_n of_o indiction_n or_o continuation_n be_v not_o he_o and_o that_o he_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n and_o have_v deliver_v this_o petition_n by_o word_n they_o leave_v it_o also_o in_o writing_n the_o legate_n after_o they_o have_v consult_v together_o answer_v in_o write_v also_o that_o they_o admit_v the_o excuse_n of_o the_o bishop_n absent_a but_o that_o they_o can_v answer_v to_o who_o the_o legate_n answer_v not_o defer_v the_o discussion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o council_n until_o their_o come_n because_o the_o father_n who_o be_v present_a will_v be_v incommodate_v too_o much_o that_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o declare_v that_o the_o indiction_n of_o the_o council_n be_v new_a but_o to_o preside_v only_o according_a to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o pope_n bull_n and_o the_o will_n of_o the_o synod_n the_o frenchman_n be_v content_v with_o the_o answer_n for_o the_o present_a have_v determine_v together_o with_o the_o imperialist_n not_o to_o proceed_v further_o so_o long_o as_o in_o the_o act_n mention_n be_v not_o make_v of_o continuation_n consider_v that_o the_o spaniard_n have_v make_v request_n in_o the_o first_o session_n that_o the_o continuation_n shall_v be_v declare_v and_o receive_v much_o contradiction_n there_o be_v danger_n that_o the_o council_n will_v have_v be_v dissolve_v but_o the_o answer_n of_o the_o legate_n publish_v by_o the_o french_a man_n that_o their_o authority_n be_v to_o preside_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o the_o synod_n make_v the_o spaniard_n say_v that_o those_o word_n do_v subject_a the_o legate_n to_o the_o council_n whereas_o indeed_o they_o make_v themselves_o lord_n over_o it_o and_o granata_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o absolute_a dominion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o of_o a_o lord_n also_o the_o legate_n propose_v nothing_o for_o the_o next_o session_n the_o prelate_n who_o favour_v residency_n begin_v to_o discourse_v again_o of_o it_o and_o persuade_v the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o emperor_n king_n of_o france_n portugal_n and_o all_o the_o other_o to_o move_v the_o legate_n that_o it_o may_v be_v decide_v in_o the_o next_o session_n allege_v residence_n the_o spaniard_n require_v a_o determination_n in_o the_o point_n of_o residence_n that_o it_o have_v be_v propose_v and_o dispute_v it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a scandal_n to_o leave_v it_o undecided_a and_o will_v show_v that_o it_o be_v for_o some_o particular_a interest_n see_v that_o the_o principal_a prelate_n of_o the_o council_n and_o the_o great_a number_n do_v desire_v the_o determination_n of_o it_o the_o french_a man_n together_o with_o the_o imperialist_n make_v instance_n that_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v not_o be_v handle_v protestant_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o french_a king_n &_o emperor_n demand_v of_o the_o legate_n that_o y_z e_z point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o protestant_n in_o absence_n of_o the_o protestant_n who_o do_v impugn_v they_o until_o their_o contumacy_n be_v manifest_a in_o regard_n the_o disputation_n be_v superfluous_a where_o there_o be_v none_o to_o contradict_v especial_o there_o be_v matter_n enough_o beside_o in_o which_o the_o world_n do_v agree_v that_o be_v a_o good_a reformation_n of_o manner_n that_o the_o english_a ambassador_n in_o france_n have_v declare_v that_o his_o queen_n will_v send_v to_o the_o council_n whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o other_o protestant_n will_v do_v the_o like_a so_o that_o a_o general_a reunion_n of_o the_o church_n will_v succeed_v and_o that_o one_o may_v assure_v himself_o to_o see_v this_o effect_v if_o a_o good_a reformation_n be_v make_v cardinal_n simoneta_n answer_v this_o second_o proposition_n that_o the_o business_n seem_v easy_a but_o be_v not_o so_o because_o all_o consist_v in_o the_o disposition_n of_o benefice_n in_o which_o the_o abuse_n proceed_v from_o king_n and_o prince_n this_o trouble_v all_o the_o ambassador_n because_o of_o the_o nomination_n and_o disposition_n which_o prince_n do_v exercise_n and_o especial_o the_o french_a king_n but_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o residence_n do_v molest_v the_o legate_n more_o nor_o be_v the_o father_n pacify_v with_o the_o excuse_n former_o use_v that_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o sufficient_o digest_v that_o there_o be_v not_o time_n enough_o before_o the_o session_n to_o make_v it_o clear_a and_o for_o other_o consideration_n and_o the_o heat_n grow_v so_o great_a that_o some_o of_o the_o vltramontans_n be_v agree_v to_o protest_v and_o depart_v and_o this_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o stop_v the_o motion_n for_o the_o ambassador_n fear_v that_o the_o council_n will_v be_v interrupt_v and_o know_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v cherish_v every_o occasion_n cease_v
corrupt_v the_o council_n and_o make_v it_o hugonor_n which_o he_o say_v himself_o will_v preserve_v and_o have_v force_n to_o do_v it_o that_o he_o also_o and_o his_o colleague_n defend_v some_o who_o dispute_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o opinion_n be_v heretical_a and_o the_o favourer_n of_o it_o be_v heretic_n threaten_v to_o persecute_v and_o chastise_v they_o he_o say_v they_o live_v like_o hugonot_n that_o they_o do_v no_o reverence_n to_o the_o sacrament_n that_o lansac_n at_o his_o table_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o many_o prelate_n invite_v have_v say_v that_o there_o will_v come_v so_o many_o bishop_n out_o of_o france_n and_o germany_n that_o they_o will_v chase_v the_o idol_n out_o of_o rome_n he_o complain_v of_o one_o of_o the_o venetian_a ambassador_n and_o send_v his_o master_n word_n of_o he_o he_o say_v of_o the_o cardinal_n mantua_n serepando_n legate_n and_o of_o three_o of_o the_o legate_n and_o varmiense_n that_o they_o be_v unworthy_a of_o the_o cap._n of_o the_o prelate_n he_o speak_v as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v and_o persuade_v the_o friend_n of_o each_o of_o they_o to_o write_v unto_o they_o all_o this_o be_v do_v and_o say_v by_o he_o not_o because_o he_o believe_v it_o or_o for_o intemperance_n of_o his_o tongue_n but_o by_o art_n to_o force_v every_o one_o some_o for_o fear_n some_o for_o shame_n some_o for_o civility_n to_o make_v his_o apology_n to_o he_o which_o he_o do_v most_o easy_o receive_v and_o ready_o believe_v and_o its_o incredible_a apology_n that_o he_o may_v force_v they_o to_o make_v their_o apology_n how_o his_o affair_n be_v advance_v by_o this_o mean_n for_o he_o gain_v some_o and_o cause_v the_o other_o to_o proceed_v more_o wary_o and_o remissly_a whereupon_o his_o natural_a courage_n reviue_v in_o he_o which_o still_o be_v full_a of_o hope_n he_o say_v that_o all_o be_v unite_v against_o he_o but_o that_o in_o the_o end_n he_o will_v make_v they_o all_o be_v reunite_v in_o his_o favour_n because_o they_o have_v all_o need_n of_o he_o some_o demand_v assistance_n and_o some_o grace_n among_o the_o prelate_n which_o the_o pope_n send_v last_o to_o the_o council_n from_o rome_n as_o have_v be_v say_v there_o be_v one_o charles_n visconte_n bishop_n of_o vintimiglia_n who_o have_v be_v senator_n of_o milan_n and_o employ_v in_o many_o ambassage_n a_o man_n fit_a for_o negotiation_n and_o of_o a_o exact_a judgement_n have_v load_v this_o man_n with_o promise_n which_o he_o perform_v also_o create_v he_o cardinal_n in_o the_o first_o promotion_n after_o the_o council_n he_o desire_v to_o have_v he_o in_o trent_n beside_o council_n the_o bishop_n of_o vintimiglia●_n be_v the_o pope_n secret_a minister_n in_o the_o council_n the_o legate_n as_o a_o secret_a minister_n he_o give_v he_o commission_n to_o speak_v that_o to_o diverse_a which_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o be_v commit_v to_o writing_n to_o mark_v well_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o legate_n and_o the_o particular_a cause_n thereof_o to_o observe_v exact_o the_o humour_n opinion_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o to_o write_v to_o he_o particular_o all_o matter_n of_o substance_n he_o charge_v he_o to_o observe_v the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n above_o all_o the_o legate_n but_o to_o hold_v intelligence_n with_o simoneta_n who_o know_v his_o mind_n and_o to_o labour_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o any_o demand_n make_v for_o the_o declaration_n concern_v residency_n or_o if_o it_o can_v not_o be_v hinder_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o that_o if_o that_o also_o can_v not_o be_v obtain_v he_o shall_v delay_v it_o as_o long_o as_o it_o be_v possible_a use_v all_o mean_n which_o he_o think_v expedient_a for_o this_o end_n he_o give_v he_o also_o a_o list_n of_o the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o favour_v the_o roman_a part_n in_o that_o matter_n with_o commission_n to_o thank_v they_o and_o encourage_v they_o to_o continue_v and_o to_o promise_v they_o recompense_v refer_v to_o his_o discretion_n entreat_v with_o the_o opposite_n to_o use_v some_o kind_n of_o threat_n without_o sharpness_n of_o word_n but_o strong_a in_o substance_n and_o to_o promise_v to_o those_o that_o will_v relent_v oblivion_n of_o all_o that_o be_v past_a and_o to_o give_v particular_a advice_n to_o cardinal_n boromeo_n of_o whatsoever_o do_v happen_v which_o he_o do_v and_o the_o register_n of_o the_o letter_n write_v by_o he_o with_o much_o acuteness_n and_o iudgeman_n have_v be_v show_v i_o out_o of_o which_o a_o great_a part_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o follow_v have_v be_v draw_v but_o have_v receive_v advice_n of_o the_o promise_n make_v by_o mantua_n he_o see_v it_o be_v hard_a to_o divert_v the_o handle_n of_o that_o article_n and_o think_v that_o the_o dissension_n between_o the_o legate_n will_v produce_v great_a evil_n and_o esteem_v this_o to_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a point_n as_o well_o in_o deed_n as_o for_o reputation_n for_o how_o can_v he_o hope_v to_o repress_v the_o attempt_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o other_o prince_n when_o he_o can_v not_o govern_v his_o own_o therefore_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o use_v the_o strong_a medicine_n for_o a_o disease_n that_o have_v seize_v on_o the_o vital_a part_n and_o resolve_v to_o show_v open_o how_o ill_o he_o be_v satisfy_v with_o mantua_n which_o he_o think_v will_v either_o make_v he_o alter_v his_o course_n or_o ask_v leave_v to_o depart_v or_o by_o some_o mean_n to_o retire_v from_o trent_n and_o if_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o council_n do_v ensue_v it_o be_v so_o much_o the_o better_o he_o give_v order_n that_o the_o dispatch_n to_o trent_n mantua_n the_o dispatch_n from_o rome_n be_v no_o more_o address_v to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o mantua_n former_o address_v to_o he_o as_o prime_a legate_n shall_v hereafter_o be_v direct_v to_o simoneta_n he_o remoove_v from_o the_o congregation_n of_o cardinal_n who_o be_v to_o consult_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o trent_n the_o cardinal_n gonzaga_n and_o cause_v frederico_n boromeo_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o cardinal_n his_o uncle_n do_v think_v to_o ruin_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n but_o shall_v effect_v nothing_o but_o the_o ruin_n of_o himself_o and_o of_o his_o house_n he_o relate_v to_o the_o cardinal_n s_o angelo_n who_o be_v a_o great_a friend_n to_o mantua_n whatsoever_o have_v happen_v and_o show_v himself_o most_o choleric_a against_o he_o and_o as_o much_o against_o camillus_n oliws_fw-la the_o cardinal_n secretary_n as_o not_o have_v perform_v the_o promise_n he_o make_v unto_o he_o when_o he_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n which_o cost_v the_o poor_a man_n very_o dear_a for_o howsoever_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o cardinal_n be_v reconcile_v yet_o after_o his_o death_n return_v to_o mantua_n with_o the_o corpse_n of_o his_o master_n he_o be_v imprison_v by_o the_o inquisition_n upon_o diverse_a pretence_n and_o trouble_v a_o long_a time●_n who_o after_o his_o persecution_n be_v end_v i_o know_v myself_o to_o be_v a_o person_n very_o virtuous_a and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o deserve_v such_o misfortune_n when_o the_o pope_n be_v thus_o affect_v lanciano_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o among_o pope_n who_o secretary_n also_o camillus_n olluus_fw-la be_v in_o disgrace_n with_o the_o pope_n other_o thing_n present_v to_o his_o holiness_n a_o letter_n subscribe_v by_o more_o than_o thirty_o bishop_n in_o favour_n of_o residency_n in_o which_o they_o complain_v of_o his_o distaste_n against_o they_o protest_v they_o do_v not_o think_v their_o opinion_n be_v contrary_a pope_n the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o lanciano_n with_o y_z e_z pope_n to_o his_o authority_n which_o they_o will_v defend_v against_o all_o and_o maintain_v it_o inviolable_a in_o all_o part_n this_o make_v a_o miraculous_a disposition_n in_o the_o pope_n mind_n to_o receive_v kind_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o legate_n mantua_n seripando_n and_o varmiense_n and_o to_o give_v care_n to_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o archbishop_n who_o give_v he_o a_o particular_a account_n of_o all_o occurrence_n and_o make_v he_o a_o great_a deal_n less_o suspicious_a then_o he_o begin_v to_o excuse_v the_o cardinal_n that_o in_o the_o beginning_n not_o be_v able_a to_o foresee_v that_o any_o inconvenience_n can_v happen_v they_o do_v discover_v the_o opinion_n which_o in_o their_o conscience_n they_o do_v hold_v and_o after_o that_o contention_n do_v arise_v without_o their_o fault_n or_o defect_n their_o adherence_n to_o that_o part_n be_v honourable_a for_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o court._n for_o now_o it_o can_v not_o be_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o the_o court_n be_v opposite_a to_o a_o opinion_n which_o the_o world_n hold_v to_o be_v pious_a and_o necessary_a and_o this_o have_v
of_o surrento_n the_o bishop_n of_o vivier_n peter_n paul_n costazzarus_n bishop_n of_o aqui_fw-la and_o other_o who_o have_v obtain_v leave_n from_o the_o legate_n which_o mantua_n give_v they_o that_o in_o regard_n they_o be_v his_o friend_n he_o may_v set_v they_o at_o liberty_n and_o the_o other_o to_o take_v away_o occasion_n of_o distaste_n but_o the_o ambassador_n of_o portugal_n do_v remonstrate_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o this_o will_v be_v a_o disreputation_n to_o the_o council_n the_o cause_n be_v know_v why_o they_o suffer_v and_o that_o it_o will_v be_v say_v there_o be_v no_o liberty_n which_o will_v also_o be_v dishonourable_a to_o the_o pope_n thereupon_o they_o resolve_v to_o stop_v they_o and_o the_o rather_o stop_v but_o be_v stop_v because_o they_o understand_v that_o so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v depart_v other_o will_v ask_v leave_n also_o the_o legate_n defer_v to_o propose_v the_o other_o article_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o difficulty_n which_o they_o foresee_v the_o three_o of_o july_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n and_o the_o bavarian_a desire_v that_o they_o will_v deliver_v their_o opinion_n concern_v they_o and_o a_o congregation_n be_v call_v the_o next_o day_n to_o this_o effect_n the_o french_a ambassador_n present_v a_o writing_n exhort_v the_o father_n cup._n the_o ambassador_n of_o france_n and_o bavaria_n present_v a_o writing_n to_o persuade_v the_o grant_n of_o the_o cup._n to_o grant_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n make_v this_o their_o ground_n that_o in_o matter_n of_o positive_a law_n as_o this_o be_v they_o ought_v to_o yield_v and_o not_o to_o be_v so_o obstinate_a but_o to_o consider_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n and_o not_o give_v scandal_n to_o the_o world_n by_o show_v themselves_o so_o constant_a in_o observe_v man_n precept_n and_o neglect_v god_n by_o reject_v reformation_n and_o in_o the_o end_n they_o require_v that_o what_o determination_n soever_o they_o will_v make_v it_o may_v not_o prejudice_n the_o use_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n who_o receive_v the_o cup_n in_o their_o consecration_n nor_o the_o custom_n of_o some_o monastery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o do_v at_o certain_a time_n administer_v it_o yet_o nothing_o else_o be_v do_v in_o that_o congregation_n but_o only_o sixteen_o point_n of_o doctrine_n give_v forth_o to_o be_v discuss_v in_o the_o congregation_n follow_v the_o legate_n be_v astonish_v at_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o frenchman_n understand_v they_o be_v join_v with_o the_o imperialist_n for_o which_o cause_n themselves_o chalice_n the_o legate_n be_v trouble_v with_o the_o conjunction_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o imperialist_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o chalice_n be_v to_o walk_v more_o wary_o and_o weigh_v well_o the_o motive_n of_o the_o frenchman_n to_o derogate_v from_o the_o positive_a precept_n they_o observe_v that_o the_o grant_v of_o the_o cup_n beside_o the_o difficulty_n propose_v do_v draw_v with_o it_o many_o more_o in_o diverse_a matter_n they_o remember_v the_o request_n for_o marriage_n of_o priest_n make_v by_o the_o bavarian_a and_o that_o lansac_n in_o a_o feast_n two_o day_n before_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o many_o prelate_n invite_v exhert_v they_o to_o gratify_v the_o emperor_n in_o the_o petition_n for_o the_o cup_n say_v that_o france_n do_v desire_v prayer_n divine_a office_n and_o mass_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o &_o marriage_n grant_v to_o priest_n and_o know_v that_o the_o beginning_n be_v more_o easy_o resist_v then_o the_o progress_n and_o that_o one_o may_v with_o less_o pain_n be_v hinder_v from_o enter_v into_o a_o house_n then_o drive_v forth_o they_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o fit_a time_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o cup._n they_o persuade_v pagnavo_n agent_n of_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n to_o desire_v that_o the_o determination_n may_v not_o be_v make_v before_o his_o king_n be_v advise_v thereof_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o day_n be_v intermit_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o imperialist_n that_o they_o will_v be_v contend_v to_o defer_v the_o matter_n allege_v diverse_a reason_n the_o most_o conclude_a whereof_o be_v because_o the_o time_n be_v too_o short_a to_o make_v the_o ●●ferred_v and_o the●●_n do_v cause_n treaty_n there_o of_o to_o be_v ●●ferred_v father_n understand_v that_o the_o grant_n be_v necessary_a final_o after_o long_a parley_n they_o be_v content_a that_o all_o that_o part_n which_o concern_v doctrine_n shall_v be_v defer_v where_o with_o the_o legate_n not_o be_v satisfy_v at_o the_o last_o the_o ambassador_n consent_v that_o that_o point_n only_o shall_v be_v defer_v so_o that_o the_o dilation_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o decree_n and_o a_o promise_n make_v to_o determine_v it_o another_o time_n the_o frenchman_n remain_v to_o be_v treat_v with_o where_o they_o find_v more_o facility_n than_o they_o expect_v who_o say_v they_o have_v neither_o propose_v nor_o require_v it_o but_o only_o assist_v the_o emperor_n ambassador_n this_o difficulty_n be_v overcome_v they_o begin_v to_o compose_v the_o decree_n which_o to_o dispatch_v quick_o they_o let_v the_o father_n know_v that_o if_o any_o of_o they_o will_v advise_v any_o thing_n they_o shall_v commit_v it_o to_o writing_n that_o the_o composition_n may_v not_o be_v foreslow_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o eight_o day_n daniel_n barbaro_n patriarch_n of_o aquileia_n say_v in_o deliver_v his_o suffrage_n that_o news_n be_v come_v of_o the_o accord_n in_o france_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o many_o prelate_n will_v come_v it_o be_v fit_a to_o defer_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n until_o their_o arrival_n but_o the_o instance_n be_v second_v by_o none_o not_o so_o much_o as_o by_o the_o french_a ambassador_n themselves_o it_o do_v fall_v of_o itself_o in_o the_o next_o congregation_n antonius_n augustinus_n bishop_n of_o lerida_n put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o it_o will_v be_v good_a to_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o custom_n of_o france_n according_a to_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o ambassador_n by_o put_v in_o word_n which_o may_v preserve_v the_o privilege_n of_o that_o kingdom_n add_v that_o after_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n the_o grecian_n be_v not_o forbid_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o cup_n because_o they_o have_v a_o privilege_n which_o he_o have_v see_v but_o be_v second_v by_o none_o but_o bernar_n do_v dal_a bene_n a_o florentine_a bishop_n of_o nimes_n his_o proposition_n be_v lay_v aside_o also_o after_o the_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n ferrier_n do_v curious_o demand_v of_o augustinus_n the_o tenor_n author_n and_o time_n of_o that_o privilege_n who_o have_v refer_v it_o to_o pope_n damasus_n the_o ambassador_n laugh_v because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o that_o pope_n to_o abstain_v from_o the_o cup_n be_v account_v sacrilege_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o roman_a ordinary_n do_v describe_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o laity_n always_o with_o the_o cup_n and_o that_o in_o the_o year_n 1200._o innocentius_n the_o three_o make_v mention_n that_o the_o woman_n do_v receive_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o communion_n the_o ten_o day_n leonard_n aller_n a_o dutchman_n titular_a bishop_n of_o philodelphia_n who_o come_v the_o week_n before_o deliver_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o decree_n make_v a_o digression_n in_o manner_n of_o a_o set_a speech_n desire_v the_o legate_n and_o the_o synod_n that_o the_o german_a prelate_n may_v be_v expect_v use_v diverse_a reason_n but_o principal_o three_o which_o be_v ill_o take_v by_o the_o congregation_n that_o be_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v call_v a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o a_o whole_a principal_a nation_n of_o christendom_n be_v want_v that_o to_o proceed_v without_o expect_v they_o will_v be_v account_v a_o precipitation_n that_o the_o pope_n ought_v to_o write_v to_o they_o and_o call_v they_o particular_o the_o good_a father_n know_v not_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v deal_v with_o they_o two_o year_n before_o by_o delphinus_n and_o commendone_v his_o nuncij_fw-la in_o germany_n nor_o what_o answer_n be_v make_v by_o the_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n the_o former_a of_o which_o say_v they_o will_v not_o and_o the_o late_a that_o they_o can_v not_o come_v to_o the_o council_n some_o think_v he_o be_v move_v by_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n who_o see_v that_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v defer_v be_v willing_a to_o prolong_v theresidue_n also_o in_o the_o next_o congregation_n nine_o point_n of_o reformation_n former_o establish_v be_v read_v and_o to_o the_o first_o that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v pay_v for_o ordination_n read_v nine_o point_n of_o reformation_n be_v read_v albertus_n duimius_n bishop_n of_o veglia_n who_o come_v the_o week_n before_o
who_o require_v that_o the_o matter_n shall_v be_v defer_v and_o examine_v again_o to_o who_o the_o speaker_n answer_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o legate_n that_o consideration_n shall_v be_v have_v of_o it_o and_o final_o the_o next_o session_n be_v intimate_v for_o the_o twelve_o of_o november_n to_o determine_v concern_v the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n and_o matrimony_n session_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o next_o session_n and_o the_o synod_n be_v dismiss_v after_o the_o usual_a manner_n great_a discourse_n between_o the_o father_n about_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n continue_v still_o concern_v which_o some_o perhaps_o will_v be_v curious_a to_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n the_o decree_n last_o recite_v be_v not_o put_v after_o that_o of_o the_o mass_n as_o the_o matter_n seem_v to_o require_v but_o in_o a_o place_n where_o it_o have_v no_o connexion_n or_o likeness_n with_o the_o article_n precede_v he_o may_v know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a maxim_n in_o part_n a_o maxim_n in_o the_o council_n about_o the_o mayor_n part_n that_o council_n that_o to_o establish_v a_o decree_n of_o reformation_n a_o mayor_n part_n of_o voice_n be_v sufficient_a but_o that_o a_o decree_n of_o faith_n can_v not_o be_v make_v if_o a_o considerable_a part_n do_v contradict_v therefore_o the_o legate_n know_v that_o hardly_o more_o than_o half_o will_v consent_v to_o this_o of_o the_o chalice_n do_v resolve_v to_o make_v it_o a_o article_n of_o reformation_n and_o to_o place_v it_o the_o last_o among_o those_o to_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v of_o that_o rank_n there_o be_v also_o many_o discourse_n at_o that_o time_n and_o some_o day_n after_o about_o the_o point_n decide_v that_o christ_n offer_v himself_o in_o the_o supper_n some_o say_n that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o three_o and_o twenty_o contradictor_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_o decide_v and_o other_o answer_v that_o a_o eight_o part_n can_v not_o be_v call_v a_o considerable_a or_o notable_a part_n there_o be_v some_o also_o who_o maintain_v that_o the_o maxim_n have_v place_n only_o in_o the_o anathematism_n and_o in_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o not_o in_o every_o clause_n which_o be_v put_v in_o for_o better_a expression_n as_o this_o which_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o canon_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n be_v very_o glad_a for_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v assure_v that_o his_o majesty_n will_v more_o easy_o obtain_v it_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o upon_o more_o favourable_a condition_n than_o it_o can_v have_v be_v obtain_v in_o the_o council_n where_o for_o the_o variety_n of_o opinion_n and_o interest_n it_o be_v hard_o to_o make_v many_o to_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n though_o in_o a_o good_a and_o necessary_a matter_n the_o great_a part_n overcom_v the_o better_a and_o he_o that_o oppose_v have_v always_o the_o advantage_n of_o he_o that_o promote_v and_o their_o hope_n be_v the_o great_a because_o the_o pope_n seem_v before_o to_o have_v favour_v their_o petition_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o the_o same_o opinion_n aim_v not_o to_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n absolute_o but_o to_o pacify_v the_o people_n of_o his_o own_o state_n and_o of_o germany_n who_o be_v distaste_v with_o the_o pope_n authority_n for_o the_o thing_n past_a can_v not_o relish_v any_o thing_n well_o that_o proceed_v from_o he_o whereas_o if_o they_o have_v obtain_v this_o grant_n immediate_o from_o the_o council_n it_o will_v have_v give_v they_o good_a satisfaction_n and_o breed_v a_o opinion_n in_o they_o that_o they_o may_v have_v obtain_v other_o request_n which_o they_o esteem_v so_o that_o this_o motion_n be_v stop_v and_o the_o infect_a minister_n casseer_v he_o do_v hope_n he_o may_v have_v hold_v they_o in_o the_o catholic_a communion_n he_o see_v by_o former_a experience_n that_o the_o grant_v of_o paul_n be_v not_o well_o receive_v and_o do_v more_o hurt_v then_o good_a and_o for_o this_o cause_n he_o do_v prosecute_v the_o instance_n no_o further_o with_o the_o pope_n and_o declare_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o therefore_o when_o he_o receive_v news_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n turn_v to_o some_o prelate_n who_o be_v with_o he_o he_o say_v i_o have_v do_v all_o i_o can_v to_o save_v my_o people_n now_o look_v you_o unto_o it_o who_o it_o do_v more_o concern_v but_o those_o people_n which_o desire_v and_o expect_v the_o favour_n or_o as_o they_o say_v decree_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o decree_n the_o restitution_n of_o that_o which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o be_v all_o distaste_v that_o their_o just_a request_n have_v be_v treat_v on_o six_o month_n present_v by_o the_o intercession_n of_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a prince_n and_o after_o for_o better_a examination_n defer_v and_o dispute_v and_o discuss_v again_o with_o such_o contention_n shall_v in_o the_o end_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o may_v have_v be_v as_o well_o do_v at_o the_o very_a first_o without_o lose_v so_o much_o time_n so_o many_o persuasion_n and_o so_o great_a pain_n they_o say_v the_o condition_n of_o christian_n be_v according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o isayas_n he_o send_v and_o countermand_v expect_v and_o reexpect_v for_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v move_v first_o refer_v that_o to_o the_o council_n which_o now_o the_o council_n remit_v to_o he_o and_o both_o of_o they_o do_v mock_v both_o prince_n and_o people_n some_o discourse_v more_o substantial_o that_o the_o synod_n have_v reserve_v the_o definition_n of_o two_o article_n whether_o the_o cause_n which_o do_v former_o move_v to_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n be_v such_o as_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o make_v they_o persevere_v in_o the_o same_o prohibition_n and_o if_o not_o with_o what_o condition_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v grant_v the_o former_a be_v undoubted_o a_o matter_n not_o of_o fact_n but_o of_o faith_n the_o council_n do_v confess_v by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o it_o know_v the_o cause_n to_o be_v unsufficient_a and_o will_v not_o for_o worldly_a respect_n make_v the_o declaration_n for_o if_o they_o have_v think_v they_o sufficient_a they_o must_v needs_o persevere_v in_o the_o prohibition_n if_o any_o doubt_n have_v remain_v they_o shall_v have_v proceed_v in_o the_o examination_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o remit_v it_o but_o for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o cause_n but_o if_o they_o have_v make_v the_o declaration_n negative_a that_o be_v that_o the_o cause_n be_v not_o such_o as_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o persevere_v and_o refer_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o do_v upon_o information_n what_o remain_v to_o be_v do_v defacto_fw-la they_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o this_o be_v presuppose_v by_o the_o reference_n for_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o session_n have_v repeat_v the_o two_o article_n they_o resolve_v to_o refer_v the_o whole_a business_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o not_o presuppose_v any_o thing_n i_o do_v not_o find_v in_o the_o memorial_n which_o i_o have_v see_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n do_v raise_v any_o matter_n of_o discourse_n and_o the_o cause_n perhaps_o be_v for_o that_o the_o word_n do_v not_o so_o easy_o declare_v the_o sense_n as_o contain_v many_o strain_a metaphor_n which_o draw_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o reader_n unto_o diverse_a consideration_n who_o when_o they_o be_v come_v to_o the_o end_n know_v not_o what_o they_o have_v read_v only_o concern_v the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n in_o the_o mass_n the_o protestant_n say_v something_o for_o it_o seem_v a_o contradiction_n to_o say_v that_o the_o mass_n do_v contain_v much_o instruction_n for_o the_o faithful_a people_n and_o to_o approve_v that_o part_n shall_v be_v utter_v with_o a_o low_a voice_n and_o whole_o to_o forbid_v the_o vulgar_a tongue_n only_o command_v the_o pastor_n to_o declare_v something_o to_o the_o people_n whereunto_o some_o answer_v well_o that_o in_o the_o mass_n be_v some_o secret_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v conceal_v from_o the_o people_n which_o be_v uncapable_a for_o which_o cause_n they_o be_v speak_v soft_o and_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n but_o other_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o good_a edification_n be_v command_v to_o be_v teach_v but_o this_o be_v oppose_v two_o way_n one_o that_o therefore_o this_o second_o sort_n ought_v to_o be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a the_o other_o because_o they_o do_v not_o distinguish_v the_o two_o sort_n for_o the_o pastor_n be_v command_v to_o declare_v often_o something_o of_o that_o which_o be_v read_v and_o conceal_v the_o rest_n these_o two_o kind_n be_v not_o distinguish_v some_o of_o they_o may_v mistake_v for_o want_n of_o knowledge_n and_o so_o abuse_v the_o people_n the_o antiquary_n do_v laugh_v at_o these_o discourse_n because_o it_o be_v
for_o the_o defer_v of_o it_o wherefore_o though_o the_o time_n be_v past_a they_o come_v to_o the_o legate_n and_o tell_v they_o they_o have_v a_o new_a commission_n from_o the_o king_n to_o make_v request_n that_o they_o will_v labour_v in_o the_o reformation_n and_o for_o point_n of_o doctrine_n expect_v the_o come_n of_o his_o prelate_n add_v that_o if_o the_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o matrimony_n be_v dispute_v by_o the_o divine_n and_o handle_v by_o the_o prelate_n no_o more_o point_n of_o doctrine_n will_v remain_v and_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n wherefore_o then_o request_n be_v that_o they_o will_v be_v please_v to_o defer_v they_o until_o the_o end_n of_o october_n employ_v themselves_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n or_o one_o day_n in_o that_o and_o another_o in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n not_o defer_v as_o they_o have_v do_v all_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n until_o the_o last_o day_n immediate_o before_o the_o session_n so_o that_o there_o scarce_o remain_v time_n so_o much_o as_o to_o see_v the_o article_n much_o less_o to_o consult_v upon_o they_o the_o legate_n answer_v that_o their_o proposition_n do_v desire_v to_o be_v weigh_v well_o answer_v to_o which_o the_o legate_n answer_v and_o that_o they_o will_v be_v careful_a to_o give_v they_o all_o possible_a satisfaction_n demand_v a_o copy_n of_o their_o instruction_n that_o they_o may_v resolve_v the_o better_a the_o ambassador_n give_v they_o a_o writing_n of_o this_o tenor_n that_o the_o king_n have_v see_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o july_n concern_v the_o communion_n sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la and_o defer_v two_o article_n in_o the_o same_o matter_n and_o those_o propose_v in_o the_o congregation_n concern_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n howsoever_o he_o commend_v that_o which_o be_v do_v yet_o he_o can_v conceal_v that_o which_o be_v general_o speak_v that_o be_v that_o the_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o manner_n be_v either_o quite_o omit_v or_o slender_o handle_v and_o the_o controversed_a point_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o all_o the_o father_n do_v agree_v hasty_o determine_v which_o although_o he_o think_v to_o be_v false_a yet_o he_o desire_v that_o the_o proposition_n of_o his_o ambassador_n may_v be_v expound_v as_o necessary_a to_o provide_v for_o the_o good_a of_o christendom_n and_o the_o calamity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o have_v find_v by_o experence_n that_o neither_o severity_n nor_o moderation_n have_v be_v able_a to_o reduce_v those_o who_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o general_n council_n which_o he_o have_v obtain_v of_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o be_v sorry_a that_o the_o tumult_n of_o france_n do_v hinder_v the_o come_n of_o his_o prelate_n that_o he_o see_v well_o that_o the_o constancy_n and_o rigour_n in_o continue_v the_o form_n begin_v by_o the_o legate_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o reconcile_v peace_n and_o make_v a_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n that_o his_o desire_n be_v that_o nothing_o may_v be_v do_v to_o alien_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o adversary_n now_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o council_n but_o that_o they_o may_v be_v invite_v and_o in_o case_n they_o come_v receive_v as_o child_n with_o all_o humanity_n hope_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o will_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v teach_v and_o bring_v back_o to_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o all_o that_o be_v in_o trent_n do_v profess_v the_o same_o religion_n and_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v make_v doubt_n of_o any_o part_n thereof_o he_o think_v the_o disputation_n and_o censure_n in_o point_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v not_o only_o superfluous_a but_o impertinent_a for_o the_o catholic_n and_o a_o cause_n to_o separate_v the_o adversary_n the_o more_o for_o he_o that_o think_v they_o will_v receive_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o they_o have_v not_o assist_v do_v not_o know_v they_o well_o neither_o will_v any_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o this_o mean_n but_o argument_n minister_v of_o write_v more_o book_n therefore_o the_o king_n think_v it_o better_a to_o omit_v the_o matter_n of_o religion_n until_o the_o other_o of_o reformation_n be_v well_o set_v in_o order_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n at_o which_o every_o one_o must_v aim_v that_o the_o council_n which_o now_o be_v great_a and_o will_v be_v great_a by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n may_v produce_v fruit_n afterward_o the_o king_n demand_v that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o absence_n of_o his_o bishop_n the_o next_o session_n may_v be_v put_v off_o until_o the_o end_n of_o october_n or_o the_o publication_n of_o the_o decree_v defer_v or_o a_o new_a order_n expect_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o he_o have_v write_v labour_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n and_o because_o he_o understand_v that_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o counsel_n be_v not_o observe_v that_o king_n and_o prince_n or_o their_o ambassador_n may_v declare_v the_o necessity_n of_o their_o state_n his_o majesty_n demand_v that_o their_o authority_n may_v be_v preserve_v and_o all_o revoke_v which_o have_v be_v do_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o same_o day_n the_o emperor_n ambassador_n come_v to_o the_o legate_n require_v ambassador_n the_o petition_n of_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n that_o the_o article_n send_v by_o his_o majesty_n and_o present_v by_o they_o may_v be_v propose_v and_o be_v very_o earnest_a that_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o that_o the_o reformation_n may_v be_v serviceable_a not_o only_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o for_o the_o church_n of_o every_o particular_a kingdom_n their_o desire_n be_v that_o two_o of_o every_o nation_n may_v be_v depute_v to_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o that_o which_o do_v deserve_v to_o be_v propose_v and_o discuss_v in_o council_n the_o legate_n make_v a_o common_a answer_n to_o they_o both_o that_o they_o can_v not_o alter_v without_o great_a prejudice_n the_o order_n set_v down_o which_o be_v to_o handle_v doctrine_n and_o reformation_n both_o together_o and_z if_o they_o shall_v that_o other_o prince_n will_v oppose_v but_o to_o content_v they_o they_o will_v ordain_v that_o the_o divine_n and_o prelate_n shall_v examine_v the_o matter_n of_o order_n only_o and_o afterward_o handle_v some_o point_n of_o reformation_n observe_v still_o the_o former_a use_n that_o every_o one_o of_o what_o condition_n soever_o may_v put_v they_o the_o legate_n in_o mind_n of_o what_o they_o think_v necessary_a profitable_a or_o convenient_a which_o be_v a_o great_a liberty_n then_o to_o have_v two_o depute_a for_o every_o nation_n and_o afterward_o they_o will_v treat_v of_o matrimony_n the_o ambassador_n be_v not_o one_o jot_n content_v the_o legate_n send_v all_o their_o demand_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o frenchman_n complain_v to_o all_o man_n of_o this_o austerity_n and_o for_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v late_o command_v other_o prelate_n to_o go_v to_o the_o council_n that_o he_o may_v exceed_v in_o number_n which_o the_o papalin_n themselves_o do_v not_o like_v shall_v be_v do_v so_o open_o and_o just_a when_o the_o news_n be_v spread_v of_o the_o come_n of_o the_o frenchman_n desire_v to_o be_v secure_v by_o a_o mayor_n part_n yet_o so_o as_o not_o to_o have_v it_o know_v for_o what_o cause_n it_o be_v do_v but_o the_o pope_n do_v of_o set_a purpose_n proceed_v 〈◊〉_d open_o that_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n may_v know_v that_o his_o attempt_n will_v be_v in_o vain_a and_o so_o resolve_v not_o to_o come_v or_o that_o the_o frenchman_n may_v take_v some_o ●easion_n to_o make_v the_o council_n dissolve_v neither_o be_v the_o pope_n o●●ly_o of_o 〈…〉_o pinion_v but_o all_o the_o court_n fear_v some_o great_a prejudice_n by_o the_o cardinal_n design_n which_o howsoever_o they_o may_v not_o succeed_v a_o thing_n which_o they_o can_v scarce_o hope_v hope_v 〈…〉_o yet_o his_o come_n only_o will_v hinder_v prolong_v and_o disturb_v the_o council_n ferra●●_n tell_v lorraine_n his_o kinsman_n 〈◊〉_d his_o journey_n will_v be_v of_o no_o moment_n and_o of_o small_a reputation_n to_o himself_o in_o regard_n he_o will_v arr●ue_v after_o all_o be_v determine_v and_o biancheto_o a_o familiar_a friend_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o armignac_n who_o also_o have_v credit_n with_o lorraine_n 〈◊〉_d as_o much_o to_o they_o both_o and_o the_o secretary_n of_o seripando_n who_o have_v 〈…〉_o ritie_n 〈◊〉_d the_o precedent_n ferrier_n ●olde_v he_o the_o same_o all_o which_o be_v though_o too_o be_v do_v 〈◊〉_d by_o commission_n from_o the_o pope_n or_o to_o please_v he_o at_o the_o least_o but_o t●●ir_a care_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o
bishop_n that_o it_o may_v not_o increase_v by_o mean_n of_o so_o many_o who_o be_v prepare_v to_o contradict_v laynez_n they_o will_v not_o hold_v any_o congregation_n for_o many_o day_n but_o this_o leisure_n do_v strengthen_v their_o opinion_n and_o they_o speak_v of_o no_o matter_n but_o of_o this_o in_o every_o corner_n and_o almost_o every_o day_n three_o or_o four_o of_o they_o join_v together_o and_o go_v to_o some_o of_o the_o legate_n to_o renew_v the_o instance_n and_o one_o day_n the_o bishop_n of_o gadici_n with_o four_o more_o have_v after_o the_o proposition_n make_v add_v that_o as_o they_o confess_v that_o the_o jurisdiction_n belong_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o they_o be_v content_v it_o shall_v be_v express_v in_o the_o canon_n the_o legate_n believe_v that_o the_o spaniard_n acknowledge_v their_o error_n will_v confess_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n be_v in_o the_o pope_n and_o derive_v from_o he_o but_o desire_v a_o further_a declaration_n that_o bishop_n say_v that_o as_o a_o prince_n do_v institute_v in_o a_o city_n a_o judge_n of_o the_o first_o instance_n and_o a_o judge_n of_o appeal_n who_o though_o he_o be_v superior_a yet_o can_v take_v authority_n from_o the_o other_o nor_o usurp_v the_o cause_n belong_v to_o he_o so_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n have_v institute_v all_o bishop_n and_o the_o pope_n superior_a in_o who_o the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v yet_o so_o that_o other_o have_v they_o depend_v on_o christ_n alone_o five_o church_n complain_v to_o every_o one_o that_o so_o much_o time_n be_v lose_v without_o hold_v any_o congregation_n which_o may_v be_v profitable_o spend_v but_o that_o the_o legate_n do_v according_a to_o their_o use_n purposely_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v spend_v in_o vain_a that_o they_o may_v give_v forth_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n the_o last_o day_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v time_n to_o consider_v much_o less_o to_o speak_v of_o they_o but_o the_o legate_n be_v not_o idle_a still_o think_v how_o they_o may_v find_v a_o form_n for_o this_o canon_n which_o may_v be_v receive_v and_o change_v it_o more_o than_o once_o a_o day_n which_o form_n go_v about_o and_o show_v the_o hesitation_n of_o the_o legate_n the_o spaniard_n be_v not_o only_o encourage_v in_o their_o opinion_n but_o speak_v also_o with_o more_o liberty_n so_o that_o in_o a_o meeting_n of_o many_o prelate_n segovia_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o say_v that_o one_o word_n will_v be_v cause_n of_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n seven_o day_n be_v pass_v without_o any_o congregation_n the_o thirty_o of_o october_n the_o legate_n be_v in_o consultation_n as_o in_o the_o day_n before_o all_o the_o spaniard_n with_o some_o other_o require_v audience_n and_o make_v a_o new_a instance_n that_o the_o institution_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la may_v be_v define_v say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o do_v they_o shall_v fail_v to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v just_a and_o necessary_a in_o these_o time_n for_o clear_v of_o the_o catholic_a truth_n and_o protest_v they_o will_v assist_v no_o more_o in_o congregation_n or_o session_n this_o be_v diwlge_v many_o italian_a prelate_n agree_v together_o in_o the_o house_n of_o cardinal_n simoneta_n in_o the_o chamber_n of_o julius_n simoneta_n bishop_n of_o pescara_n and_o come_v to_o the_o legate_n the_o next_o morning_n three_o patriarch_n six_o arch_a bishop_n and_o eleven_o bishop_n with_o a_o request_n that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v put_v into_o the_o canon_n that_o the_o superiority_n be_v de_fw-fr jure_fw-la divino_fw-la in_o regard_n it_o savour_v of_o ambition_n and_o be_v unseemly_a that_o themselves_o shall_v give_v sentence_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o because_o the_o great_a part_n will_v not_o have_v it_o put_v in_o the_o occasion_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n authority_n which_o they_o will_v and_o aught_o to_o confirm_v when_o this_o be_v know_v in_o trent_n many_o do_v believe_v that_o this_o instance_n be_v procure_v by_o the_o legate_n themselves_o whereupon_o after_o evensong_n a_o great_a number_n assemble_v themselves_o in_o the_o vestry_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o spanish_a opinion_n &_o other_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o b._n of_o modena_n for_o the_o same_o end_n and_o there_o be_v four_o other_o assembly_n in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o otranto_n taranto_n rosano_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o parma_n the_o tumult_n proceed_v so_o far_o that_o the_o legate_n be_v afraid_a of_o some_o scandal_n and_o think_v they_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n hold_v the_o session_n at_o the_o time_n appoint_v and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o discuss_v some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o propose_v some_o matter_n of_o reformation_n before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o article_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o so_o great_a a_o motion_n and_o simoneta_n complain_v often_o that_o he_o have_v little_a assistance_n from_o mantua_n and_o seripando_n who_o howsoever_o they_o do_v some_o thing_n yet_o can_v not_o hide_v their_o thought_n which_o do_v incline_v to_o the_o adversary_n letter_n of_o credence_n come_v from_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n to_o the_o principal_a pescara_n the_o letter_n of_o the_o marquis_n of_o pescara_n spanish_a prelate_n with_o commission_n to_o his_o secretary_n to_o use_v the_o strong_a persuasion_n with_o they_o and_o to_o advise_v they_o not_o to_o touch_v any_o thing_n in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o holy_a sea_n assure_v they_o that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v displease_v and_o that_o great_a inconvenience_n in_o his_o kingdom_n will_v ensue_v say_v it_o can_v not_o be_v expect_v from_o their_o wisdom_n that_o they_o will_v resolve_v in_o any_o particular_a before_o they_o understand_v his_o majesty_n pleasure_n and_o he_o give_v he_o order_n to_o advise_v whether_o any_o of_o the_o prelate_n make_v small_a account_n of_o this_o admonition_n or_o be_v refractory_a in_o obey_v because_o it_o be_v the_o king_n pleasure_n that_o they_o shall_v stand_v unite_v in_o the_o devotion_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o shall_v dispatch_v granata_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o granata_n express_a currier_n if_o there_o be_v occasion_n granata_n answer_v that_o he_o never_o mean_v to_o say_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o think_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v speak_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n be_v for_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o holiness_n be_v assure_v that_o if_o their_o authority_n be_v diminish_v the_o obedience_n to_o the_o holy_a sea_n will_v decrease_v also_o though_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o oldage_n he_o know_v that_o it_o will_v not_o happen_v in_o his_o time_n that_o his_o opinion_n be_v catholic_a for_o which_o he_o will_v be_v content_a to_o die_v that_o see_v such_o contrariety_n he_o be_v not_o willing_a to_o remain_v in_o trent_n because_o he_o expect_v but_o small_a fruit_n and_o therefore_o have_v demand_v leave_n to_o depart_v of_o his_o holiness_n and_o his_o majesty_n much_o desire_v to_o return_v that_o at_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o spain_n he_o receive_v no_o commandment_n from_o the_o king_n and_o his_o minister_n but_o to_o aim_v at_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o quiet_a &_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v true_o perform_v that_o he_o think_v he_o have_v not_o cross_v the_o king_n will_v though_o he_o make_v not_o protession_n to_o dive_v into_o it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o prince_n when_o they_o be_v request_v especial_o by_o their_o minister_n do_v easy_o content_v they_o with_o general_a term_n segovia_n answer_v that_o his_o meaning_n never_o be_v to_o do_v the_o pope_n any_o segovia_n the_o answer_n of_o segovia_n ill_a office_n but_o that_o he_o can_v not_o gainsay_v his_o opinion_n because_o it_o be_v for_o the_o catholic_a truth_n nor_o can_v speak_v more_o than_o he_o have_v speak_v already_o have_v never_o since_o see_v or_o study_v any_o thing_n concern_v this_o matter_n afterward_o they_o retire_v all_o together_o and_o send_v to_o the_o king_n a_o doctor_n of_o the_o family_n of_o segovia_n with_o instruction_n to_o inform_v his_o majesty_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o prelate_n can_v be_v reprehend_v if_o they_o know_v not_o how_o to_o promote_v the_o project_n of_o rome_n because_o they_o can_v not_o propose_v any_o thing_n but_o only_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n concern_v that_o which_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o legate_n as_o his_o majesty_n do_v well_o know_v that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a so_o interrogate_v they_o and_o bind_v they_o to_o answer_v against_o their_o conscience_n that_o they_o be_v assure_v they_o shall_v offend_v god_n and_o his_o majesty_n if_o they_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v blame_v for_o speak_v out_o of_o season_n because_o they_o
fit_a to_o dissemble_v it_o he_o send_v into_o france_n forty_o thousand_o crown_n the_o residue_n of_o the_o hundred_o thousand_o which_o he_o promise_v and_o he_o cause_v sebastianus_n gualterus_n bishop_n of_o viterbo_n and_o ludovicus_fw-la antinori_fw-la to_o go_v to_o trent_n who_o have_v be_v in_o france_n have_v some_o acquaintance_n with_o some_o of_o those_o prelate_n and_o have_v make_v themselves_o know_v to_o the_o cardinal_n under_o colour_n to_o honour_v he_o and_o he_o write_v to_o this_o cardinal_n and_o to_o lansac_n letter_n full_a of_o compliment_n and_o confidence_n yet_o they_o think_v that_o these_o man_n be_v send_v to_o discover_v the_o cardinal_n intention_n and_o to_o observe_v his_o proceed_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o have_v receive_v advice_n from_o rome_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v exhort_v the_o pope_n not_o to_o be_v so_o much_o afraid_a in_o regard_n the_o cardinal_n also_o will_v find_v difficulty_n and_o impediment_n more_o than_o he_o believe_v he_o shall_v and_o say_v that_o himself_o will_v make_v more_o to_o arise_v the_o 22._o of_o november_n the_o cardinal_n resolve_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o congregation_n the_o day_n follow_v and_o it_o be_v agree_v that_o the_o king_n letter_n shall_v be_v read_v and_o himself_o make_v a_o speech_n but_o lorraine_n propose_v also_o that_o the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n shall_v make_v another_o to_o this_o the_o legate_n do_v not_o consent_n because_o if_o this_o have_v be_v once_o permit_v both_o he_o and_o all_o other_o ambassador_n will_v still_o be_v desirous_a to_o speak_v and_o propose_v with_o danger_n of_o make_v great_a confusion_n but_o conceal_v this_o cause_n they_o say_v that_o neither_o in_o this_o council_n nor_o under_o paul_n or_o julius_n it_o be_v ever_o permit_v to_o ambassador_n to_o speak_v in_o congregation_n but_o only_o when_o they_o be_v first_o receive_v and_o that_o without_o the_o pope_n consent_n they_o can_v not_o yield_v to_o such_o a_o novitie_n but_o lorraine_n answer_v that_o the_o king_n letter_n and_o the_o instruction_n be_v new_a it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o new_a ambassage_n and_o that_o the_o first_o entrance_n after_o many_o answer_n and_o reply_n lorraine_n have_v give_v his_o word_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o desire_v to_o speak_v any_o more_o the_o legate_n to_o give_v he_o satisfaction_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v cause_n of_o open_a distaste_n be_v content_v therefore_o the_o next_o day_n the_o congregation_n be_v assemble_v the_o king_n letter_n be_v read_v with_o this_o inscription_n to_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o reverend_a father_n assemble_v in_o trent_n to_o celebrate_v the_o sacred_a council_n in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o call_v he_o to_o the_o kingdom_n it_o have_v please_v he_o also_o to_o afflict_v he_o with_o many_o war_n but_o have_v so_o open_v his_o eye_n that_o howsoever_o he_o be_v young_a he_o know_v that_o the_o principal_a cause_n of_o the_o evil_n be_v leter_n the_o french_a king_n leter_n the_o diversity_n of_o religion_n by_o mean_n of_o which_o divine_a illumination_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o kingdom_n he_o make_v instance_n for_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o council_n in_o which_o they_o be_v then_o assemble_v know_v that_o in_o they_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v find_v the_o most_o proper_a remedy_n to_o the_o like_a infirmity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v grieve_v that_o be_v the_o first_o to_o procure_v so_o good_a a_o work_n he_o have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o send_v his_o prelate_n with_o the_o first_o the_o cause_n whereof_o be_v notorious_a he_o think_v he_o be_v sufficient_o excuse_v and_o the_o rather_o because_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v now_o arrive_v accompany_v with_o other_o prelate_n that_o two_o principal_a cause_n have_v move_v he_o to_o send_v that_o cardinal_n the_o first_o his_o own_o great_a and_o frequent_a instance_n to_o have_v leave_n to_o satisfy_v his_o duty_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o place_n he_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n the_o second_o because_o be_v of_o his_o privy_a council_n and_o exercise_v from_o his_o youth_n in_o the_o most_o important_a affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o know_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o better_a than_o any_o other_o and_o whence_o the_o occasion_n do_v arise_v so_o that_o he_o will_v be_v able_a to_o make_v a_o relation_n unto_o they_o conformable_a to_o the_o charge_n which_o be_v give_v he_o and_o demand_v in_o his_o name_n the_o remedy_n which_o be_v expect_v from_o their_o wisdom_n and_o fatherly_a affection_n as_o well_o for_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o for_o the_o general_a good_a of_o all_o christendom_n he_o beseech_v they_o to_o proceed_v herein_o with_o their_o wont_a sincerity_n that_o they_o may_v come_v to_o a_o holy_a reformation_n and_o that_o the_o ancient_a lustre_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v appear_v in_o the_o union_n of_o all_o christendom_n in_o one_o religion_n which_o will_v be_v a_o work_n worthy_a of_o they_o desire_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n recompense_v by_o god_n and_o commend_v by_o all_o prince_n in_o conclusion_n for_o the_o particular_n he_o refer_v himself_o to_o the_o cardinal_n pray_v they_o to_o believe_v he_o in_o whatsoever_o he●_n shall_v say_v unto_o they_o on_o his_o part_n after_o this_o the_o cardinal_n speak_v in_o the_o begin_n he_o show_v the_o misery_n ●oraine_a the_o speech_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o ●oraine_a of_o the_o kingdom_n deplore_v the_o war_n the_o demolition_n of_o church_n occision_n of_o religious_a person_n conculcation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n burn_v of_o the_o library_n image_n and_o relic_n of_o saint_n overthrow_v of_o the_o monument_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o bishop_n and_o expulsion_n of_o the_o true_a pastor_n and_o pass_v to_o civil_a matter_n he_o show_v the_o contempt_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n usurpation_n of_o his_o rent_n violation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o sedition_n raise_v among_o the_o people_n he_o attribute_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o this_o to_o the_o corruption_n of_o manner_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o negligence_n in_o repress_v heresy_n and_o in_o use_v remedy_n institute_v by_o god_n turn_v to_o the_o ambass_n of_o prince_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o that_o which_o they_o do_v now_o behold_v at_o leisure_n in_o france_n they_o shall_v find_v at_o home_n when_o it_o will_v be_v too_o late_o to_o repent_v if_o france_n tumble_v down_o with_o its_o own_o weight_n shall_v fall_v upon_o place_n near_o unto_o it_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n and_o good_a disposition_n of_o the_o king_n the_o counsel_n of_o the_o queen_n and_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o of_o the_o other_o prince_n but_o say_v the_o principal_a matter_n be_v expect_v from_o the_o synod_n whence_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n aught_o to_o come_v that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n be_v assure_v hereof_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o observance_n towards_o that_o synod_n and_o of_o his_o sorrow_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o religion_n do_v demand_v two_o thing_n of_o they_o the_o first_o that_o they_o will_v avoid_v new_a discord_n new_a and_o unprofitable_a question_n and_o cause_n a_o suspension_n of_o arm_n among_o all_o prince_n and_o state_n that_o scandal_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o the_o protestant_n and_o occasion_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o synod_n do_v more_o labour_n to_o incite_v prince_n to_o war_n and_o to_o make_v confederation_n and_o league_n then_o to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o peace_n that_o king_n henry_n have_v first_o establish_v it_o and_o then_o francis_n continue_v it_o and_o that_o the_o present_a king_n under_o age_n and_o his_o mother_n have_v always_o desire_v it_o which_o how_o soever_o it_o have_v unhappy_o succeed_v yet_o they_o may_v fear_v that_o the_o accident_n of_o the_o war_n will_v be_v more_o unfortunate_a for_o all_o the_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n one_o can_v help_v another_o he_o therefore_o desire_v that_o some_o account_n may_v be_v hold_v of_o those_o who_o be_v go_v astray_o from_o the_o church_n pardon_v they_o as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v do_v without_o offend_a god_n and_o hold_v they_o for_o friend_n as_o much_o as_o be_v possible_a even_o as_o far_o as_o unto_o the_o altar_n the_o second_o request_n common_a to_o the_o king_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o king_n and_o prince_n be_v that_o a_o reformation_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n shall_v be_v handle_v serious_o wherein_o the_o king_n do_v admonish_v and_o conjure_v they_o by_o christ_n our_o lord_n who_o will_v come_v to_o judgement_n that_o if_o they_o mean_v to_o restore_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o retain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n they_o will_v not_o balance_v the_o incommodity_n
resolve_v to_o prolong_v the_o session_n and_o appoint_v a_o day_n for_o it_o within_o fifteen_o day_n the_o year_n 1563._o begin_v in_o council_n with_o the_o presentation_n of_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n make_v by_o the_o french_a ambassador_n which_o seem_v very_o hard_o to_o the_o legate_n and_o all_o the_o papalin_n especial_o in_o those_o particular_n in_o which_o reformation_n 1563_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n they_o will_v have_v the_o rite_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n alter_v and_o in_o which_o the_o emolument_n and_o profit_n which_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n receive_v from_o other_o church_n be_v touch_v the_o ambassador_n add_v the_o usual_a appendix_n not_o to_o call_v it_o a_o protestation_n that_o if_o their_o proposition_n be_v not_o embrace_v they_o will_v provide_v for_o their_o necessity_n in_o france_n the_o legate_n be_v sure_o the_o pope_n will_v be_v vex_v herewith_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o promise_n make_v unto_o he_o that_o they_o will_v not_o treat_v in_o council_n of_o the_o annat_n and_o other_o pecumarie_a rite_n but_o friendly_o compose_v the_o matter_n with_o he_o therefore_o they_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o send_v they_o to_o he_o by_o a_o prelate_n and_o to_o inform_v pope_n the_o bishop_n of_o viterbois_n send_v to_o the_o pope_n his_o holiness_n and_o they_o elect_v the_o bishop_n of_o viterbo_n as_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o france_n where_o he_o have_v be_v nuncio_n many_o yeeresand_n in_o the_o design_n of_o the_o cardinal_n and_o french_a prelate_n of_o the_o council_n with_o who_o he_o have_v converse_v since_o their_o arrival_n the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n inform_v hereof_o persuade_v they_o to_o do_v so_o and_o himself_o give_v he_o instruction_n to_o speak_v with_o the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n be_v so_o nimble_a that_o howsoever_o the_o cardinal_n hold_v that_o he_o be_v send_v unto_o he_o for_o a_o spy_n and_o a_o observer_n yet_o he_o carry_v himself_o so_o well_o that_o he_o gain_v the_o confidence_n of_o he_o and_o the_o ambassador_n without_o lose_v that_o which_o the_o pope_n and_o legates_n have_v in_o he_o the_o prelate_n go_v with_o instruction_n to_o represent_v to_o the_o pope_n all_o the_o difficulty_n which_o the_o legate_n find_v and_o to_o bring_v back_o a_o resolution_n how_o they_o shall_v govern_v themselves_o in_o every_o particular_a he_o have_v instruction_n from_o lorraine_n to_o desire_v his_o holiness_n to_o take_v in_o good_a part_n that_o which_o be_v desire_v by_o the_o king_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o by_o they_o to_o execute_v the_o command_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o to_o offer_v his_o endeavour_n to_o accommodate_v the_o difference_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o residence_n which_o hold_v the_o council_n employ_v in_o small_a matter_n the_o emperor_n minister_n see_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o consider_v the_o proheme_n think_v they_o be_v note_v to_o have_v but_o small_a authority_n they_o complain_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o article_n of_o reformation_n mention_v by_o the_o emperor_n and_o by_o they_o have_v not_o be_v propose_v though_o they_o have_v give_v copy_n of_o they_o send_v they_o to_o rome_n and_o spread_v they_o throughout_o trent_n desire_v they_o may_v be_v put_v together_o with_o those_o of_o the_o frenchman_n the_o legate_n excuse_v themselves_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o liberty_n which_o the_o emperor_n by_o letter_n and_o themselves_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n have_v give_v they_o to_o propose_v and_o omit_v what_o seem_v they_o good_a add_v that_o they_o do_v expect_v a_o fit_a time_n and_o that_o indeed_o the_o frenchman_n have_v not_o find_v a_o good_a conjecture_n while_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o two_o canon_n do_v continue_v which_o give_v much_o trouble_n to_o his_o holiness_n the_o amdassadour_n be_v not_o so_o satisfy_v say_v there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o omit_v all_o and_o a_o part_n and_o between_o defer_v while_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n thing_n be_v conceal_v with_o due_a respect_n and_o diwlge_v they_o and_o put_v they_o in_o derision_n and_o simoneta_n reply_v that_o it_o be_v hard_a to_o discern_v which_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v propose_v but_o easy_a to_o know_v which_o be_v to_o be_v omit_v in_o the_o end_n they_o be_v content_a to_o expect_v what_o the_o pope_n will_v say_v to_o the_o french_a proposition_n so_o that_o afterward_o they_o may_v be_v propose_v the_o french_a prelate_n have_v consent_v in_o general_a term_n to_o the_o article_n belong_v to_o rite_n and_o to_o the_o grievance_n of_o bishop_n which_o in_o their_o secret_a thought_n they_o do_v not_o approve_v because_o they_o believe_v that_o in_o the_o discussion_n of_o they_o they_o shall_v have_v the_o spaniard_n and_o many_o of_o the_o italian_n their_o opposite_n but_o see_v they_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n they_o be_v afraid_a that_o the_o pope_n oppose_v those_o which_o touch_v his_o revenue_n will_v yield_v to_o the_o other_o and_o by_o composition_n be_v content_a to_o give_v way_n to_o those_o which_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o they_o to_o avoid_v other_o which_o concern_v his_o own_o interest_n for_o this_o cause_n they_o make_v secret_a practice_n with_o the_o other_o prelate_n persuade_v a_o moderation_n which_o be_v do_v after_o the_o french_a fashion_n without_o much_o caution_n be_v know_v to_o the_o ambassador_n therefore_o lansac_n assemble_v they_o all_o and_o reprehend_v they_o sharp_o for_o dare_v to_o oppose_v the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n queen_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o exhort_v they_o not_o only_o not_o to_o labour_v against_o but_o to_o promote_v the_o king_n determination_n and_o the_o admonition_n be_v very_o rigorous_a but_o before_o we_o relate_v the_o negotiation_n in_o rome_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o declare_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o french_a proposition_n which_o present_o be_v print_v in_o ripa_n and_o milan_n and_o contain_v that_o the_o ambassador_n have_v determine_v long_o since_o in_o performance_n of_o the_o king_n command_n to_o propose_v to_o the_o council_n the_o thing_n contain_v in_o that_o write_n but_o the_o emperor_n have_v propose_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n not_o to_o importune_v the_o father_n they_o have_v expect_v to_o see_v what_o the_o pope_n will_v resolve_v concern_v the_o proposition_n of_o his_o imperial_a majesty_n now_o have_v receive_v a_o new_a commandment_n from_o the_o king_n and_o see_v the_o instance_n of_o the_o emperor_n deser_v long_o than_o they_o think_v they_o resolve_v not_o to_o make_v any_o more_o delay_n not_o desire_v any_o thing_n singular_a or_o separate_v from_o the_o residue_n of_o christendom_n and_o that_o the_o king_n expect_v that_o esteem_n shall_v be_v hold_v of_o his_o proposition_n do_v notwithstanding_o refer_v the_o judgement_n and_o knowledge_n of_o they_o all_o to_o the_o father_n the_o point_n be_v four_o and_o thirty_o 1._o that_o priest_n propsition_n the_o french_a propsition_n shall_v not_o be_v ordain_v before_o they_o be_v old_a and_o have_v a_o good_a testimony_n of_o the_o people_n that_o they_o have_v live_v well_o and_o that_o their_o carnality_n and_o transgression_n shall_v be_v punish_v according_a to_o the_o canon_n 2._o that_o holy_a order_n shall_v not_o be_v confer_v at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o the_o inferior_a be_v but_o that_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v approve_v in_o these_o before_o he_o ascend_v to_o those_o 3._o that_o a_o priest_n shall_v not_o be_v ordain_v before_o he_o have_v a_o benefice_n or_o ministry_n according_a to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n at_o which_o time_n a_o presbyterall_a title_n without_o a_o office_n be_v not_o hear_v of_o 4._o that_o the_o due_a function_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o deacon_n and_o other_o holy_a order_n that_o they_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v bare_a name_n and_o for_o ceremony_n only_o 5._o that_o the_o priest_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n shall_v attend_v to_o their_o vocation_n not_o meddle_v in_o any_o office_n but_o in_o the_o divine_a ministry_n 6._o that_o a_o bishop_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v but_o of_o a_o lawful_a age_n manner_n and_o doctrine_n that_o he_o may_v teach_v and_o give_v example_n to_o the_o people_n 7._o that_o no_o parish_n priest_n shall_v be_v make_v but_o of_o approve_a honesty_n able_a to_o instruct_v the_o people_n celebrate_v the_o sacrifice_n administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o teach_v the_o use_n and_o effect_n of_o they_o to_o the_o receiver_n 8._o that_o no_o abbot_n or_o conuentual_a prior_n shall_v be_v create_v who_o have_v not_o study_v divinity_n in_o some_o famous_a university_n and_o obtain_v the_o degree_n of_o master_n or_o some_o other_o 9_o that_o the_o bishop_n by_o himself_o or_o by_o other_o preacher_n as_o many_o as_o be_v sufficient_a according_a to_o the_o
proportion_n of_o the_o diocese_n shall_v preach_v every_o sunday_n and_o holiday_n &_o in_o lent_n on_o fast_v day_n and_o in_o advent_a and_o as_o often_o as_o it_o shall_v be_v fit_a 10._o that_o the_o parish_n priest_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o as_o often_o as_o he_o have_v auditor_n 11._o that_o the_o abbot_n and_o conuentuall_a prior_n shall_v read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o institute_v a_o hospital_n so_o that_o the_o ancient_a school_n and_o hospitality_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o monastery_n 12._o that_o bishop_n parish_n priest_n abbat_n and_o other_o ecclesiastiques_n unable_a to_o perform_v their_o charge_n shall_v receive_v coadjutor_n or_o leave_v their_o benefice_n 13._o that_o concern_v the_o catechism_n and_o summarie_a instruction_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o shall_v be_v ordain_v which_o the_o emperor_n have_v propose_v to_o the_o council_n 14._o that_o no_o man_n shall_v have_v more_o than_o one_o benefice_n take_v away_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o quality_n of_o person_n and_o of_o benefice_n compatible_a and_o incompatible_a a_o new_a division_n not_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o ancient_a decree_n and_o a_o cause_n of_o many_o trouble_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o the_o regular_a benefice_n shall_v be_v give_v into_o regular_o and_o secular_a to_o secular_o 〈◊〉_d that_o he_o who_o now_o have_v two_o or_o more_o shall_v retain_v that_o only_o which_o he_o shall_v choose_v within_o a_o short_a time_n or_o shall_v incur_v the_o penalty_n of_o the_o ancient_a canon_n 16._o that_o to_o take_v away_o all_o note_n of_o avarice_n from_o the_o clergy_n nothing_o be_v take_v upon_o any_o pretence_n whatsoever_o for_o the_o administration_n of_o holy_a thing_n but_o that_o provision_n be_v make_v that_o the_o curate_n with_o two_o clerk_n or_o more_o may_v have_v whereon_o to_o live_v and_o maintain_v hospitality_n which_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o bishop_n by_o unite_n benefice_n or_o assign_v ten_o unto_o they_o or_o where_o that_o can_v be_v do_v the_o prince_n may_v provide_v for_o they_o by_o 〈◊〉_d or_o collection_n impose_v upon_o the_o parish_n 17._o that_o in_o parish_n mass_n the_o gospel_n be_v expound_v clear_o according_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o prayer_n which_o the_o parish-priest_n make_v together_o with_o the_o people_n be_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o that_o the_o sacrifice_n be_v end_v in_o latin_a public_a prayer_n be_v make_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n likewise_o and_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n or_o in_o other_o hour_n spiritual_a hymn_n or_o psalm_n of_o david_n approve_v by_o the_o bishop_n may_v be_v sing_v in_o the_o same_o language_n 18._o that_o the_o ancient_a decree_n of_o leo_n and_o gelasius_n for_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v renew_v 19_o that_o before_o the_o administration_n of_o every_o sacrament_n a_o exposition_n be_v make_v in_o the_o vulgar_a so_o that_o the_o ignorant_a may_v understand_v their_o use_n and_o efficacy_n 20._o that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n benefice_n may_v not_o be_v confer_v by_o the_o vicar_n but_o by_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o within_o the_o term_n of_o six_o month_n otherwise_o that_o the_o collation_n may_v be_v devolue_v to_o the_o next_o superior_a and_o by_o degree_n to_o the_o pope_n 21._o that_o the_o mandate_n of_o provision_n expectative_n regress_n resignation_n in_o confidence_n and_o commendae_n be_v revoke_v and_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n 22._o that_o the_o resignation_n in_o favour_n be_v whole_o exterminate_v from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o election_n of_o one_o self_n or_o a_o demand_v of_o a_o successor_n a_o thing_n prohibit_v by_o the_o canon_n 23._o that_o simple_a priory_n from_o which_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n be_v take_v away_o contrary_a to_o the_o foundation_n and_o assign_v to_o a_o perpetual_a vicar_n with_o a_o small_a portion_n of_o tithe_n or_o of_o other_o renenue_n be_v restore_v to_o their_o former_a state_n at_o the_o first_o vacancy_n 24._o that_o benefice_n unto_o which_o no_o office_n of_o preach_v administer_a the_o sacrament_n nor_o any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a charge_n be_v annex_v may_v have_v some_o spiritual_a cure_n impose_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o bishop_n with_o the_o council_n of_o the_o chapter_n or_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o next_o parish_n because_o no_o benefice_n ought_v or_o can_v be_v without_o a_o office_n 25._o that_o pension_n be_v not_o impose_v upon_o benefice_n and_o those_o abolish_v which_o be_v impose_v already_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n may_v be_v spend_v in_o maintain_v the_o pastor_n and_o poor_a and_o in_o other_o work_n of_o piety_n 26._o that_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n throughout_o the_o whole_a diocese_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o bishop_n all_o exemption_n be_v take_v away_o but_o of_o the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o order_n and_o monastery_n subject_a unto_o they_o and_o those_o who_o make_v general_a chapter_n to_o who_o exemption_n be_v grant_v by_o a_o lawful_a title_n but_o yet_o with_o provision_n that_o they_o be_v not_o exempt_v from_o correction_n 27._o that_o the_o bishop_n may_v not_o use_v jurisdiction_n and_o handle_v matter_n of_o great_a weight_n concern_v the_o diocese_n without_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o chapter_n and_o that_o the_o canon_n may_v reside_v continual_o in_o the_o church_n be_v of_o good_a conversation_n learned_a and_o at_o the_o least_o 25._o year_n of_o age_n in_o regard_n the_o law_n not_o give_v they_o the_o free_a disposition_n of_o their_o good_n before_o that_o time_n they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v counselor_n to_o bishop_n 28_o that_o the_o degree_n of_o affinity_n consanguinity_n and_o spiritual_a kindred_n be_v observe_v or_o reform_v and_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v lawful_a to_o dispense_v therein_o but_o with_o king_n and_o prince_n for_o the_o public_a good_a 29._o that_o in_o regard_n many_o trouble_n have_v rise_v by_o mean_n of_o image_n the_o synod_n will_v make_v provision_n that_o the_o people_n may_v be_v teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v concern_v they_o and_o that_o the_o abuse_n and_o superstition_n if_o any_o be_v use_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o they_o may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v do_v concern_v indulgence_n pilgrimage_n relic_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o company_n or_o confraternity_n 30._o that_o the_o public_a and_o ancient_a penance_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n forgrievous_a &_o public_a offence_n be_v restore_v and_o bring_v into_o use_n as_o also_o fasting_n and_o other_o exercise_n of_o sorrow_n and_o public_a prayer_n to_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n 31._o that_o excommunication_n be_v not_o decree_v for_o every_o sort_n of_o offence_n or_o contumacy_n but_o only_o for_o the_o great_a and_o in_o which_o the_o offender_n do_v persevere_v after_o admonition_n 32._o that_o to_o abbreviate_v or_o quite_o take_v away_o suit_n of_o law_n for_o benefice_n by_o which_o the_o whole_a clergy_n be_v blemish_v the_o distinction_n of_o petitorie_a and_o possessory_a new_o invent_v in_o those_o cause_n may_v be_v take_v away_o nomination_n of_o university_n abolish_v and_o a_o commandment_n give_v to_o bishop_n to_o give_v benefice_n not_o to_o those_o that_o seek_v they_o but_o to_o those_o that_o avoid_v they_o and_o be_v worthy_a of_o they_o and_o their_o merit_n will_v be_v know_v if_o after_o their_o degree_n receive_v in_o the_o university_n they_o shall_v have_v spend_v some_o time_n in_o preach_v with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n 33._o that_o there_o be_v a_o suit_n for_o a_o benefice_n a_o economique_a may_v be_v create_v and_o arbitrator_n elect_v by_o the_o litigant_n which_o in_o case_n they_o refuse_v to_o do_v that_o the_o bishop_n may_v nominate_v and_o that_o these_o may_v determine_v the_o controversy_n within_o six_o month_n and_o that_o no_o appeal_n may_v lie_v from_o they_o 34_o that_o the_o episcopal_a synod_n may_v be_v hold_v once_o a_o year_n at_o the_o least_o and_o the_o provincial_n once_o in_o every_o three_o year_n and_o the_o general_n if_o the_o ere_o be_v none_o impediment_n every_o ten_o year_n the_o first_o of_o januarie_n vintimiglia_n arrive_v in_o rome_n have_v make_v the_o journey_n rome_n the_o negotiation_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o vintimiglia_n in_o rome_n in_o seven_o day_n he_o present_v the_o letter_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o declare_v his_o credence_n relate_v the_o cogitation_n and_o diverse_a end_n and_o humour_n which_o be_v in_o the_o council_n and_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o legate_n and_o other_o good_a servant_n of_o his_o holiness_n think_v the_o difficulty_n ought_v to_o be_v manage_v the_o pope_n hold_v a_o congregation_n the_o three_o day_n and_o give_v account_n of_o the_o relation_n of_o vintimiglia_n
all_o contention_n they_o will_v labour_v for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o to_o end_v the_o council_n quick_o he_o speak_v of_o bull_n of_o office_n and_o benefice_n confer_v upon_o some_o of_o the_o kinsman_n of_o some_o prelate_n and_o a_o referendariship_n to_o the_o secretary_n of_o the_o portugal_n ambassador_n and_o a_o very_a great_a pension_n to_o the_o son_n of_o the_o spanish_a secretary_n and_o diverse_a promise_n to_o other_o according_a to_o their_o pretension_n but_o to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n he_o make_v great_a compliment_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n show_v that_o he_o have_v confidence_n in_o he_o only_o for_o a_o sudden_a and_o a_o good_a end_n of_o the_o council_n the_o come_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o asti_n the_o ambassador_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o sinigaglia_n the_o legate_n use_v persuasion_n to_o the-card_n of_o lorraine_n by_o the_o b._n of_o sinigaglia_n savoy_n give_v a_o fit_a occasion_n to_o reassume_v the_o congregation_n in_o which_o the_o legate_n design_v after_o they_o have_v receive_v he_o to_o renew_v the_o proposition_n of_o the_o canon_n they_o send_v the_o bishop_n of_o sinigaglia_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n to_o pray_v he_o to_o find_v a_o mean_n that_o the_o frenchman_n may_v be_v satisfy_v the_o bishop_n show_v he_o that_o those_o word_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n universal_a be_v use_v in_o many_o counsel_n that_o the_o other_o that_o they_o be_v assume_v into_o part_n of_o the_o care_n answer_v who_o answer_v be_v use_v by_o s._n bernard_n a_o writer_n much_o commend_v by_o his_o exce_n 〈…〉_o the_o cardinal_n answer_v that_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v a_o spectator_n of_o the_o action_n of_o the_o council_n that_o the_o opinion_n and_o voice_n of_o every_o one_o be_v know_v that_o one_o ought_v to_o beware_v what_o he_o say_v that_o writing_n have_v be_v send_v out_o of_o france_n against_o the_o opinion_n maintain_v in_o trent_n in_o the_o question_n that_o be_v handle_v that_o many_o complain_v of_o he_o that_o he_o proceed_v with_o ●do_v much_o respect_n especial_o in_o that_o matter_n and_o in_o that_o other_o of_o residence_n that_o he_o 〈◊〉_d not_o be_v so_o earnest_a as_o he_o ought_v for_o the_o declaration_n that_o they_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d divino_fw-la that_o by_o a_o word_n use_v by_o a_o author_n one_o can_v present_o conclude_v what_o his_o meaning_n be_v because_o the_o antecedent_n and_o consequent_n must_v be_v consider_v which_o may_v infer_v a_o contrary_a sense_n that_o the_o word_n do_v not_o trouble_v he_o but_o the_o sense_n which_o they_o will_v canon_n 〈…〉_o that_o to_o say_v the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n universal_a can_v not_o be_v admit_v by_o the_o french_a man_n by_o any_o mean_n that_o if_o it_o be_v propose_v again_o the_o ambassador_n will_v protest_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o the_o twenty_o french_a prelate_n from_o who_o they_o shall_v always_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v it_o that_o this_o will_v be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o the_o opinion_n which_o be_v general_o hold_v in_o france_n that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n sinigaglia_n relate_v these_o thing_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o french_a opinion_n be_v that_o y_fw-fr e_o councell_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n legate_n in_o presence_n of_o many_o italian_a prelate_n assemble_v to_o consult_v upon_o this_o matter_n make_v they_o fear_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o reduce_v the_o frenchman_n the_o come_n of_o martin_n guzdellun_n of_o who_o we_o speak_v before_o which_o free_a martin_n guzdellun_n complain_v that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a happen_v at_o the_o same_o time_n give_v great_a courage_n to_o the_o spaniard_n who_o have_v see_v the_o passage_n of_o one_o day_n say_v he_o understand_v plain_o that_o the_o council_n be_v not_o free_a he_o praise_v granata_n and_o say_v the_o king_n have_v a_o very_a good_a opinion_n of_o he_o and_o that_o if_o the_o bishop_n like_o of_o toledo_n be_v void_a he_o will_v bestow_v it_o upon_o he_o thing_n be_v thus_o manage_v sunday_n the_o last_o of_o january_n come_v when_o the_o general_a congregation_n be_v intimate_v to_o receive_v the_o ambassador_n of_o savoy_n who_o make_v a_o short_a speech_n to_o show_v the_o danger_n in_o which_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o savoy_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n the_o state_n of_o his_o prince_n be_v by_o the_o vicinity_n of_o the_o heretic_n and_o what_o charge_n he_o be_v put_v unto_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o finish_v the_o council_n quick_o and_o to_o think_v of_o some_o mean_n to_o make_v the_o contumacious_a receive_v the_o decree_n thereof_o and_o offer_v all_o the_o force_n of_o his_o master_n in_o the_o answer_n make_v the_o piety_n and_o wisdom_n of_o that_o duke_n be_v commend_v and_o joy_v give_v the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o come_n as_o the_o congregation_n continue_v so_o the_o dissension_n increase_v and_o many_o demand_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o residence_n compose_v by_o the_o two_o cardinal_n shall_v be_v propose_v but_o the_o legate_n see_v such_o variety_n of_o opinion_n after_o long_a consultation_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o the_o prelate_n their_o friend_n resolve_v it_o be_v not_o a_o time_n to_o make_v any_o decision_n but_o necessary_a to_o interpose_v so_o great_a a_o delay_n that_o the_o humour_n may_v cool_v of_o themselves_o or_o some_o mean_n may_v be_v find_v to_o compose_v the_o difference_n by_o prolong_v the_o time_n of_o the_o session_n and_o to_o make_v lorraine_n agree_v to_o it_o they_o go_v all_o to_o his_o house_n to_o impart_v their_o purpose_n unto_o he_o and_o to_o demand_v his_o counsel_n and_o assistance_n he_o complain_v of_o the_o conventicle_n and_o that_o they_o seek_v by_o unlawful_a mean_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n that_o which_o belong_v not_o unto_o he_o and_o to_o take_v from_o bishop_n that_o which_o be_v give_v they_o by_o christ_n he_o say_v he_o do_v not_o like_o the_o defer_v of_o the_o session_n so_o long_o though_o he_o be_v con_fw-mi 〈…〉_o to_o yield_v unto_o then_o but_o pray_v they_o that_o in_o regard_n this_o be_v do_v to_o moderate_v 〈…〉_o ens_fw-la mind_n they_o will_v endeavour_n effectual_o to_o curb_v those_o who_o be_v unquiet_a and_o ambitious_a in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o three_o of_o february_n mantua_n propose_v that_o in_o regard_n lent_n be_v near_o and_o that_o the_o holy_a day_n and_o feast_n of_o easter_n will_v follow_v quick_o they_o will_v defer_v the_o session_n until_o after_o that_o time_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o the_o congregation_n handle_v the_o reformation_n belong_v to_o holy_a order_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o marriage_n but_o the_o proposition_n have_v much_o contradiction_n the_o french_a and_o spaniard_n almost_o all_o be_v earnest_a that_o a_o short_a prorogation_n shall_v be_v determine_v and_o the_o matter_n of_o order_n together_o with_o its_o reformation_n define_v before_o they_o treat_v of_o matrimony_n to_o which_o opinion_n also_o some_o italian_n do_v adhere_v other_o desire_z that_o the_o session_n shall_v be_v hold_v with_o the_o thing_n decide_v already_o and_o in_o particular_a that_o the_o decree_n of_o recidence_n compose_v by_o the_o cardinal_n shall_v be_v establish_v and_o some_o add_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a indignity_n to_o the_o council_n to_o have_v the_o session_n so_o often_o defer_v show_v there_o be_v a_o desire_n to_o violence_n the_o father_n by_o weariness_n to_o consent_v to_o those_o opinion_n which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v in_o their_o conscience_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v hold_v and_o matter_n to_o be_v resolve_v by_o the_o mayor_n part_n some_o do_v not_o forbear_v to_o say_v that_o the_o distinction_n of_o session_n and_o general_a congregation_n be_v not_o real_a and_o that_o in_o regard_n congregation_n no_o real_a difference_n between_o a_o session_n and_o a_o general_a congregation_n the_o person_n and_o the_o same_o number_n be_v in_o both_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v hold_v for_o decide_v in_o the_o one_o which_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o other_o after_o great_a contention_n the_o dilation_n until_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o of_o april_n be_v conclude_v by_o the_o mayor_n part_n the_o other_o still_o contradict_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n howsoever_o he_o seem_v to_o consent_v only_o to_o content_v the_o legate_n yet_o he_o be_v willing_a in_o regard_n of_o his_o own_o interest_n and_o that_o for_o four_o cause_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o pope_n will_v recover_v his_o health_n to_o have_v commodity_n to_o treat_v with_o the_o emperor_n to_o understand_v the_o catholic_a king_n mind_n and_o to_o see_v the_o success_n of_o the_o affair_n of_o france_n that_o he_o may_v resolve_v what_o to_o do_v upon_o better_a ground_n the_o next_o day_n the_o french_a
not_o perform_v its_o duty_n and_o that_o which_o be_v expect_v from_o it_o by_o so_o holy_a and_o necessary_a a_o reformation_n to_o call_v a_o nationall_n have_v first_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o god_n and_o man_n by_o continual_a persuasion_n use_v to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o obtain_v of_o they_o a_o remedy_n against_o the_o common_a evil_n that_o to_o effect_v this_o with_o great_a ease_n he_o have_v dispatch_v the_o lord_n of_o oysel_n to_o the_o catholic_a king_n and_o the_o lord_n d'_fw-fr allegres_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o command_v birague_n that_o after_o he_o have_v perform_v his_o charge_n with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n he_o shall_v pass_v to_o the_o emperor_n to_o try_v if_o by_o mean_n of_o these_o prince_n be_v may_v gain_v so_o great_a a_o benefit_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v much_o distaste_v with_o the_o peace_n as_o well_o for_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o authority_n as_o because_o it_o be_v conclude_v without_o his_o knowledge_n have_v make_v so_o great_a contribution_n to_o the_o war_n but_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n be_v displease_v more_o for_o be_v by_o his_o soldier_n a_o party_n in_o the_o war_n and_o the_o victory_n and_o have_v spend_v so_o much_o he_o think_v all_o be_v lose_v and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o just_a to_o conclude_v a_o peace_n without_o he_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o religion_n which_o he_o undertake_v to_o defend_v and_o maintain_v especial_o have_v so_o great_a interest_n therein_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o damage_n he_o do_v receive_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o low_a country_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o every_o prosperity_n of_o the_o hugonot_n in_o france_n will_v encourage_v the_o people_n of_o flanders_n and_o strong_a than_o they_o more_o in_o their_o contumacy_n for_o these_o reason_n the_o catholic_a ambassador_n in_o france_n make_v great_a complaint_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a cause_n why_o these_o extraordinary_a ambassage_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n and_o into_o spain_n to_o make_v know_v that_o the_o king_n and_o his_o council_n be_v not_o induce_v to_o make_v this_o accord_n by_o their_o own_o will_n but_o by_o mere_a necessity_n and_o for_o fear_v that_o gross_a army_n will_v be_v send_v out_o of_o germany_n to_o the_o hugonot_n which_o as_o be_v report_v be_v prepare_v about_o strasburg_n and_o in_o other_o place_n for_o those_o dutch_a man_n who_o have_v make_v war_n in_o france_n be_v return_v home_o load_v with_o spoil_n they_o invite_v other_o to_o go_v thither_o and_o make_v themselves_o rich_a neither_o be_v they_o without_o fear_n that_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n will_v upon_o that_o occasion_n assay_v to_o 〈◊〉_d monte_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o other_o city_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n will_v assist_v 〈◊〉_d hugonot_n more_o potent_o than_o she_o have_v do_v to_o possess_v some_o other_o place_n 〈◊〉_d already_o she_o have_v possess_v haure_n the_o grace_n but_o beside_o this_o principal_a end_n of_o both_o the_o ambassage_n d'oysel_n be_v afterward_o to_o make_v a_o proposition_n for_o translate_n the_o council_n from_o trent_n to_o constance_n worm_n ausburg_n or_o some_o other_o place_n in_o germany_n and_o to_o represent_v to_o the_o king_n that_o in_o regard_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v celebrate_v for_o the_o dutch_a english_a scottish_a and_o part_n of_o the_o frenchman_n and_o other_o nation_n who_o be_v resolute_a not_o to_o adhere_v to_o nor_o ever_o to_o accept_v that_o of_o trent_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o continue_v in_o that_o place_n conde_n be_v author_n of_o this_o negotiation_n who_o hope_v by_o this_o mean_n if_o it_o do_v succeed_v to_o strengthen_v his_o party_n by_o unite_n it_o to_o the_o interest_n of_o so_o many_o kingdom_n and_o prince_n and_o to_o weaken_v the_o oatholiques_n by_o promote_a difficulty_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o it_o do_v not_o take_v effect_n for_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n have_v hear_v the_o proposition_n which_o i_o say_v by_o way_n of_o anticipation_n that_o i_o may_v not_o return_v to_o this_o matter_n do_v perceive_v what_o the_o aim_n be_v and_o make_v a_o full_a answer_n that_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v in_o trent_n with_o all_o the_o solemnity_n with_o consent_n of_o all_o king_n prince_n and_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o francis_n the_o french_a king_n that_o the_o emperor_n have_v superiority_n in_o that_o city_n as_o in_o the_o other_o that_o be_v name_v and_o may_v give_v full_a security_n to_o all_o in_o case_n the_o former_a safe_a conduct_n be_v not_o sufficient_a that_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o favour_n it_o in_o the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v and_o accept_v the_o determination_n thereof_o and_o he_o advise_v the_o pope_n of_o all_o assure_v he_o he_o will_v never_o change_v that_o resolution_n the_o french_a man_n in_o trent_n think_v it_o superfluous_a to_o make_v instance_n to_o the_o father_n as_o the_o king_n have_v command_v before_o the_o return_n of_o morone_n it_o be_v general_o resolve_v that_o all_o conciliary_a action_n shall_v be_v defer_v until_o then_o but_o the_o emperor_n have_v not_o dispatch_v that_o cardinal_n and_o inform_v lorraine_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o for_o diverse_a accident_n and_o because_o the_o proposition_n be_v of_o the_o weight_n and_o importance_n as_o that_o they_o do_v deserve_v mature_a deliberation_n and_o consultation_n he_o have_v not_o be_v able_a as_o yet_o to_o give_v a_o resolute_a answer_n but_o he_o hope_v it_o shall_v be_v such_o as_o to_o make_v all_o man_n know_v that_o his_o action_n be_v answerable_a to_o his_o desire_n to_o see_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o council_n set_v straight_o for_o the_o common_a benefit_n therefore_o notwithstanding_o the_o occasion_n and_o urgent_a necessity_n of_o his_o other_o province_n he_o resolve_v to_o continue_v his_o residence_n in_o isprue_a to_o favour_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o council_n by_o his_o presence_n until_o he_o have_v hope_n to_o see_v some_o good_a fruit_n this_o delay_n do_v not_o please_v morone_n not_o that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v refer_v as_o he_o do_v all_o the_o negotiation_n to_o the_o divine_n and_o counsellor_n and_o both_o he_o and_o the_o pope_n do_v doubt_v that_o the_o answer_n will_v be_v defer_v until_o he_o have_v hear_v birague_n who_o as_o they_o be_v inform_v be_v to_o propose_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o council_n into_o germany_n to_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o hugonot_n whereunto_o the_o pope_n be_v resolute_a not_o to_o consent_v as_o well_o by_o his_o own_o inclination_n as_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o instance_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o all_o the_o court._n and_o he_o marvel_v at_o the_o humour_n of_o the_o frenchman_n who_o demand_v reformation_n and_o a_o translation_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o supply_n from_o the_o clergy_n for_o payment_n of_o the_o king_n de●ts_n and_o yet_o will_v make_v show_n to_o be_v favourer_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o frenchman_n be_v assure_v they_o can_v obtain_v nothing_o fit_a for_o their_o 〈…〉_o ce_fw-fr so_o long_o as_o the_o italian_n do_v make_v the_o mayor_n part_n begin_v to_o despair_v and_o to_o hold_v no_o esteem_n of_o the_o council_n while_o it_o remain_v in_o trent_n therefore_o they_o take_v from_o the_o divine_n send_v by_o the_o king_n their_o public_a allowance_n and_o give_v they_o all_o leave_n either_o to_o depart_v or_o 〈…〉_o ine_z there_o so_o that_o almost_o all_o go_v away_o one_o after_o another_o the_o two_o benedictines_n remain_v until_o the_o end_n who_o be_v ●haintained_v by_o chest_n monastery_n as_o also_o hugonius_n who_o the_o papalin_n cause_v to_o be_v lodge_v and_o defray_v in_o the_o monastery_n and_o give_v he_o fifty_o crown_n every_o three_o month_n lorraine_n have_v 〈…〉_o ed_z the_o all●gations_n send_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o emperor_n and_o make_v a_o conjure_v upon_o they_o send_v it_o to_o his_o majesty_n 〈◊〉_d think_v allegation_n the_o conjure_v of_o 〈…〉_o upon_o the_o 〈…〉_o allegation_n he_o have_v do_v all_o secret_o but_o hagonot_n have_v not_o only_o discover_v it_o but_o give_v a_o copy_n to_o the_o legate_n who_o expect_v morone_n short_o write_v by_o order_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o bishop_n depart_v from_o trent_n that_o they_o shall_v return_v to_o resume_v the_o action_n of_o the_o council_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o a_o congregation_n be_v make_v the_o ten_o of_o may_n to_o read_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o scotland_n present_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n in_o which_o she_o declare_v that_o she_o do_v submit_v herself_o to_o the_o council_n make_v mention_n of_o her_o succession_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n promise_v that_o in_o case_n it_o
instruct_v in_o christian_a doctrine_n that_o to_o omit_v antiquity_n the_o schoolman_n and_o great_a part_n of_o the_o canonist_n have_v constant_o say_v that_o the_o dispensation_n of_o prelate_n be_v good_a cleave_v non_fw-la errante_fw-la and_o not_o otherwise_o hugonius_n also_o do_v offer_v to_o prove_v that_o assertion_n that_o there_o be_v the_o same_o tribunal_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v impious_a and_o scandalous_a make_v mortality_n equal_a to_o immortality_n and_o corruptible_a judgement_n of_o man_n to_o the_o incorruptible_a judgement_n of_o god_n and_o that_o it_o do_v proceed_v from_o ignorance_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o servant_n which_o be_v set_v over_o the_o family_n of_o christ_n not_o to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o the_o master_n of_o the_o family_n but_o only_o to_o distribute_v to_o every_o one_o not_o arbitrary_o but_o that_o which_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o master_n that_o he_o be_v amaze_v that_o christian_a care_n can_v endure_v to_o hear_v that_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o christ_n be_v impart_v to_o any_o they_o all_o speak_v some_o censure_v one_o some_o another_o of_o the_o jesuite_n assertion_n but_o the_o cardinal_n tell_v they_o that_o it_o will_v be_v no_o small_a matter_n if_o they_o can_v obtain_v that_o in_o the_o public_a decree_n of_o the_o council_n way_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o that_o doctrine_n at_o which_o it_o be_v convenient_a that_o all_o shall_v aim_v to_o which_o end_n they_o shall_v more_o easy_o come_v if_o the_o matter_n be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n and_o suffer_v to_o die_v in_o oblivion_n which_o by_o contradiction_n may_v do_v some_o prejudice_n to_o the_o truth_n they_o be_v pacify_v yet_o not_o so_o but_o that_o in_o their_o private_a meeting_n they_o speak_v of_o it_o very_o much_o but_o the_o legate_n do_v so_o accommodate_v the_o two_o article_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o residence_n with_o general_a term_n that_o they_o residence_n the_o decree_n of_o the_o institution_n and_o of_o residence_n give_v satisfaction_n to_o both_o party_n and_o to_o lorraine_n also_o but_o have_v consult_v on_o they_o with_o the_o popish_a divine_n and_o some_o canonist_n prelate_n these_o say_v that_o they_o do_v admit_v a_o interpretation_n prejudicial_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o the_o use_n of_o the_o court_n the_o bishop_n of_o nicastro_n who_o have_v often_o contend_v in_o this_o matter_n in_o favour_n of_o rome_n say_v plain_o that_o by_o that_o form_n of_o speech_n it_o be_v infer_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o pope_n but_o a_o part_n of_o it_o immediate_o from_o christ_n which_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v endure_v other_o papalin_n maintain_v the_o same_o and_o make_v a_o bad_a interpretation_n of_o all_o if_o it_o be_v not_o plain_o say_v that_o bishop_n have_v all_o jurisdiction_n from_o the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o legate_n send_v the_o article_n thus_o reform_v to_o the_o pope_n not_o so_o much_o that_o they_o may_v be_v examine_v in_o rome_n as_o because_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n they_o will_v propose_v nothing_o without_o the_o pope_n knowledge_n the_o cardinal_n depute_v for_o these_o affair_n have_v see_v and_o examine_v they_o do_v judge_v that_o the_o form_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v all_o bishop_n in_o their_o diocese_n equal_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n reprehend_v the_o legate_n for_o send_v they_o because_o he_o know_v that_o the_o mayor_n part_n in_o the_o council_n be_v good_a catholic_n and_o devote_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o confidence_n hereof_o be_v content_a that_o the_o proposition_n and_o resolution_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o trent_n without_o his_o knowledge_n notwithstanding_o he_o think_v he_o ought_v not_o to_o consent_v to_o any_o prejudicial_a thing_n for_o fear_n of_o give_v bad_a example_n to_o they_o and_o be_v a_o cause_n that_o they_o also_o shall_v assent_v unto_o it_o against_o their_o conscience_n at_o this_o time_n they_o have_v another_o very_a hard_a negotiation_n also_o for_o the_o king_n pope_n a_o difficulty_n whether_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n ought_v to_o promise_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o roman_n be_v to_o send_v ambassador_n to_o give_v he_o a_o account_n of_o his_o election_n will_v not_o do_v as_o other_o emperor_n and_o king_n have_v do_v who_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o make_v difficulty_n do_v promise_n and_o swear_v whatsoever_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v they_o but_o he_o have_v respect_v not_o to_o offend_v the_o prince_n and_o protestant_n of_o germany_n will_v first_o know_v what_o word_n must_v be_v use_v the_o consultation_n hereof_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o cardinal_n they_o resolve_v that_o he_o must_v demand_v confirmation_n of_o the_o election_n and_o swear_v obedience_n according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o all_o other_o emperor_n whereunto_o he_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v deceive_v and_o that_o he_o will_v consent_v to_o nothing_o which_o may_v prejudice_n his_o successor_n as_o the_o action_n of_o his_o predecessor_n be_v allege_v against_o himself_o and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o confess_v he_o be_v vassal_n and_o he_o propose_v that_o his_o ambassador_n shall_v use_v these_o word_n that_o his_o majesty_n will_v perform_v all_o reverence_n devotion_n and_o duty_n to_o his_o holiness_n and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n with_o promise_n not_o only_o to_o preserve_v but_o to_o enlarge_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v the_o holy_a catholic_a faith_n this_o negotiation_n continue_v this_o whole_a year_n without_o agreement_n and_o final_o in_o rome_n they_o think_v they_o have_v find_v a_o temper_n for_o it_o propose_v that_o he_o shall_v swear_v obedience_n not_o as_o emperor_n but_o as_o king_n of_o hungary_n and_o bohemia_n because_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v they_o say_v that_o king_n steven_n do_v give_v the_o kingdom_n to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1000_o acknowledge_v to_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o say_a sea_n and_o make_v himself_o vassal_n and_o that_o vlad●slaus_n duke_n of_o bohemia_n do_v receive_v from_o alexander_n the_o second_o power_n to_o wear_v a_o mitre_n bind_v himself_o to_o pay_v a_o hundred_o mark_n of_o silver_n every_o year_n these_o thing_n be_v consider_v of_o in_o germany_n because_o there_o be_v no_o proof_n of_o they_o but_o the_o bare_a affirmation_n of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v deride_v and_o answer_n be_v make_v that_o they_o desire_v more_o fresh_a example_n and_o more_o certain_a and_o more_o lawful_a title_n messenger_n go_v to_o and_o fro_o with_o diverse_a proposition_n answer_n and_o reply_n of_o which_o we_o will_v now_o relate_v the_o issue_n that_o we_o may_v return_v no_o more_o to_o they_o which_o be_v that_o twenty_o month_n after_o count_n elfestain_v ambassador_n of_o that_o king_n arrive_v in_o rome_n with_o who_o the_o same_o treaty_n be_v renew_v to_o demand_v confirmation_n and_o swear_v obedience_n he_o answer_v that_o the_o oration_n which_o he_o be_v to_o recite_v punctual_o be_v in_o writing_n and_o that_o he_o have_v commission_n not_o to_o alter_v one_o jot_n the_o pope_n therefore_o propose_v the_o business_n to_o the_o cardinal_n in_o a_o general_a congregation_n who_o after_o long_a consultation_n conclude_v that_o howsoever_o the_o confirmation_n be_v not_o demand_v nor_o obedience_n promise_v yet_o in_o the_o answer_n to_o the_o ambassador_n it_o shall_v be_v say_v that_o his_o holiness_n do_v confirm_v the_o election_n supply_v all_o defect_n thereof_o the_o facto_fw-la &_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o do_v receive_v the_o king_n obedience_n without_o say_v it_o be_v demand_v or_o not_o demand_v promise_v or_o not_o promise_v this_o ceremony_n give_v but_o small_a content_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o less_o to_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o time_n whereof_o i_o write_v the_o pope_n be_v to_o answer_v the_o frequent_a instance_n make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o ambassador_n resident_a in_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n in_o trent_n for_o abrogation_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o propoventibus_fw-la legatis_fw-la and_o be_v satiate_v with_o this_o trouble_n he_o write_v to_o the_o legate_n that_o the_o suspension_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v propose_v in_o congregation_n but_o morone_n answer_v the_o ambassador_n who_o urge_v the_o pope_n order_n that_o rather_o than_o he_o will_v condescend_v unto_o it_o he_o desire_v that_o his_o holiness_n will_v remove_v he_o this_o answer_n be_v give_v without_o participation_n of_o the_o other_o legate_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n resolve_v by_o he_o alone_o legate_n morone_n be_v think_v to_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o other_o legate_n put_v they_o in_o a_o jealousy_n that_o he_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o he_o say_v that_o
there_o be_v not_o hope_v that_o he_o may_v be_v worthy_a of_o holy_a order_n and_o from_o the_o last_o of_o the_o minor_a order_n until_o the_o subdeaconship_n there_o shall_v be_v the_o interposition_n of_o a_o year_n if_o the_o bishop_n shall_v not_o judge_v otherwise_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n the_o twelve_o none_o shall_v be_v ordain_v subdeacon_n before_o the_o age_n of_o two_o and_o twenty_o year_n deacon_n before_o three_o and_o twenty_o priest_n before_o six_o and_o twenty_o neither_o shall_v the_o regulars_n have_v any_o exemption_n herein_o the_o thirteen_o subdeacons_n and_o deacon_n shall_v be_v first_o prove_v in_o the_o minor_a order_n shall_v have_v hope_n to_o live_v continent_o shall_v serve_v the_o church_n to_o which_o they_o be_v ascribe_v and_o shall_v think_v it_o very_o convenient_a to_o receive_v the_o communion_n on_o sunday_n and_o solemn_a feast_n when_o they_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n subdeacons_n shall_v not_o pass_v to_o a_o high_a degree_n until_o they_o be_v exercise_v one_o year_n in_o their_o own_o but_o two_o holy_a degree_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v in_o one_o day_n by_o virtue_n of_o any_o privilege_n whatsoever_o the_o fourteen_o none_o shall_v be_v ordain_v a_o priest_n but_o a_o deacon_n which_o have_v be_v exercise_v in_o that_o ministry_n a_o whole_a year_n at_o the_o least_o and_o find_v sufficient_a to_o teach_v the_o people_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o bishop_n shall_v take_v care_n that_o they_o celebrate_v the_o mass_n every_o sunday_n and_o holy_a day_n 〈◊〉_d in_o case_n they_o have_v cure_v of_o soul_n they_o shall_v satisfy_v their_o charge_n and_o if_o any_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o superior_a order_n before_o the_o inferior_a the_o bishop_n may_v dispense_v if_o there_o be_v a_o lawful_a cause_n the_o fifteen_o howsoever_o priest_n receive_v power_n in_o their_o ordination_n to_o absolve_v from_o sin_n yet_o none_o shall_v hear_v confession_n who_o have_v not_o a_o parochial_a benefice_n or_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o the_o bishop_n the_o sixteenth_o none_o shall_v be_v ordain_v before_o he_o be_v ascribe_v to_o some_o particular_a church_n or_o pious_a place_n to_o exercise_v the_o ministry_n of_o that_o order_n and_o if_o hoc_fw-la abandon_v the_o place_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o ministry_n shall_v be_v prohibit_v unto_o he_o and_o no_o strange_a clerk_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o ministry_n without_o the_o letter_n of_o his_o ordinary_n the_o seventeenth_o to_o bring_v again_o into_o use_n the_o function_n of_o the_o order_n from_o a_o deacon_n to_o a_o ostiarie_n which_o be_v use_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v intermit_v in_o many_o place_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v deride_v by_o the_o heretic_n as_o idle_a these_o ministery_n shall_v not_o be_v exercise_v but_o by_o those_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o order_n appertain_v and_o the_o prelate_n shall_v restore_v those_o function_n and_o in_o case_n they_o have_v not_o continent_n clerk_n for_o exercise_n of_o the_o minor_a order_n they_o may_v take_v marry_v man_n so_o that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v twice_o marry_v and_o be_v in_o other_o respect_v apt_a for_o that_o exercise_n the_o last_o article_n be_v for_o the_o institution_n of_o seminary_n in_o which_o it_o be_v constitute_v that_o every_o episcopal_a church_n shall_v have_v a_o certain_a number_n of_o boy_n bring_v up_o in_o a_o college_n near_o the_o church_n or_o in_o another_o convenient_a place_n the_o boy_n shall_v be_v twelve_o year_n old_a at_o the_o least_o legitimate_a and_o distribute_v into_o form_n by_o the_o bishop_n according_a to_o their_o number_n age_n and_o progress_n in_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n they_o shall_v wear_v the_o habit_n and_o tonsure_v learn_v grammar_n music_n ecclesiastical_a computation_n the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o read_v the_o homily_n of_o the_o father_n know_v the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o especial_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o hear_v confession_n and_o to_o defray_v the_o charge_n thereof_o where_o there_o be_v any_o revenue_n depute_v for_o education_n of_o child_n it_o shall_v be_v apply_v to_o this_o seminary_n and_o to_o supply_v that_o which_o remain_v the_o bishop_n with_o four_o of_o the_o clergy_n shall_v detract_v a_o portion_n from_o all_o the_o benefice_n of_o the_o diocese_n and_o apply_v simple_a benefice_n also_o to_o this_o use_n and_o compel_v those_o who_o have_v schoole-house_n or_o other_o charge_n to_o read_v or_o teach_v in_o the_o school_n of_o the_o seminary_n by_o themselves_o or_o by_o sufficient_a substitute_n and_o schoolmaster_n place_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v hereafter_o but_o unto_o doctor_n or_o master_n in_o divinity_n or_o in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o if_o in_o any_o province_n the_o church_n be_v so_o poor_a that_o a_o seminary_n can_v be_v erect_v in_o they_o one_o or_o more_o shall_v be_v appoint_v in_o the_o province_n and_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o great_a diocese_n the_o bishop_n shall_v erect_v one_o or_o more_o if_o he_o think_v fit_a beside_o that_o of_o the_o city_n which_o notwithstanding_o shall_v depend_v on_o that_o of_o the_o city_n in_o the_o end_n the_o decree_n intimate_v the_o next_o session_n for_o the_o sixteenth_o of_o september_n be_v read_v express_v that_o then_o the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n be_v to_o be_v handle_v and_o other_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n as_o also_o the_o provision_n of_o bishopricke_n dignity_n and_o other_o benefice_n and_o diverse_a other_o article_n of_o reformation_n the_o session_n continue_v from_o nine_o until_o sixteen_o a_o clock_n with_o great_a content_n of_o the_o legate_n and_o popish_a prelate_n that_o matter_n do_v pass_v so_o quiet_o and_o with_o such_o a_o general_a consent_n and_o they_o commend_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n above_o all_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v be_v the_o most_o principal_a cause_n of_o this_o benefit_n no_o act_n of_o this_o council_n be_v see_v with_o more_o desire_n than_o this_o of_o this_o session_n session_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o act_n of_o this_o session_n every_o one_o be_v curious_a to_o know_v what_o that_o be_v which_o hold_v in_o contention_n so_o many_o prelate_n in_o trent_n and_o all_o the_o court_n of_o christian_a prince_n in_o business_n ten_o month_n together_o but_o it_o prove_v to_o be_v according_a to_o the_o proverb_n the_o travail_n of_o mountain_n and_o the_o nativity_n of_o a_o mouse_n no_o man_n can_v find_v how_o it_o can_v deserve_v not_o only_o so_o great_a and_o long_a pain_n of_o so_o many_o great_a person_n but_o even_o the_o least_o employment_n at_o all_o and_o those_o who_o understand_v theologie_n do_v desire_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v once_o declare_v what_o the_o council_n do_v understand_v by_o the_o power_n of_o retain_v sin_n which_o be_v make_v one_o part_n of_o the_o sacerdotal_a power_n because_o they_o have_v declare_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o other_o which_o be_v to_o remit_v sin_n and_o other_o wonder_v at_o the_o declaration_n that_o the_o inferior_a order_n be_v only_a degree_n unto_o the_o superior_a and_o all_o unto_o priesthood_n in_o regard_n it_o do_v appear_v in_o the_o ancient_a ecclesiastical_a story_n that_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v to_o any_o ministry_n or_o charge_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n perpetual_o entertain_v in_o the_o same_o and_o the_o ascend_n to_o a_o high_a degree_n happen_v very_o seldom_o and_o be_v use_v only_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n or_o great_a utility_n none_o of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n ascend_v any_o high_a and_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n itself_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o the_o deacon_n who_o office_n be_v to_o hear_v the_o confession_n of_o martyr_n do_v pass_v to_o the_o title_n of_o priesthood_n the_o ordination_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o saint_n hierome_n saint_n austin_n and_o saint_n paulinus_n to_o be_v priest_n and_o of_o saint_n gregory_n the_o great_a to_o be_v a_o deacon_n be_v describe_v without_o mention_n of_o any_o passage_n by_o other_o degree_n they_o do_v not_o blame_v the_o use_n begin_v in_o late_a time_n but_o they_o marvel_v that_o they_o do_v allege_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n always_o use_v whereas_o the_o contrary_a be_v manifest_a the_o decree_n that_o the_o ministery_n of_o the_o order_n from_o a_o deacon_n to_o a_o ostiary_n shall_v not_o be_v exercise_v but_o by_o person_n promote_v to_o those_o proper_a order_n make_v a_o fair_a show_n but_o it_o seem_v a_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v observe_v that_o in_o no_o church_n none_o may_v ring_v the_o bell_n or_o open_a and_o shut_v the_o door_n but_o the_o ordinary_a ostiaries_n nor_o light_v the_o lamp_n and_o candle_n but_o the_o accolites_n who_o be_v to_o exercise_v
they_o unto_o he_o he_o make_v a_o great_a complaint_n of_o the_o count_n proposition_n for_o the_o protestant_n he_o say_v that_o none_o do_v more_o desire_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o church_n than_o he_o that_o the_o action_n of_o his_o predecessor_n for_o forty_o year_n and_o his_o own_o by_o send_v nuncij_fw-la express_o to_o they_o all_o not_o regard_v the_o indignity_n to_o which_o he_o do_v subject_v himself_o and_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n be_v a_o manifest_a argument_n thereof_o that_o he_o have_v use_v the_o emperor_n mediation_n and_o the_o persuasion_n of_o all_o catholic_a prince_n that_o he_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o hardness_n of_o their_o heart_n be_v voluntary_a resolute_a and_o obstinate_a and_o therefore_o that_o the_o reduce_n of_o they_o be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v think_v of_o it_o be_v impossible_a but_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o obedient_a that_o so_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o hope_n to_o regain_v they_o the_o time_n do_v require_v that_o all_o mean_n shall_v be_v use_v to_o please_v they_o but_o that_o be_v lose_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o keep_v the_o good_a to_o make_v the_o division_n strong_a and_o the_o party_n irreconciliable_a that_o the_o affair_n of_o their_o king_n do_v require_v the_o same_o as_o he_o will_v perceive_v too_o late_o in_o case_n he_o shall_v temporize_v in_o flanders_n and_o use_v term_n of_o mediocrity_n that_o the_o king_n shall_v remember_v what_o good_a effect_n his_o severe_a execution_n at_o his_o entrance_n into_o spain_n have_v produce_v whereas_o if_o he_o have_v proceed_v remissly_a and_o desire_v to_o gain_v the_o favour_n of_o the_o protestant_n he_o will_v have_v feel_v those_o accident_n which_o be_v see_v in_o france_n he_o complain_v also_o that_o the_o count_n will_v prescribe_v a_o manner_n of_o handle_v matter_n of_o theology_n and_o determine_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v well_o digest_v and_o last_o of_o all_o he_o tell_v they_o of_o their_o promise_n that_o the_o king_n be_v content_a that_o the_o council_n shall_v end_v which_o the_o count_n do_v labour_n to_o hinder_v the_o ambassador_n have_v excuse_v the_o count_n and_o confess_v what_o they_o have_v say_v concern_v the_o king_n pleasure_n for_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n the_o pope_n be_v satisfy_v so_o that_o they_o will_v be_v content_a he_o shall_v say_v so_o much_o where_o he_o think_v it_o necessary_a whereunto_o they_o consent_v he_o give_v order_n to_o his_o nuncio_n in_o spain_n to_o complain_v to_o the_o king_n and_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o penetrate_v the_o cause_n why_o the_o ambassador_n of_o his_o majesty_n in_o rome_n and_o trent_n shall_v speak_v diverse_o and_o which_o import_v more_o himself_o do_v what_o he_o can_v to_o gratify_v he_o for_o what_o cause_n he_o shall_v be_v cross_v by_o his_o minister_n in_o regard_n the_o council_n continue_v he_o be_v hinder_v from_o do_v his_o majesty_n many_o favour_n and_o grace_n that_o if_o for_o his_o affair_n in_o flanders_n or_o for_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o emperor_n in_o germany_n he_o do_v desire_v any_o thing_n of_o the_o council_n he_o may_v know_v by_o experience_n how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o effect_v it_o in_o trent_n that_o they_o may_v promise_v themselves_o any_o thing_n from_o he_o and_o that_o he_o be_v resolute_a so_o soon_o as_o the_o council_n be_v end_v to_o send_v into_o all_o province_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o particular_a necessity_n of_o every_o one_o whereas_o in_o trent_n general_a provision_n only_o can_v be_v make_v which_o have_v infinite_a difficulty_n to_o be_v fit_v to_o every_o place_n but_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o count_n in_o trent_n make_v a_o division_n of_o the_o prelate_n some_o desire_v that_o those_o matter_n may_v be_v exact_o dispute_v and_o the_o rather_o because_o very_o little_a or_o nothing_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o by_o the_o schoolman_n and_o whereas_o for_o other_o thing_n handle_v in_o the_o synod_n there_o be_v decision_n either_o of_o other_o counsel_n or_o of_o pope_n or_o a_o uniform_a consent_n of_o doctor_n these_o be_v whole_o obscure_a and_o in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o clear_v it_o will_v be_v say_v that_o the_o council_n have_v fail_v in_o the_o most_o necessary_a thing_n other_o say_v that_o if_o there_o be_v so_o many_o difficulty_n and_o contention_n in_o the_o thing_n decide_v already_o how_o much_o more_o may_v they_o be_v fear_v that_o 〈◊〉_d these_o which_o be_v full_a of_o obscurity_n where_o there_o be_v no_o sufficient_a light_n show_v by_o the_o doctor_n they_o may_v go_v in_o infinitum_fw-la because_o they_o have_v a_o large_a field_n in_o regard_n of_o many_o abuse_n which_o be_v creep_v into_o they_o for_o matter_n of_o gain_n and_o of_o the_o difficulty_n which_o will_v arise_v about_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o bull_n especial_o of_o the_o word_n use_v in_o some_o of_o penalty_n and_o guilt_n as_o also_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o take_v indulgence_n for_o the_o dead_a therefore_o in_o these_o and_o the_o adoration_n of_o saint_n the_o use_n only_o may_v be_v handle_v and_o the_o residue_n omit_v and_o for_o purgatory_n the_o opinion_n of_o the_o heretic_n condemn_v only_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v no_o end_n of_o the_o council_n nor_o any_o resolution_n of_o this_o difficulty_n while_o these_o opinion_n go_v about_o concern_v these_o matter_n reserve_v for_o the_o last_o the_o legate_n resolve_v to_o dispatch_v that_o of_o matrimony_n and_o to_o abbreviate_v the_o time_n of_o the_o session_n and_o to_o hold_v it_o the_o 19_o of_o august_n at_o the_o late_a this_o please_v the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n very_o much_o rome_n the_o card._n of_o lorraine_n resolve_v to_o go_v to_o rome_n who_o have_v receive_v answer_n out_o of_o france_n that_o he_o shall_v give_v the_o pope_n satisfaction_n in_o go_v to_o rome_n do_v resolve_v so_o to_o do_v in_o the_o end_n of_o that_o month_n so_o that_o the_o session_n be_v celebrate_v and_o he_o be_v force_v to_o join_v with_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o adherent_n not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o order_n receive_v out_o of_o france_n but_o because_o the_o imperialist_n and_o spaniard_n do_v mistrust_v he_o for_o the_o success_n of_o the_o last_o session_n the_o 22._o of_o july_n the_o anathematism_n be_v give_v forth_o not_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o manner_n in_o which_o they_o be_v establish_v afterward_o the_o great_a variety_n be_v that_o until_o then_o they_o have_v not_o sufficient_o consider_v of_o the_o five_o condemn_v divorce_n allow_v in_o the_o code_n of_o justinian_n which_o anathematisme_n be_v ad_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n to_o oppose_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o caluinist_n and_o it_o be_v easy_o receive_v because_o it_o be_v conformeable_a to_o the_o school_n doctrine_n and_o the_o pope_n decree_n but_o in_o that_o of_o divorce_n for_o adultery_n the_o composer_n of_o the_o canon_n do_v forbear_v to_o use_v the_o word_n anathema_n fear_v to_o condemn_v that_o opinion_n which_o be_v of_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o of_o many_o father_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o other_o think_v that_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o father_n consent_v thereunto_o the_o canon_n be_v reform_v and_o the_o anathema_n add_v condemn_v those_o that_o say_v that_o the_o bond_n be_v dissolve_v by_o adultery_n and_o that_o either_o of_o the_o party_n may_v contract_v another_o matrimony_n while_o the_o other_o live_v which_o canon_n receive_v afterward_o another_o mutation_n as_o shall_v be_v say_v in_o due_a place_n in_o the_o congregation_n follow_v the_o thing_n propose_v be_v easy_o dispatch_v but_o almost_o all_o the_o prelate_n leave_v those_o and_o speak_v of_o clandestine_a marriage_n though_o neither_o the_o time_n nor_o the_o place_n do_v comport_v it_o and_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n therein_o begin_v to_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o four_o and_o twenty_o day_n in_o the_o morning_n the_o bishop_n of_o cortona_n ambassador_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o florence_n be_v receive_v who_o make_v a_o short_a speech_n of_o the_o devotion_n of_o his_o prince_n towards_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o favour_n to_o the_o synbd_a and_o thanks_n be_v give_v he_o in_o the_o congregation_n that_o night_n the_o french_a ambassador_n cause_v a_o request_n to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o king_n that_o child_n which_o be_v in_o congregation_n the_o ambassador_n of_o florence_n be_v receive_v in_o congregation_n the_o power_n of_o their_o parent_n may_v not_o without_o their_o consent_n either_o many_o or_o betrothe_v themselves_o or_o if_o they_o do_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o parent_n to_o make_v void_a or_o ratify_v the_o contract_n as_o they_o please_v and_o the_o same_o day_n the_o
father_n be_v admonish_v to_o put_v up_o in_o write_v to_o the_o deputy_n the_o abuse_n observe_v by_o they_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o matrimony_n the_o voice_n be_v all_o give_v concern_v the_o anathematism_n two_o article_n be_v propose_v the_o promotion_n of_o marry_a person_n to_o holy_a order_n and_o the_o make_v void_a of_o clandestine_v marriage_n for_o the_o former_a the_o father_n marriage_n two_o new_a article_n concern_v marry_v priest_n and_o secret_a marriage_n do_v uniform_o and_o without_o difficulty_n agree_v on_o the_o negative_a and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o prague_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o five_o church_n who_o persuade_v they_o to_o think_v better_o on_o it_o be_v scarce_o hear_v but_o the_o other_o of_o clandestine_v marriage_n do_v not_o pass_v so_o for_o one_o hundred_o thirty_o and_o six_o do_v approve_v the_o make_n it_o void_a fifty_o seven_o do_v contradict_v and_o ten_o will_v not_o declare_v themselves_o the_o decree_n be_v compose_v according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o mayor_n part_n that_o howsoever_o clandestine_v marriage_n be_v good_a so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n do_v not_o make_v they_o void_a and_o therefore_o the_o synod_n do_v anathematise_v he_o that_o think_v the_o contrary_a yet_o the_o church_n have_v always_o detest_v they_o and_o now_o see_v the_o inconvenience_n the_o synod_n do_v determine_v that_o all_o person_n which_o hereafter_o shall_v either_o marry_v or_o betrothe_v themselves_o without_o the_o presence_n of_o three_o witness_n at_o the_o least_o shall_v be_v unable_a to_o contract_v and_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v therein_o shall_v be_v void_a and_o another_o decree_n follow_v command_v the_o bane_n but_o conclude_v that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n to_o omit_v they_o the_o marriage_n may_v be_v make_v so_o that_o it_o be_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o parish_n priest_n and_o of_o five_o witness_n at_o the_o least_o publish_v the_o bane_n afterward_o upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n to_o he_o that_o shall_v contract_v otherwise_o but_o that_o great_a number_n which_o will_v make_v void_a the_o secret_a marriage_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n some_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o divine_n who_o grant_v power_n to_o the_o church_n to_o make_v the_o person_n uncapable_a and_o some_o those_o who_o say_v it_o may_v make_v the_o contract_n void_a and_o the_o legate_n themselves_o do_v differ_v morone_n be_v content_a with_o any_o resolution_n so_o that_o they_o may_v dispatch_v varmiense_n think_v that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o power_n herein_o and_o that_o all_o marriage_n celebrate_v in_o what_o manner_n soever_o with_o consent_n of_o the_o person_n contract_v be_v good_a simoneta_n say_v that_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o contract_n of_o matrimony_n from_o matrimony_n itself_o and_o the_o give_v of_o power_n to_o the_o church_n over_o the_o one_o and_o not_o over_o the_o other_o seem_v to_o he_o sophistical_a and_o chimericall_a and_o be_v much_o incline_v not_o to_o make_v any_o innovation_n concern_v the_o abuse_n of_o matrimony_n many_o prelate_n consider_v that_o the_o cause_n to_o hinder_v marriage_n and_o to_o make_v they_o void_a though_o they_o be_v contract_v be_v so_o many_o and_o happen_v so_o often_o that_o there_o be_v but_o few_o not_o subject_a to_o some_o of_o those_o defect_n and_o which_o be_v more_o person_n do_v contract_v ignorant_o either_o not_o know_v the_o prohibition_n or_o the_o fact_n or_o by_o forgetfulness_n in_o who_o after_o they_o know_v the_o truth_n many_o perturbation_n and_o scruple_n do_v arise_v as_o also_o suit_n and_o contention_n about_o the_o legitimation_n of_o the_o issue_n and_o the_o dowry_n the_o impediment_n of_o kindred_n contract_v in_o baptism_n be_v particular_o allege_v for_o a_o very_a great_a abuse_n because_o in_o some_o place_n twenty_o or_o thirty_o man_n be_v invite_v for_o godfather_n and_o as_o many_o woman_n for_o godmother_n between_o all_o which_o by_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n a_o spiritual_a kindred_n do_v arise_v who_o oftentimes_o not_o know_v one_o another_o do_v join_v in_o marriage_n many_o thought_n fit_a to_o take_v away_o this_o impediment_n not_o because_o it_o be_v not_o well_o institute_v at_o the_o first_o but_o for_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o institution_n be_v cease_v the_o effect_n ought_v to_o cease_v also_o they_o consider_v that_o the_o gossip_n be_v then_o surety_n to_o the_o church_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o child_n baptize_v and_o therefore_o be_v bind_v to_o instruct_v and_o chatechize_v they_o according_a to_o their_o capacity_n by_o which_o mean_n they_o converse_v often_o and_o familiar_o with_o they_o and_o their_o parent_n as_o also_o the_o gossip_n among_o themselves_o by_o which_o mean_v a_o certain_a relation_n do_v arise_v between_o they_o which_o be_v a_o cause_n to_o be_v reverence_v and_o sufficient_a to_o prohibit_v marriage_n as_o all_o other_o cause_n to_o which_o reverence_n ought_v to_o be_v bear_v but_o afterward_o when_o use_n bid_v abolish_v whatsoever_o be_v real_a herein_o and_o the_o godfather_n do_v seldom_o see_v his_o god-childe_n and_o have_v no_o care_n at_o all_o of_o his_o education_n the_o cause_n of_o reverence_n cease_v the_o relation_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v place_n likewise_o the_o impediment_n of_o affinity_n by_o fornication_n nullify_a marriage_n until_o the_o four_o degree_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o secrecy_n do_v ensnare_v many_o who_o understand_v the_o truth_n after_o the_o marriage_n be_v fill_v with_o perturbation_n for_o kindred_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o same_o account_n be_v now_o not_o make_v of_o it_o as_o former_o be_v and_z among_o great_a personage_n scarce_o memory_n keep_v of_o the_o four_o degree_n that_o may_v be_v omit_v also_o wherein_o there_o be_v much_o disputation_n some_o thought_n that_o as_o seven_o degree_n of_o kindred_n do_v hinder_v marriage_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n and_o innocentius_n the_o three_o take_v away_o three_o of_o they_o at_o once_o restrain_v the_o impediment_n unto_o the_o four_o allege_v very_o common_a reason_n that_o there_o be_v four_o element_n four_o humour_n of_o man_n body_n so_o it_o appear_v now_o that_o four_o can_v be_v observe_v without_o many_o inconvenience_n the_o impediment_n may_v be_v more_o just_o restrain_v to_o the_o three_o other_o contradict_v and_o say_v that_o so_o they_o may_v hereafter_o proceed_v further_o and_o at_o the_o last_o come_v to_o that_o of_o leviticus_fw-la which_o will_v cherish_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o therefore_o do_v conclude_v that_o it_o be_v dangerous_a to_o innonate_v which_o opinion_n after_o much_o examination_n do_v prevail_v some_o thought_n that_o the_o impediment_n of_o fornication_n be_v secret_a ought_v whole_o to_o beetaken_v away_o but_o they_o prevail_v not_o because_o there_o appear_v a_o inconvenience_n in_o regard_n that_o many_o thing_n which_o first_o be_v secret_a be_v publish_v afterward_o many_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o no_o novitie_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o these_o prohibition_n but_o power_n grant_v to_o bishop_n to_o dispense_v and_o maintain_v that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o give_v it_o to_o they_o then_o to_o the_o court_n because_o they_o know_v better_a the_o merit_n of_o the_o fact_n and_o the_o cause_n may_v exercise_v distributive_a justice_n more_o exact_o herein_o they_o say_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v often_o give_v dispensation_n to_o person_n not_o know_v who_o obtain_v they_o by_o deceit_n and_o that_o diligence_n can_v be_v use_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o distance_n of_o the_o country_n beside_o the_o world_n be_v scandalize_v think_v they_o be_v not_o give_v but_o for_o money_n that_o imfamie_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v away_o the_o spaniard_n and_o frenchman_n labour_v effectual_o herein_o but_o the_o italian_n say_v they_o do_v it_o to_o make_v themselves_o all_o pope_n and_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o that_o the_o difficulty_n of_o send_v to_o rome_n and_o negotiate_v the_o expedition_n with_o pain_n and_o cost_n be_v profitable_a because_o by_o that_o mean_n few_o marriage_n be_v contract_v in_o degree_n prohibit_v whereas_o if_o by_o grant_v power_n to_o bishop_n there_o be_v a●facility_n herein_o the_o prohibition_n will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n come_v to_o nothing_o and_o so_o the_o lutheran_n will_v gain_v their_o opinion_n here_o upon_o a_o common_a inclination_n grow_v that_o none_o shall_v be_v dispense_v with_o in_o these_o prohibition_n but_o for_o a_o very_a urgent_a cause_n into_o which_o opinion_n those_o who_o can_v not_o prevail_v for_o the_o bishop_n do_v enter_v also_o think_v it_o be_v more_o for_o their_o credit_n if_o that_o which_o be_v forbid_v to_o they_o be_v not_o grant_v to_o other_o after_o many_o discourse_n in_o the_o congregation_n it_o be_v resolve_v to_o restrain_v spiritual_a kindred_n and_o affinity_n by_o marriage_n and_o
give_v by_o the_o legate_n make_v for_o the_o interest_n of_o rome_n can_v not_o be_v fit_v to_o other_o country_n but_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n and_o the_o french_a and_o portugal_n ambassador_n contradict_v allege_v that_o every_o one_o may_v speak_v his_o opinion_n concern_v the_o article_n propose_v and_o propose_v other_o if_o there_o be_v cause_n so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o give_v this_o distaste_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o legate_n who_o can_v not_o endure_v to_o hear_v speech_n of_o nation_n in_o council_n and_o the_o imperialist_n come_v to_o this_o opinion_n also_o the_o count_n retire_v but_o say_v that_o diverse_a consideration_n ought_v to_o be_v have_v concern_v those_o which_o be_v propose_v the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n counsel_v the_o legate_n to_o facilitate_v the_o business_n and_o to_o take_v away_o those_o point_n which_o may_v seem_v to_o cause_v contradiction_n add_v that_o the_o few_o matter_n be_v handle_v the_o better_a it_o will_v be_v whereat_o varmiense_n seem_v to_o wonder_n lorraine_n ask_v he_o whether_o he_o marvel_v mind_n the_o card_n of_o lorraine_n excuse_v the_o change_n of_o his_o mind_n because_o he_o see_v not_o in_o he_o that_o heat_n and_o desire_v of_o reformation_n as_o he_o have_v make_v demonstration_n of_o at_o other_o time_n and_o he_o add_v that_o his_o desire_n be_v the_o same_o and_o have_v the_o same_o disposition_n of_o mind_n to_o employ_v all_o his_o force_n therein_o but_o that_o experience_n have_v teach_v he_o that_o not_o only_o nothing_o perfect_a or_o ordinary_a can_v be_v do_v in_o council_n but_o that_o every_o enterprise_n in_o that_o business_n turn_v to_o the_o worst_a he_o persuade_v also_o the_o count_n of_o luna_n not_o to_o seek_v to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n total_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o full_o satisfy_v he_o he_o shall_v make_v the_o particular_a know_v and_o he_o will_v labour_v that_o contentment_n shall_v be_v give_v he_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n first_o of_o all_o give_v their_o answer_n in_o writing_n the_o one_o and_o thirty_o of_o july_n in_o which_o they_o say_v that_o desire_v a_o general_a reformation_n in_o the_o head_n and_o member_n and_o have_v read_v the_o article_n exhibit_v they_o have_v add_v some_o thing_n and_o note_v other_o desire_v they_o may_v be_v correct_v according_o and_o discuss_v by_o the_o father_n and_o because_o the_o emperor_n with_o the_o ambassador_n of_o many_o prince_n do_v hold_v a_o diet_n in_o vienna_n to_o handle_v many_o thing_n concern_v the_o council_n they_o hope_v they_o will_v take_v it_o in_o good_a part_n if_o have_v receive_v a_o new_a commandment_n from_o his_o majesty_n they_o shall_v present_v other_o consideration_n also_o and_o that_o for_o the_o present_a they_o add_v eight_o article_n to_o those_o propose_v by_o they_o 1_o that_o a_o serious_a and_o more_o the_o imperialist_n add_v 8._o article_n more_o durable_a reformation_n of_o the_o conclave_n may_v be_v make_v in_o council_n 2._o that_o alienation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a good_n without_o the_o free_a and_o firm_a consent_n of_o the_o chapter_n may_v be_v prohibit_v and_o especial_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 3._o that_o commendaes_n and_o coadiutories_n with_o future_a succession_n may_v be_v take_v away_o 4._o that_o school_n and_o university_n may_v be_v reform_v 5._o that_o the_o provincial_a counsel_n may_v be_v enjoin_v to_o correct_v the_o statute_n of_o all_o the_o chapter_n as_o also_o that_o authority_n may_v be_v give_v to_o reform_v missal_n brevidry_n agend_n and_o gradual_n not_o in_o rome_n only_o but_o in_o all_o church_n 6._o that_o layman_n may_v not_o be_v cite_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n 7._o that_o cause_n may_v not_o be_v remoove_v from_o the_o secular_a court_n to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a upon_o pretence_n of_o justice_n deny_v before_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o supplication_n be_v know_v 8._o that_o conseruator_n may_v not_o be_v give_v in_o profane_a matter_n and_o concern_v the_o article_n exhibit_v by_o the_o legate_n they_o note_v many_o thing_n part_v whereof_o as_o be_v but_o of_o small_a weight_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o omit_v those_o of_o importance_n be_v that_o cardinal_n may_v be_v choose_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n that_o the_o universal_a bishop_n may_v be_v create_v by_o elector_n of_o all_o country_n that_o the_o provision_n against_o pension_n reservation_n and_o regress_n shall_v be_v extend_v not_o only_o to_o the_o future_a but_o to_o those_o also_o that_o be_v past_a that_o the_o kiss_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v take_v from_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n who_o ought_v to_o defend_v it_o that_o it_o may_v be_v declare_v what_o secular_a affair_n be_v prohibit_v to_o ecclesiastique_n that_o that_o which_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o residence_n may_v not_o be_v cross_v that_o in_o the_o article_n of_o not_o lay_v tax_n upon_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n the_o cause_n of_o subsidy_n against_o the_o turk_n and_o other_o infidel_n may_v be_v except_v the_o proposition_n though_o it_o be_v of_o hard_a digestion_n do_v not_o so_o much_o trouble_v the_o legate_n as_o the_o doubt_v move_v that_o some_o extraordinary_a demand_n for_o change_n of_o rite_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o relaxation_n of_o precept_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la may_v come_v from_o the_o diet_n in_o vienna_n the_o three_o of_o august_n the_o frenchman_n give_v their_o observation_n the_o essential_a whereof_o be_v that_o the_o number_n of_o cardinal_n may_v not_o exceed_v four_o and_o frenchman_n the_o article_n exhibit_v by_o the_o frenchman_n twenty_o and_o that_o no_o more_o may_v be_v create_v until_o they_o be_v reduce_v to_o that_o paucity_n that_o they_o may_v be_v elect_v out_o of_o all_o kingdom_n and_o province_n that_o there_o may_v not_o be_v two_o of_o one_o diocese_n nor_o more_o than_o eight_o of_o one_o nation_n that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v less_o than_o thirty_o year_n of_o age_n that_o the_o nephew_n or_o brother_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o of_o any_o cardinal_n live_v may_v not_o be_v choose_v that_o bishopricke_n may_v not_o be_v give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o assist_v the_o pope_n and_o that_o their_o dignity_n be_v equal_a their_o revenue_n may_v be_v equal_a also_o that_o none_o may_v have_v more_o than_o one_o benefice_n and_o that_o the_o difference_n unknowen_a to_o the_o good_a age_n of_o the_o world_n of_o benefice_n simple_a and_o with_o cure_n compatible_a and_o incompatible_a may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o that_o he_o that_o have_v two_o at_o this_o present_a may_v choose_v and_o keep_v one_o only_o and_o that_o within_o a_o short_a time_n that_o resignation_n in_o favour_n may_v be_v quite_o take_v away_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v prohibit_v to_o confer_v benefice_n only_o upon_o those_o who_o have_v not_o the_o language_n of_o the_o country_n because_o the_o law_n of_o france_n forbid_v all_o stranger_n without_o exception_n to_o have_v office_n or_o benefice_n in_o the_o kingdom_n that_o the_o criminal_a cause_n of_o bishop_n may_v not_o be_v judge_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o ancient_a privilege_n of_o france_n that_o none_o may_v be_v judge_v out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n neither_o voluntary_o nor_o by_o compulsion_n that_o power_n may_v be_v restore_v to_o bishop_n to_o absolve_v from_o all_o case_n without_o exception_n that_o to_o take_v away_o suit_n for_o benefice_n prevention_n resignation_n in_o favour_n mandate_n expectative_n and_o other_o unlawful_a way_n to_o obtain_v they_o may_v be_v remoove_v that_o the_o prohibition_n that_o the_o clergy_n may_v not_o meddle_v in_o secular_a matter_n may_v be_v expound_v so_o that_o they_o may_v abstain_v from_o all_o function_n which_o be_v not_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a and_o proper_a to_o their_o order_n that_o the_o pension_n already_o impose_v may_v be_v take_v away_o and_o abrogate_a that_o in_o cause_n of_o patronage_n the_o ancient_a institution_n in_o france_n may_v not_o be_v change_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o the_o possessory_a for_o he_o who_o be_v in_o the_o last_o possession_n and_o in_o the_o petitorie_a for_o he_o who_o have_v a_o lawful_a title_n or_o a_o long_a possession_n that_o the_o law_n of_o france_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n may_v not_o be_v prejudice_v that_o the_o possessory_a may_v beiudge_v by_o the_o king_n judge_n and_o the_o petitorie_a by_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n but_o not_o out_o of_o the_o kingdom_n that_o none_o may_v be_v assume_v to_o be_v canon_n in_o a_o cathedral_n church_n before_o he_o be_v five_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a that_o for_o the_o article_n contain_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n the_o clergy_n may_v be_v first_o entire_o reform_v in_o this_o session_n and_o that_o which_o belong_v to_o the_o dignity_n
to_o propose_v to_o the_o pope_n a_o conference_n between_o his_o holiness_n the_o emperor_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o the_o king_n her_o son_n in_o who_o train_n herself_o will_v be_v the_o proposition_n do_v not_o displease_v the_o pope_n because_o it_o may_v serve_v he_o to_o finish_v the_o council_n but_o he_o think_v the_o execution_n be_v impossible_a and_o he_o promise_v to_o send_v nuncij_fw-la to_o the_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o spain_n to_o this_o end_n and_o appoint_v the_o bishop_n of_o vintimiglia_n for_o spain_n who_o he_o therefore_o recall_v from_o trent_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o ischia_n for_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n he_o make_v excessive_a demonstration_n of_o honour_n lodge_v he_o in_o the_o palace_n a_o thing_n unusual_a go_v public_o to_o visit_v rome_n how_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n be_v treat_v in_o rome_n he_o in_o his_o lodging_n their_o discourse_n be_v partly_o about_o the_o conference_n though_o the_o cardinal_n do_v not_o think_v it_o feasable_a they_o treat_v about_o the_o sale_n of_o a_o 100000._o crown_n which_o whether_o the_o cardinal_n do_v promote_v or_o draw_v back_o be_v not_o discover_v but_o the_o pope_n have_v upon_o a_o new_a instance_n make_v by_o the_o french_a ambassador_n answer_v that_o he_o do_v refer_v it_o to_o the_o council_n many_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o excuse_n invent_v by_o lorraine_n but_o the_o principal_a business_n be_v about_o finish_v the_o synod_n which_o the_o pope_n think_v to_o be_v of_o great_a importance_n and_o know_v to_o be_v most_o difficult_a wherein_o there_o be_v great_a confidence_n between_o they_o for_o the_o cardinal_n discover_v to_o he_o that_o his_o interest_n be_v turn_v the_o same_o way_n and_o that_o since_o the_o death_n of_o his_o brother_n he_o see_v plain_o that_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n to_o maintain_v religion_n in_o france_n and_o his_o house_n but_o his_o conjunction_n with_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n the_o pope_n promise_v to_o make_v cardinal_n at_o his_o instance_n and_o give_v he_o such_o word_n as_o show_v a_o intention_n to_o make_v he_o his_o successor_n in_o the_o popedom_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v more_o credit_n he_o make_v show_v that_o the_o greatness_n of_o that_o cardinal_n be_v profitable_a for_o the_o end_n he_o have_v in_o aim_v at_o some_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n and_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o discourse_n to_o every_o one_o be_v we_o must_v shut_v up_o the_o council_n provide_v money_n and_o afterward_o that_o will_v happen_v which_o shall_v please_v god._n the_o pope_n tell_v the_o cardinal_n that_o as_o often_o as_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o discord_n and_o delay_n which_o some_o do_v plot_n he_o think_v to_o suspend_v the_o council_n but_o change_v his_o opinion_n for_o fear_n of_o the_o scandal_n which_o the_o world_n will_v take_v which_o know_v not_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o sometime_o he_o think_v this_o the_o great_a evil_n that_o can_v occur_v and_o sometime_o judge_v it_o less_o than_o the_o danger_n in_o which_o his_o authority_n be_v which_o be_v the_o mark_n at_o which_o the_o prince_n bishop_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n do_v shoot_v but_o final_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o lay_v aside_o all_o respect_n and_o come_v to_o this_o resolution_n the_o cardinal_n dissuade_v he_o show_v that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o medicine_n to_o cure_v the_o evil_a but_o to_o defer_v it_o only_o with_o great_a danger_n because_o he_o will_v in_o a_o short_a time_n have_v new_a demand_n to_o restore_v it_o and_o plot_n will_v be_v lay_v by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o satisfy_v with_o he_o and_o that_o to_o suspend_v be_v as_o difficult_a as_o to_o finish_v it_o for_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o allege_v cause_n for_o this_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v thing_n to_o the_o conclusion_n and_o so_o to_o end_v whereas_o the_o suspension_n do_v require_v a_o allegation_n of_o the_o cause_n whereof_o every_o one_o will_v speak_v his_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v more_o honourable_a to_o finish_v then_o to_o suspend_v it_o and_o he_o use_v other_o reason_n which_o make_v the_o pope_n know_v that_o his_o counsel_n be_v good_a and_o faithful_a and_o afterward_o he_o advise_v he_o to_o deal_v plain_o with_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n therefore_o call_v the_o ambassador_n of_o that_o king_n he_o complain_v in_o grievous_a term_n say_v that_o he_o have_v call_v the_o council_n upon_o hope_n and_o promise_n that_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o papacy_n will_v have_v be_v favour_v by_o his_o majesty_n to_o who_o he_o have_v give_v all_o imaginable_a satisfaction_n and_o will_v give_v he_o more_o according_a to_o his_o demand_n if_o the_o impediment_n cause_v by_o the_o council_n be_v take_v away_o that_o he_o have_v not_o demand_v any_o favour_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o minister_n but_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o the_o public_a good_a and_o therein_o be_v ill_o use_v though_o it_o be_v rather_o a_o loss_n to_o the_o king_n than_o a_o benefit_n therefore_o he_o be_v force_v to_o hold_v esteem_n of_o he_o by_o who_o he_o be_v esteem_v and_o to_o cast_v himself_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o those_o that_o will_v assist_v he_o and_o he_o dispatch_v also_o a_o currier_n to_o the_o king_n with_o a_o letter_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n complain_v of_o the_o office_n do_v by_o his_o ambassador_n and_o prelate_n in_o trent_n contrary_a to_o his_o minister_n in_o rome_n each_o party_n say_v he_o do_v the_o commission_n of_o his_o majesty_n he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v convenient_a for_o the_o service_n of_o god_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o of_o his_o majesty_n that_o the_o council_n shall_v end_v and_o in_o conclusion_n he_o desire_v he_o to_o declare_v himself_o plain_o whether_o he_o will_v assist_v he_o herein_o or_o not_o the_o cardinal_n do_v counsel_v he_o also_o not_o to_o be_v averse_a from_o grant_v to_o the_o emperor_n the_o cup_n and_o marriage_n of_o priest_n by_o which_o mean_v he_o shall_v gain_v both_o he_o and_o the_o king_n of_o the_o roman_n not_o to_o consent_v only_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n but_o to_o be_v favourable_a and_o to_o promote_v it_o he_o tell_v he_o likewise_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o omit_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n because_o it_o will_v prolong_v the_o business_n more_o than_o any_o thing_n beside_o after_o the_o departure_n of_o lorraine_n nine_o french_a bishop_n part_v from_o trent_n and_o return_v home_o so_o that_o there_o remain_v but_o eight_o beside_o six_o who_o go_v with_o the_o cardinal_n to_o rome_n this_o departure_n cause_v a_o opinion_n that_o they_o be_v recall_v and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o purpose_n at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o the_o hugonot_n to_o recall_v the_o other_o that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n approach_v no_o french_a man_n may_v be_v present_a when_o they_o shall_v be_v anathematise_v the_o legate_n to_o facilitate_v the_o difficulty_n of_o secret_a marriage_n cause_v the_o divine_n who_o be_v maintainer_n and_o opposer_n of_o it_o to_o make_v a_o public_a disputation_n this_o be_v never_o do_v before_o in_o any_o occurrence_n and_o then_o do_v so_o little_a good_a that_o every_o one_o be_v more_o confirm_v in_o his_o own_o opinion_n after_o this_o to_o reassume_v the_o congregation_n and_o to_o handle_v the_o reformation_n they_o give_v forth_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o article_n the_o last_o of_o which_o be_v the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n be_v force_v thereunto_o by_o the_o mutiny_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o which_o matter_n concern_v prince_n have_v often_o make_v mention_n and_o now_o be_v come_v to_o a_o place_n in_o which_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o recite_v it_o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o follow_v it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o it_o do_v contain_v a_o propheme_n with_o thirteen_o article_n and_o a_o very_a pregnant_a epilogue_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o the_o synod_n beside_o the_o thing_n constitute_v concern_v ecclesiastical_a person_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o correct_v the_o abuse_n of_o the_o secular_o bring_v in_o against_o the_o immunity_n of_o the_o church_n hope_v that_o the_o prince_n will_v be_v content_a and_o cause_v due_a obedience_n to_o be_v render_v to_o the_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v admonish_v they_o to_o cause_v their_o magistrate_n officer_n and_o temporal_a lord_n to_o yield_v that_o obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o council_n which_o themselves_o be_v bind_v to_o perform_v and_o for_o facilitation_n hereof_o it_o do_v renew_v some_o thing_n decree_v by_o the_o holy_a canon_n and_o imperial_a prince_n the_o article_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o prince_n law_n in_o favour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a immunity_n which_o
ought_v to_o be_v observe_v upon_o pain_n of_o anathema_n 1._o that_o ecclesiastical_a person_n may_v not_o be_v judge_v in_o a_o secular_a court_n howsoever_o there_o may_v be_v doubt_n of_o the_o title_n of_o the_o clerkeship_n or_o themselves_o consent_v or_o have_v renounce_v the_o thing_n obtain_v or_o for_o any_o cause_n whatsoever_o though_o under_o pretence_n of_o public_a utility_n or_o service_n of_o the_o king_n nor_o shall_v be_v proceed_v against_o there_o in_o cause_n of_o murder_n if_o it_o be_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o a_o murder_n and_o notorious_o know_v nor_o in_o other_o case_n permit_v by_o the_o law_n without_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o law_n go_v before_o 2._o that_o in_o cause_n spiritual_a of_o matrimony_n heresy_n patronage_n beneficial_a civil_a criminal_a and_o mix_v belong_v in_o what_o manner_n soever_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n as_o well_o over_o person_n as_o over_o good_n tithe_n fourth_n and_o other_o portion_n appertain_v to_o the_o church_n or_o over_o beneficial_a patrimony_n ecclesiastical_a fee_n temporal_a jurisdiction_n of_o church_n the_o temporal_a judge_n shall_v not_o meddle_v neither_o in_o the_o petitorie_a nor_o in_o the_o possessory_a take_v away_o all_o appeal_n upon_o pretence_n of_o justice_n deny_v or_o as_o from_o a_o abuse_n or_o because_o the_o thing_n obtain_v be_v renounce_v and_o those_o who_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o secular_a magistrate_n in_o the_o cause_n aforesaid_a shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v of_o their_o right_n belong_v unto_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n and_o this_o shall_v be_v observe_v also_o in_o cause_n depend_v in_o what_o instance_n soever_o 3._o that_o the_o secular_o shall_v not_o appoint_v judge_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a though_o they_o have_v apostolic_a authority_n or_o a_o custom_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n and_o the_o clerk_n who_o shall_v receive_v such_o office_n from_o the_o lake_n though_o by_o virtue_n of_o any_o privilege_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v suspend_v from_o their_o order_n deprive_v of_o their_o benefice_n and_o office_n and_o make_v uncapable_a of_o they_o 4._o that_o the_o secular_a shall_v not_o command_v the_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n not_o to_o excommunicate_v without_o licence_n or_o to_o revoke_v or_o suspend_v the_o excommunication_n denounce_v nor_o forbid_v he_o to_o examine_v cite_v and_o condemn_v or_o to_o have_v sergeant_n or_o minister_n for_o execution_n 5._o that_o neither_o the_o emperor_n king_n nor_o any_o prince_n whatsoever_o shall_v make_v edict_n or_o constitution_n in_o what_o manner_n soever_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n or_o person_n nor_o meddle_v with_o their_o person_n cause_n jurisdiction_n or_o tribunal_n no_o not_o in_o the_o inquisition_n but_o shall_v be_v bind_v to_o afford_v the_o seculat_v arm_n to_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n 6._o that_o the_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o eccleisastic_n though_o with_o mere_a and_o mix_a power_n shall_v not_o be_v disturb_v nor_o their_o subject_n draw_v to_o the_o secular_a tribunal_n in_o cause_n temporal_a 7._o that_o no_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n shall_v promise_v by_o brief_a or_o other_o writing_n or_o give_v hope_n to_o any_o to_o have_v a_o benefice_n within_o their_o dominion_n nor_o procure_v it_o from_o the_o prelate_n or_o chapter_n of_o regulars_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v obtain_v it_o by_o that_o mean_n shall_v be_v deprive_v and_o yncapeable_a 8._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o fruit_n of_o benefice_n vacant_a under_o pretence_n of_o custody_n or_o patronage_n or_o protection_n or_o of_o withstand_v discord_n nor_o shall_v place_v there_o either_o bailiff_n or_o vicar_n and_o the_o secular_o who_o shall_v accept_v such_o office_n and_o custody_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o the_o clerk_n suspend_v from_o their_o order_n and_o deprive_v of_o their_o benefice_n 9_o that_o the_o eccleisastic_n shall_v not_o be_v force_v to_o pay_v tax_n gabel_n eithe_n passage_n subsidy_n though_o in_o the_o name_n of_o gift_n or_o loan_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n good_n and_o of_o their_o patrimonial_a except_o in_o province_n where_o by_o ancient_a custom_n the_o eccleisastic_n themselves_o do_v assist_v in_o public_a parliament_n to_o impose_v subsidy_n both_o upon_o the_o laity_n and_o the_o clergy_n to_o make_v war_n against_o the_o infidel_n or_o for_o other_o urgent_a necessity_n 10._o that_o they_o shall_v not_o meddle_v with_o ecclesiastical_a good_n mooveable_a or_o immooveable_a vassallage_n ten_o or_o other_o right_n nor_o in_o the_o good_n of_o community_n or_o private_a man_n over_o which_o the_o church_n have_v any_o right_n nor_o shall_v rend_v out_o the_o depasture_v or_o herbage_n which_o grow_v in_o the_o land_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n 11_o that_o the_o letter_n sentence_n and_o citation_n of_o judge_n ecclesiastical_a especial_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n so_o soon_o as_o they_o be_v exhibit_v shall_v be_v intimate_v without_o exception_n publish_v and_o execute_v neither_o shall_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o require_v consent_n or_o licence_n which_o be_v call_v exequatur_fw-la or_o placet_fw-la or_o by_o any_o other_o name_n either_o for_o this_o or_o for_o take_v possession_n of_o benefice_n though_o upon_o pretence_n of_o withstand_v falsehood_n and_o violence_n except_o in_o fortress_n and_o those_o benefice_n in_o which_o prince_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o temporality_n and_o in_o case_n there_o shall_v be_v doubt_n of_o falsity_n or_o of_o some_o great_a scandal_n or_o tumult_n the_o bishop_n as_o the_o pope_n delegate_v shall_v constitute_v what_o he_o think_v needful_a 12._o that_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n shall_v not_o lodge_v their_o officer_n servant_n soldier_n horse_n or_o dog_n in_o the_o house_n or_o monastery_n of_o the_o eccleisastic_n nor_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o they_o for_o their_o food_n or_o passage_n 13._o and_o if_o any_o kingdom_n province_n or_o place_n shall_v pretend_v not_o to_o be_v bind_v to_o any_o of_o the_o thing_n aforesaid_a by_o virtue_n of_o privilege_n from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n which_o be_v in_o actual_a use_n the_o privilege_n shall_v be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o pope_n within_o a_o year_n after_o the_o end_n of_o the_o council_n which_o shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o he_o according_a to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o province_n and_o in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o exhibit_v before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o year_n they_o shall_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n and_o for_o the_o epilogue_n there_o be_v a_o ad_fw-la 〈…〉_o tion_n to_o all_o prinde_v to_o have_v in_o veneration_n the_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o clergy_n as_o peculiar_a to_o god_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v offend_v by_o other_o renew_v all_o the_o constitution_n of_o pope_n and_o holy_a canon_n in_o favour_n of_o ecclesiastical_a immunity_n command_v under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n that_o neither_o direct_o nor_o indirect_o under_o any_o pre●ence_n whatsoever_o any_o thing_n be_v constitute_v or_o execute_v against_o the_o person_n or_o good_n of_o the_o clergy_n or_o against_o their_o liberty_n any_o privilege_n or_o exemption_n though_o immemoriall_n notwithstanding_o and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o be_v first_o impart_v to_o the_o ambassador_n and_o by_o each_o of_o they_o send_v to_o their_o prince_n whereupon_o the_o french_a king_n give_v the_o order_n to_o his_o ambassador_n before_o mention_v and_o the_o emperor_n have_v see_v they_o write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n morone_n that_o he_o can_v not_o possible_o assent_v either_o as_o emperor_n emperor_n be_v distasteful_a to_o the_o emperor_n or_o as_o archduke_n that_o they_o shall_v speak_v in_o council_n of_o reform_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o prince_n nor_o to_o take_v from_o they_o authority_n to_o receive_v assistance_n and_o contribution_n from_o the_o clergy_n put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o all_o the_o former_a evil_n do_v arise_v from_o the_o oppression_n attempt_v by_o the_o eccleisastic_n against_o people_n and_o prince_n that_o they_o shall_v beware_v not_o to_o provoke_v they_o more_o and_o cause_n great_a inconvenience_n to_o arise_v after_o lorraine_n be_v depart_v the_o french_a ambassador_n put_v their_o protestation_n in_o order_n to_o make_v use_n of_o it_o if_o need_n be_v in_o the_o congregation_n of_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o of_o september_n one_o of_o the_o father_n make_v a_o long_a speech_n to_o show_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o all_o deformation_n proceed_v from_o prince_n that_o they_o have_v more_o need_n of_o reformation_n that_o the_o article_n be_v already_o in_o order_n and_o be_v now_o time_n to_o propose_v they_o that_o they_o may_v not_o vanish_v to_o nothing_o by_o delay_n after_o he_o have_v speak_v the_o ambassador_n de_fw-fr ferrieres_n make_v a_o long_a querulous_a ferrieres_n the_o speech_n of_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n oration_n or_o as_o the_o frenchman_n say_v a_o complaint_n the_o content_n whereof_o in_o the_o
judge_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o in_o the_o declaration_n they_o will_v say_v they_o mean_v the_o ecclesiastical_a only_o and_o they_o think_v it_o a_o usurpation_n of_o temporal_a authority_n to_o punish_v secular_o with_o infamy_n and_o incapacitie_n of_o dignity_n neither_o do_v they_o approve_v the_o constitution_n against_o conculinary_n any_o a_o year_n in_o excommunication_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v by_o the_o ecclesiastic_a because_o excommunication_n be_v the_o extreme_a last_o and_o great_a of_o ecclesiastical_a punishment_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o the_o father_n so_o that_o to_o pass_v that_o be_v to_o enter_v upon_o the_o temporal_a power_n and_o the_o rather_o because_o they_o give_v themselves_o power_n to_o course_n concubine_n out_o of_o their_o country_n deride_v the_o secular_a magistrate_n by_o implore_v their_o arm_n if_o there_o shall_v be_v need_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o affirm_v that_o ordinary_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o banishment_n may_v be_v make_v by_o the_o ecclesiastic_a himself_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n in_o the_o first_o article_n be_v note_v either_o of_o defect_n or_o of_o presumption_n for_o if_o the_o synod_n have_v authority_n to_o give_v law_n to_o the_o pope_n especial_o in_o thing_n so_o just_a it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o do_v it_o by_o way_n of_o narration_n or_o by_o obloquitie_n of_o word_n but_o if_o it_o ought_v to_o receive_v law_n from_o the_o pope_n it_o can_v be_v excuse_v for_o have_v pass_v its_o bound_n because_o it_o do_v sharp_o reprehend_v the_o former_a action_n of_o this_o and_o other_o pope_n though_o it_o do_v it_o oblique_o those_o that_o be_v see_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a story_n say_v that_o to_o draw_v all_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n to_o rome_n be_v a_o new_a policy_n to_o make_v the_o court_n great_a whereas_o all_o the_o example_n of_o antiquity_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o those_o time_n do_v show_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n though_o of_o deposition_n be_v handle_v in_o the_o country_n of_o each_o of_o they_o those_o who_o expect_v a_o provision_n against_o the_o abuse_n of_o pension_n see_v what_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o 13._o article_n do_v judge_v that_o the_o matter_n will_v pass_v to_o a_o great_a corruption_n as_o the_o event_n also_o have_v show_v the_o fourteen_o article_n be_v commend_v by_o every_o one_o because_o it_o do_v seem_v to_o take_v away_o the_o annates_fw-la and_o pay_v for_o bull_n dispatch_v at_o rome_n for_o collation_n of_o benefice_n but_o in_o progress_n of_o time_n it_o appear_v that_o those_o remain_v still_o and_o that_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o any_o cogitation_n either_o to_o remove_v or_o moderate_v they_o they_o remember_v that_o only_o the_o small_a abuse_n of_o other_o church_n be_v provide_v against_o the_o say_n be_v verify_v that_o only_a moat_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o eye_n and_o beam_n never_o every_o wise_a man_n think_v that_o this_o age_n be_v not_o worthy_a of_o that_o decree_n for_o the_o unity_n or_o at_o the_o most_o dualtie_n of_o benefice_n and_o that_o it_o will_v not_o be_v observe_v but_o in_o the_o poor_a sort_n only_o likewise_o for_o the_o examination_n in_o concurrence_n in_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n every_o one_o do_v prognosticate_v that_o it_o will_v be_v delude_v by_o some_o sinister_a interpretation_n and_o the_o prophecy_n be_v quick_o verify_v for_o in_o rome_n within_o a_o short_a time_n they_o begin_v to_o declare_v that_o concurrence_n be_v not_o to_o be_v observe_v in_o case_n of_o resignation_n but_o that_o he_o only_o be_v to_o be_v examine_v to_o who_o the_o resignation_n be_v make_v which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o abolish_v the_o decree_n for_o the_o most_o part_n because_o the_o better_a sort_n be_v exclude_v by_o resignation_n and_o he_o only_o prefer_v who_o please_v the_o resignant_fw-la and_o benefice_n be_v not_o vacant_a for_o any_o other_o cause_n but_o casual_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o cognition_n of_o cause_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n be_v quite_o destroy_v by_o the_o exception_n add_v that_o be_v except_o those_o which_o the_o pope_n will_v commit_v and_o call_v to_o himself_o for_o cause_n be_v never_o take_v from_o the_o lawful_a tribunal_n but_o by_o commission_n and_o avocation_n of_o pope_n and_o now_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o disease_n be_v preserve_v and_o the_o symptom_n only_o cure_v and_o howsoever_o the_o adjunct_n for_o urgent_a and_o reasonable_a cause_n do_v seem_v to_o moderate_v the_o matter_n well_o yet_o man_n of_o understanding_n know_v that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v for_o any_o arbitrary_a cause_n but_o in_o the_o last_o point_n which_o be_v in_o expectation_n so_o many_o month_n touch_v the_o essential_a liberty_n of_o the_o council_n see_v it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v not_o to_o change_v the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v nor_o to_o make_v any_o addition_n or_o diminution_n of_o the_o old_a constitution_n wise_a man_n say_v that_o concern_v this_o council_n it_o be_v a_o declaration_n contrary_n to_o the_o fact_n and_o publish_v when_o it_o do_v no_o good_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o more_o use_n of_o it_o then_o of_o a_o medicine_n apply_v to_o a_o dead_a body_n and_o some_o mock_v and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o the_o consolation_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n who_o wife_n have_v bring_v he_o child_n by_o other_o man_n and_o say_v she_o do_v it_o not_o to_o do_v he_o wrong_n but_o by_o a_o example_n give_v to_o posterity_n it_o do_v teach_v how_o all_o violence_n and_o exorbitancy_n may_v be_v use_v in_o council_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o end_n and_o all_o inconvenience_n do_v excuse_v by_o such_o a_o declaration_n yea_o justify_v and_o maintain_v for_o lawful_a at_o this_o time_n beside_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o session_n hold_v three_o other_o sort_n of_o distasteful_a news_n come_v into_o france_n the_o first_o be_v the_o pope_n answer_n about_o the_o hundred_o thousand_o crown_n the_o second_o the_o protestation_n make_v in_o council_n and_o the_o displeasure_n take_v at_o it_o in_o trent_n and_o rome_n the_o last_o be_v the_o sentence_n against_o the_o french_a bishop_n and_o the_o citation_n of_o the_o queen_n of_o navarre_n the_o frenchman_n have_v much_o consider_v on_o these_o thing_n resolve_v france_n the_o alienation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n in_o france_n not_o to_o treat_v any_o more_o with_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o favour_n in_o the_o alienation_n but_o to_o execute_v the_o king_n edict_n approve_v in_o parliament_n without_o any_o consent_n of_o his_o holiness_n this_o be_v sudden_o perform_v few_o buyer_n can_v be_v find_v as_o well_o because_o man_n do_v not_o easy_o resolve_v to_o lay_v down_o their_o money_n as_o because_o they_o be_v dissuade_v by_o the_o ecclesiastiques_n who_o tell_v they_o that_o the_o sale_n want_v the_o pope_n confirmation_n will_v not_o hereafter_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v good_a this_o be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o the_o king_n and_o no_o favour_n to_o the_o clergy_n for_o the_o sale_n be_v make_v but_o it_o be_v do_v at_o a_o low_a rate_n neither_o be_v there_o raise_v more_o than_o two_o million_o and_o half_o of_o franc_n small_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o thing_n alien_v see_v that_o it_o be_v make_v at_o twelve_o for_o a_o hundred_o whereas_o it_o have_v be_v a_o small_a price_n if_o they_o have_v give_v a_o hundred_o for_o four_o and_o it_o be_v worthy_a to_o be_v repeat_v here_o that_o among_o the_o thing_n sell_v one_o be_v the_o jurisdiction_n which_o the_o archbishop_n of_o lion_n have_v hold_v until_o that_o time_n over_o that_o city_n which_o be_v sell_v at_o the_o outcry_n for_o thirty_o thousand_o franc_n but_o the_o bishop_n complain_v so_o much_o that_o in_o supplement_n of_o the_o price_n he_o have_v give_v unto_o he_o 400._o crown_n yearly_o concern_v the_o protestation_n make_v in_o council_n the_o king_n write_v to_o his_o ambassador_n the_o nine_o of_o november_n that_o have_v see_v what_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n have_v write_v against_o their_o protestation_n and_o hear_v the_o relation_n make_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o orlience_n of_o all_o thing_n do_v in_o trent_n he_o be_v please_v with_o it_o as_o also_o with_o their_o retire_n to_o venice_n and_o command_v that_o de_fw-fr ferrieres_n shall_v not_o depart_v thence_o until_o he_o have_v new_a order_n which_o shall_v be_v when_o he_o be_v advise_v that_o the_o article_n be_v so_o reform_v that_o the_o right_n of_o the_o king_n and_o of_o the_o gallican_n church_n be_v not_o put_v in_o question_n and_o he_o write_v to_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n that_o himself_o and_o his_o counsel_n know_v that_o his_o ambassador_n have_v protest_v upon_o great_a and_o just_a
a_o nullity_n in_o the_o profession_n shall_v not_o be_v hear_v after_o five_o year_n from_o the_o first_o day_n thereof_o and_o shall_v allege_v the_o cause_n before_o the_o superior_a and_o ordinary_a before_o he_o depose_v the_o habit_n and_o none_o shall_v go_v to_o a_o more_o large_a religion_n nor_o have_v leave_v to_o wear_v the_o habit_n secret_o 20._o the_o abbat_n and_o head_n of_o the_o order_n shall_v visit_v the_o monastery_n subject_a unto_o they_o though_o but_o by_o commenda_fw-la and_o the_o commendatary_n shall_v be_v bind_v to_o execute_v the_o ordination_n and_o in_o those_o prior_n and_o superior_n who_o have_v spiritual_a government_n shall_v be_v create_v by_o the_o chapter_n or_o visiter_n of_o the_o order_n 21._o that_o the_o synod_n do_v desire_v to_o restore_v discipline_n in_o all_o monastery_n but_o see_v it_o be_v impossible_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o stiffnecked_a and_o difficult_a age_n yet_o they_o will_v not_o omit_v to_o use_v mean_n that_o hereafter_o provision_n may_v be_v make_v therein_o and_o do_v hope_n that_o his_o holiness_n as_o far_o as_o he_o shall_v see_v the_o time_n will_v comport_v will_v provide_v that_o a_o regular_a profess_a person_n shall_v be_v make_v governor_n of_o monastery_n commend_v and_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v vacant_a hereafter_o shall_v not_o be_v confer_v but_o upon_o regulars_n and_o those_o who_o have_v monastery_n in_o commenda_fw-la and_o be_v head_n of_o order_n if_o provision_n be_v not_o make_v within_o six_o month_n of_o a_o regular_a successor_n they_o shall_v make_v provision_n or_o quit_v the_o place_n otherwise_o the_o commendaes_n shall_v be_v vacant_a and_o in_o the_o provision_n of_o monastery_n the_o quality_n of_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v express_v by_o name_n otherwise_o the_o provision_n shall_v be_v account_v surreptitious_a 22._o that_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v that_o all_o regulars_n be_v subject_a to_o these_o decree_n notwithstanding_o any_o privilege_n though_o by_o foundation_n command_v bishop_n and_o abbat_n to_o execute_v they_o immediate_o and_o pray_v and_o command_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n to_o assist_v they_o as_o often_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v require_v the_o read_n of_o the_o general_a reformation_n do_v present_o follow_v which_o reformation_n the_o general_a reformation_n after_o a_o exhortation_n to_o bishop_n for_o exemplary_a life_n modesty_n in_o apparel_n and_o food_n and_o frugality_n do_v forbid_v 1._o that_o they_o shall_v give_v to_o their_o kindred_n or_o any_o of_o their_o family_n any_o part_n of_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n except_o they_o be_v poor_a extend_v the_o same_o to_o all_o benefice_a person_n secular_a or_o regular_a and_o also_o unto_o cardinal_n 2._o that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v in_o the_o first_o provincial_a council_n receive_v the_o decree_n of_o this_o synod_n of_o trent_n promise_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n anathematise_v the_o heresy_n condemn_v and_o every_o bishop_n promote_v hereafter_o shall_v do_v the_o same_o in_o the_o first_o synod_n and_o all_o benefice_a man_n who_o be_v to_o assist_v in_o the_o diocesan_n synod_n shall_v do_v the_o same_o therein_o those_o who_o have_v the_o care_n of_o university_n and_o study_v generab_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o make_v the_o decree_n to_o be_v receive_v in_o they_o and_o the_o doctor_n to_o teach_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o conformity_n of_o they_o and_o shall_v take_v a_o solemn_a oath_n herein_o every_o year_n and_o for_o those_o which_o be_v immediate_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n his_o holiness_n will_v have_v care_n that_o they_o be_v reform_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n by_o his_o delegate_n or_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v fit_a 3._o that_o howsoever_o the_o sword_n of_o excommunication_n be_v the_o sinew_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n profitable_a to_o keep_v man_n in_o obedience_n it_o be_v to_o be_v use_v with_o sobriety_n and_o circumspection_n have_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o it_o be_v more_o contemn_v then_o fear_v when_o it_o be_v denounce_v rash_o for_o a_o small_a cause_n therefore_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v denounce_v by_o any_o but_o by_o the_o bishop_n for_o thing_n lose_v or_o steal_v who_o shall_v not_o grant_v it_o at_o the_o persuasion_n of_o any_o secular_a authority_n whatsoever_o though_o a_o magistrate_n and_o in_o judicial_a cause_n in_o which_o a_o real_a or_o personal_a execution_n may_v be_v make_v they_o shall_v abstain_v from_o censure_n and_o in_o civil_a belong_v in_o what_o manner_n soever_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n they_o may_v use_v pecuniary_a punishment_n or_o proceed_v by_o distrain_v of_o good_n or_o imprisonment_n of_o the_o party_n themselves_o with_o their_o executor_n or_o other_o and_o in_o case_n they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o execute_v real_o or_o personal_o they_o may_v proceed_v to_o excommunication_n and_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v observe_v in_o criminal_a cause_n the_o secular_a magistrate_n shall_v not_o prohibit_v the_o ecclesiastical_a to_o excommunicate_v or_o revoke_v excommunication_n upon_o pretence_n that_o the_o decree_n have_v not_o be_v observe_v the_o person_n excommunicate_v shall_v not_o only_o not_o be_v receive_v to_o participate_v with_o the_o faithful_a but_o if_o he_o persevere_v in_o the_o censure_n he_o may_v be_v proceed_v against_o as_o suspect_v of_o heresy_n 4._o it_o do_v give_v power_n to_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o diocesan_n synod_n and_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o order_n in_o the_o general_a chapter_n to_o ordain_v for_o their_o church_n that_o which_o shall_v be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o benefit_n of_o they_o when_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o obligation_n to_o celebrate_v so_o many_o mass_n by_o testamentary_a legacy_n that_o they_o can_v be_v perform_v or_o that_o the_o alm_n be_v so_o small_a that_o none_o can_v be_v find_v to_o perform_v the_o charge_n but_o with_o condition_n that_o memory_n be_v always_o make_v of_o those_o party_n decease_v who_o have_v leave_v the_o legacy_n 5._o that_o in_o the_o collation_n or_o any_o other_o disposition_n of_o benefice_n no_o derogation_n be_v make_v to_o the_o quality_n condition_n and_o charge_v require_v or_o impose_v in_o the_o erection_n or_o foundation_n or_o by_o any_o other_o constitution_n otherwise_o the_o provision_n shall_v be_v account_v surreptitious_a 6._o when_o the_o bishop_n not_o in_o time_n of_o visitation_n do_v proceed_v against_o the_o canon_n the_o chapter_n shall_v elect_v two_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o every_o year_n by_o who_o council_n and_o consent_n the_o bishop_n shall_v proceed_v in_o all_o the_o act_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o both_o shall_v be_v as_o one_o and_o in_o case_n they_o both_o dissent_n from_o the_o bishop_n a_o three_o shall_v be_v elect_v by_o they_o who_o shall_v determine_v the_o controversy_n and_o if_o they_o can_v agree_v the_o three_o man_n shall_v be_v elect_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n but_o in_o cause_n of_o concubinary_n or_o other_o more_o heinous_a the_o bishop_n may_v receive_v information_n alone_o &_o proceed_v to_o retention_n and_o for_o the_o residue_n shall_v observe_v what_o be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n shall_v have_v the_o first_o seat_n in_o the_o choir_n chapter_n or_o other_o public_a place_n and_o shall_v choose_v his_o place_n the_o bishop_n shall_v preside_v in_o the_o chapter_n except_o in_o case_n belong_v to_o he_o or_o he_o which_o authority_n shall_v not_o be_v communicate_v to_o his_o vicar_n and_o those_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o chapter_n shall_v in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a be_v all_o subject_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o where_o bishop_n have_v more_o jurisdiction_n than_o the_o aforesaid_a the_o decree_n shall_v not_o have_v place_n 7._o hereafter_o no_o regress_n or_o access_n to_o any_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n shall_v be_v grant_v and_o those_o which_o be_v grant_v already_o shall_v neither_o be_v extend_v nor_o transfer_v and_o herein_o the_o cardinal_n shall_v be_v comprehend_v also_o coadjutor_n with_o future_a succession_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v in_o any_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n whatsoever_o and_o if_o in_o cathedral_n church_n or_o monastery_n it_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o do_v it_o the_o cause_n shall_v first_o be_v know_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o due_a quality_n shall_v concur_v 8._o all_o benefice_a man_n shall_v use_v as_o much_o hospitality_n as_o their_o revenue_n will_v give_v they_o leave_v and_o it_o do_v command_v those_o who_o have_v the_o government_n of_o hospital_n under_o what_o title_n soever_o to_o exercise_v it_o as_o they_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o revenue_n depute_v hereunto_o and_o if_o person_n of_o that_o sort_n as_o the_o institution_n do_v require_v be_v not_o find_v in_o the_o place_n the_o revenue_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o a_o pious_a use_n as_o near_o as_o can_v be_v to_o that_o as_o shall_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o bishop_n with_o two_o of_o the_o chapter_n and_o those_o who_o will_v not_o give_v
matter_n of_o faith_n only_o they_o say_v that_o to_o have_v speak_v one_o word_n incident_o in_o handle_v the_o mass_n that_o it_o do_v assist_v the_o dead_a which_o germany_n the_o censure_n of_o the_o council_n in_o germany_n also_o may_v receive_v diverse_a sense_n and_o in_o the_o decree_n of_o purgatory_n to_o allege_v it_o as_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o article_n be_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v use_v in_o counsel_n especial_o in_o this_o where_o the_o matter_n be_v mince_v and_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n make_v of_o every_o question_n which_o can_v be_v move_v in_o any_o matter_n and_o to_o commend_v bishop_n to_o teach_v the_o sound_a doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n without_o declare_v what_o it_o be_v do_v show_v that_o the_o father_n have_v great_a haste_n to_o depart_v from_o trent_n but_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o saint_n the_o haste_n be_v great_a condemn_v in_o one_o breath_n and_o in_o one_o period_n eleven_o article_n not_o declare_v what_o condemnation_n it_o be_v or_o whether_o they_o be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n or_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n and_o after_o a_o long_a discourse_n of_o image_n anathematise_v those_o that_o speak_v against_o the_o decree_n without_o let_v they_o know_v which_o it_o do_v comprehend_v under_o the_o anathema_n whether_o the_o immediate_o precedent_n concern_v image_n or_o all_o the_o other_o above_o write_v but_o of_o judulgence_n they_o speak_v more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o these_o give_v occasion_n of_o the_o present_a division_n among_o christian_n that_o the_o council_n be_v principal_o assemble_v for_o these_o that_o in_o that_o matter_n there_o be_v no_o part_n which_o be_v not_o controverse_v and_o uncertain_a even_o among_o the_o schoolman_n themselves_o and_o yet_o the_o synod_n have_v pass_v they_o over_o without_o clear_n any_o doubt_n or_o decide_v any_o controversy_n and_o concern_v the_o remedy_n of_o abuse_n they_o speak_v in_o such_o ambiguous_a term_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v what_o they_o do_v approve_v or_o disapprove_v say_v they_o do_v desire_v a_o moderation_n according_a to_o the_o old_a custom_n approve_v in_o the_o church_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a and_o can_v be_v conceal_v that_o in_o no_o christian_a nation_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n either_o in_o ancient_a or_o modern_a time_n there_o never_o be_v any_o use_n of_o indulgence_n of_o any_o kind_n whatsoever_o and_o in_o the_o west_n if_o by_o ancient_a custom_n they_o mean_v that_o which_o be_v observe_v before_o vrban_n the_o second_o in_o the_o year_n 1095._o no_o proof_n can_v be_v bring_v of_o the_o use_n of_o indulgence_n if_o from_o that_o time_n until_o the_o year_n 1300._o it_o will_v appear_v that_o the_o use_n of_o they_o have_v be_v very_o spare_v and_o only_o to_o free_a man_n from_o punishment_n impose_v by_o the_o confessor_n afterward_o from_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n the_o abuse_n begin_v which_o do_v increase_v very_o much_o until_o the_o time_n of_o leo_n the_o ten_o so_o that_o the_o council_n desire_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o old_a custom_n approve_v in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v in_o what_o church_n and_o in_o what_o time_n but_o those_o word_n that_o the_o eclesiasticall_a discipline_n be_v weaken_v by_o too_o much_o facility_n in_o grant_v indulgence_n be_v a_o plain_a confession_n that_o they_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o conscience_n not_o do_v free_a man_n from_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o fight_n of_o god_n but_o touch_v the_o external_a only_o that_o be_v the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n for_o the_o difference_n of_o meat_n and_o fast_n they_o say_v that_o to_o command_v they_o be_v good_a but_o that_o be_v not_o decide_v of_o which_o the_o world_n complain_v that_o be_v that_o they_o do_v bind_v the_o conscience_n therefore_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n hold_v none_o esteem_v of_o this_o council_n only_o some_o few_o minister_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n publish_v a_o protestation_n of_o which_o but_o little_a account_n be_v make_v the_o catholic_n do_v not_o think_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o indulgence_n desire_v only_o to_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup_n marriage_n of_o priest_n and_o relaxation_n in_o the_o multitude_n of_o precept_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la positivo_fw-la concern_v fast_n feast_n and_o such_o other_o thing_n for_o who_o satisfaction_n the_o emperor_n and_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n make_v instance_n cup._n the_o emperor_n write_v to_o the_o pope_n about_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o cup._n to_o the_o pope_n the_o emperor_n write_v letter_n to_o he_o date_v the_o fourteen_o of_o february_n say_v that_o during_o the_o council_n he_o have_v labour_v to_o obtain_v the_o grant_n of_o the_o cup_n not_o for_o any_o private_a interest_n or_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n which_o he_o have_v but_o because_o he_o do_v believe_v and_o do_v still_o that_o the_o grant_n be_v necessary_a to_o bring_v back_o to_o the_o church_n those_o that_o wander_v that_o he_o do_v then_o tolerate_v the_o impediment_n interpose_v to_o treat_v there_o of_o with_o the_o principal_a prelate_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o empire_n with_o who_o have_v confer_v whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a to_o renew_v the_o same_o request_n they_o think_v fit_a he_o shall_v move_v his_o holiness_n therein_o therefore_o call_v to_o mind_n what_o the_o cardinal_n morone_n and_o lorraine_n have_v cause_v to_o be_v tell_v he_o which_o be_v confirm_v also_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o liesina_n his_o nuncio_n he_o will_v no_o long_o defer_v to_o demand_v the_o grace_n of_o he_o without_o repeat_v any_o more_o the_o weighty_a cause_n that_o do_v constrain_v he_o desire_v he_o to_o assist_v the_o german_a nation_n to_o which_o all_o wise_a catholic_n do_v think_v that_o the_o grant_n will_v be_v very_o beneficial_a add_v that_o to_o preserve_v the_o remainder_n of_o religion_n in_o germany_n and_o extirpate_v heresy_n it_o will_v be_v of_o great_a moment_n to_o grant_v that_o priest_n who_o be_v separate_v because_o they_o be_v marry_v may_v be_v reconcile_v and_o retain_v their_o wife_n and_o that_o hereafter_o where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a number_n of_o priest_n marry_a man_n of_o good_a life_n and_o fame_n may_v be_v admit_v to_o the_o priesthood_n for_o this_o he_o pray_v he_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n his_o son_n in_o law_n assure_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v do_v a_o thing_n worthy_a of_o his_o piety_n and_o most_o acceptable_a the_o letter_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n do_v contain_v that_o have_v send_v often_o bavaria_n and_o so_o do_v the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n to_o his_o holiness_n to_o show_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o germany_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o do_v hope_n he_o shall_v not_o long_o desire_v the_o medicine_n which_o see_v it_o be_v not_o apply_v until_o then_o he_o together_o with_o the_o emperor_n and_o ecclesiastical_a elector_n do_v pray_v he_o to_o grant_v power_n to_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o salzburg_n to_o give_v leave_n to_o catholic_a priest_n to_o administer_v the_o cup_n to_o those_o who_o have_v confess_v and_o be_v penitent_a and_o do_v believe_v the_o other_o article_n of_o religion_n which_o grant_n will_v give_v satisfaction_n to_o his_o subject_n who_o remain_v in_o his_o state_n &_o to_o those_o also_o who_o go_v forth_o of_o his_o dominion_n to_o seek_v those_o who_o will_v minister_v it_o unto_o they_o that_o himself_o will_v always_o be_v content_a with_o one_o kind_n nor_o will_v force_v any_o to_o use_v the_o cup_n who_o as_o himself_o will_v be_v content_a with_o the_o bread_n only_o that_o for_o these_o he_o demand_v nothing_o but_o that_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o not_o inconvenient_a for_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v pity_n upon_o the_o other_o also_o likewise_o he_o pray_v his_o holiness_n that_o he_o will_v grant_v for_o some_o time_n at_o the_o least_o that_o marry_v priest_n may_v be_v reconcile_v to_o the_o church_n keep_v their_o wife_n and_o marry_v man_n ordain_v also_o to_o these_o letter_n be_v add_v a_o remonstrance_n or_o consideration_n compose_v by_o the_o divine_n of_o germany_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a and_o old_a testament_n do_v permit_v priest_n to_o grant_n a_o remonstrance_n concern_v the_o same_o grant_n have_v wife_n because_o the_o apostle_n some_o few_o except_v be_v marry_v neither_o be_v it_o find_v that_o christ_n after_o their_o vocation_n do_v separate_v their_o wife_n from_o they_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o well_o oriental_a as_o occidental_a the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v free_a until_o the_o time_n of_o calistus_n the_o pope_n that_o the_o civil_a law_n do_v not_o condemn_v the_o marriage_n of_o clerk_n that_o it_o be_v
sint_fw-la vel_fw-la minus_fw-la boni_fw-la quam_fw-la caeteri_fw-la mortales_fw-la esse_fw-la solent_fw-la english_v thus_o no_o man_n expect_v any_o sanctity_n in_o pope_n now_o a_o day_n they_o be_v think_v to_o be_v excellent_a pope_n if_o they_o have_v never_o so_o little_a honesty_n or_o be_v not_o so_o wicked_a as_o other_o man_n use_v to_o be_v last_o of_o all_o thou_o may_v read_v a_o epistle_n write_v by_o that_o famous_a prelate_n bishop_n jewel_n as_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o friend_n of_o he_o who_o live_v near_o the_o place_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o unlawful_a assembly_n or_o conventicle_n at_o trent_n in_o it_o thou_o may_v find_v reason_n enough_o why_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v neither_o send_v prelate_n to_o it_o nor_o receive_v afterward_o the_o decree_n and_o constitution_n of_o it_o as_o likewise_o the_o church_n of_o france_n refuse_v to_o do_v though_o their_o bishop_n be_v present_a in_o it_o when_o thou_o have_v read_v these_o thing_n consider_v well_o of_o they_o and_o the_o lord_n give_v thou_o a_o true_a understanding_n in_o all_o thing_n gregory_n gregory_n to_o the_o emperor_n mauricius_fw-la concern_v john_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n who_o have_v assume_v the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n chap._n 76._o ovrmost_a religious_a lord_n who_o god_n have_v place_v over_o we_o 32._o ep._n 32._o among_o other_o weighty_a care_n belong_v to_o the_o empire_n do_v labour_n by_o the_o just_a rule_n of_o holy_a writ_n to_o keep_v the_o clergy_n in_o peace_n and_o charity_n he_o true_o and_o pious_o consider_v that_o no_o man_n can_v well_o govern_v matter_n terrene_a except_o he_o can_v manage_v well_o thing_n divine_a also_o and_o that_o the_o commonwealth_n peace_n and_o quiet_a depend_v upon_o the_o tranquillity_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a for_o most_o gracious_a sovereign_n what_o humane_a power_n or_o strength_n will_v presume_v to_o lift_v up_o irreligious_a hand_n against_o your_o most_o christian_n majesty_n if_o the_o clergy_n be_v at_o unity_n among_o themselves_o will_v serious_o pray_v unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o preserve_v you_o who_o have_v so_o well_o deserve_v of_o we_o or_o what_o nation_n so_o barbarous_a as_o will_v exercise_v such_o cruelty_n against_o the_o faithful_a except_o the_o life_n of_o we_o who_o be_v call_v priest_n but_o indeed_o be_v not_o be_v most_o deprave_a and_o wicked_a but_o while_o we_o leave_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v not_o unto_o we_o and_o embrace_v those_o thing_n for_o which_o we_o be_v not_o fit_v we_o raise_v the_o barbarian_n up_o against_o we_o and_o our_o offence_n do_v sharpen_v the_o sword_n of_o our_o enemy_n by_o which_o mean_v the_o commonwealth_n be_v weaken_v for_o what_o can_v we_o say_v for_o ourselves_o if_o the_o people_n of_o god_n over_o who_o we_o be_v though_o unworthy_o place_v be_v oppress_v by_o the_o multitude_n of_o our_o offence_n if_o our_o example_n destroy_v that_o which_o our_o preach_n build_v and_o our_o work_n give_v as_o it_o be_v the_o lie_n to_o our_o doctrine_n our_o bone_n be_v wear_v with_o fast_v but_o our_o mind_n be_v puff_v up_o our_o body_n be_v cover_v with_o poor_a clothing_n but_o in_o our_o heart_n we_o be_v as_o brave_a as_o may_v be_v we_o lie_v grovel_v in_o the_o ash_n but_o aim_n at_o matter_n exceed_v high_a we_o be_v teacher_n of_o humility_n but_o pattern_n of_o pride_n hide_v the_o tooth_n of_o wolf_n under_o a_o sheep_n countenance_n the_o end_n of_o all_o be_v to_o make_v a_o show_n to_o man_n though_o god_n know_v the_o truth_n therefore_o our_o most_o pious_a sovereign_n have_v be_v most_o prudent_o careful_a to_o set_v the_o church_n at_o unity_n that_o he_o may_v the_o better_o compose_v the_o tumult_n of_o war_n and_o to_o join_v their_o heart_n together_o this_o very_o be_v my_o desire_n and_o do_v yield_v for_o my_o part_n due_a obedience_n to_o your_o sovereign_a command_n howsoever_o in_o regard_n it_o be_v not_o my_o cause_n but_o god_n and_o for_o that_o not_o i_o only_o but_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v trouble_v because_o religious_a law_n venerable_a synod_n and_o the_o very_a precept_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v disobey_v by_o the_o invention_n of_o a_o proud_a and_o pompous_a speech_n my_o desire_n be_v that_o our_o most_o religious_a sovereign_n will_v lance_v this_o sore_a and_o will_v tie_v the_o party_n affect_v with_o the_o cord_n of_o his_o imperial_a authority_n in_o case_n he_o shall_v make_v his_o resistance_n by_o bind_v of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o commonwealth_n be_v ease_v and_o by_o the_o pare_n away_o of_o such_o excreman_n 〈…〉_o as_o these_o the_o empire_n be_v enlarge_v all_o man_n that_o have_v read_v the_o gospel_n do_v know_v that_o even_o by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n prince_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n for_o to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v 21._o say_v john_n 21._o peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n 22._o sheep_n luke_n 22._o behold_v satan_n have_v desire_v to_o winnow_v thou_o as_o wheat_n and_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v and_o thou_o be_v at_o the_o last_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n to_o he_o it_o be_v say_v 16._o say_v matt._n 16._o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o and_o to_o thou_o i_o will_v give_v the_o key_n of_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v also_o in_o heaven_n behold_v he_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v be_v give_v unto_o he_o the_o care_n and_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o call_v universal_a apostle_n howbeit_o this_o most_o holy_a man_n john_n my_o fellow_n priest_n labour_v to_o be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n i_o be_o enforce_v to_o cry_v out_o and_o say_v oh_o corruption_n of_o time_n and_o manner_n behold_v the_o barbarian_n be_v become_v lord_n of_o all_o europe_n city_n be_v destroy_v castle_n be_v beat_v down_o province_n depopulate_v there_o be_v no_o husbandman_n to_o till_o the_o ground_n idolater_n do_v rage_n and_o domineer_v over_o christian_n and_o yet_o priest_n who_o ought_v to_o lie_v weep_v upon_o the_o pavement_n and_o in_o ash_n desire_v name_n of_o vanity_n and_o do_v glory_n in_o new_a and_o profane_a title_n do_v i_o most_o religious_a sovereign_n plead_v herein_o my_o own_o cause_n do_v i_o vindicate_v a_o wrong_n do_v to_o myself_o and_o not_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o god_n almighty_n and_o of_o the_o church_n universal_a who_o be_v he_o who_o presume_v to_o usurp_v this_o new_a name_n against_o both_o the_o law_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o the_o canon_n i_o will_v to_o god_n there_o may_v be_v one_o call_v universal_a without_o wrong_v of_o other_o we_o know_v that_o many_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n have_v be_v not_o only_a heretic_n but_o even_o the_o chief_a leader_n of_o they_o out_o of_o this_o school_n proceed_v nestorius_n who_o think_v it_o not_o to_o be_v possible_a that_o god_n shall_v be_v make_v man_n do_v believe_v that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man_n be_v two_o person_n and_o go_v as_o far_o in_o infidelity_n as_o the_o jew_n themselves_o thence_o come_v macedonius_n who_o deny_v the_o holy_a ghost_n consubstantial_a to_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n to_o be_v god_n if_o then_o every_o one_o in_o that_o church_n do_v assume_v that_o name_n by_o which_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o head_n of_o all_o good_a man_n the_o catholic_a church_n which_o god_n forbid_v must_v needs_o be_v overthrow_v when_o he_o fall_v who_o be_v call_v universal_a but_o let_v this_o blasphemous_a name_n be_v far_o from_o christian_n by_o which_o all_o honour_n be_v take_v from_o all_o other_o priest_n while_o it_o be_v foolish_o arrogate_a by_o one_o it_o be_v offer_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o reverend_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o honour_n of_o s._n peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o none_o of_o they_o either_o assume_v or_o consent_v to_o use_v it_o lest_o while_o this_o privilege_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o one_o all_o other_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o that_o honour_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o why_o shall_v we_o refuse_v this_o name_n when_o it_o be_v offer_v and_o another_o shall_v assume_v it_o without_o any_o offer_n at_o all_o this_o man_n contemn_v obedience_n to_o the_o canon_n be_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v humble_v
create_v emperor_n and_o they_o make_v protestation_n of_o the_o injury_n but_o many_o of_o the_o protestant_n keep_v themselves_o on_o his_o side_n because_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v any_o other_o respect_v then_o of_o state_n and_o the_o archbishop_n of_o collen_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v emperor_n the_o archb_a 〈…〉_o of_o collen_n sentence_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v obey_v by_o his_o people_n and_o follow_v the_o emperor_n before_o who_o though_o he_o be_v sentence_v and_o deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n continue_v in_o government_n and_o be_v obey_v by_o his_o people_n follow_v the_o emperor_n who_o also_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o election_n and_o archbishop_n and_o write_v unto_o he_o that_o none_o of_o his_o subject_n may_v bear_v arm_n against_o he_o wherein_o the_o archbishop_n employ_v his_o endeavour_n sincere_o the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n see_v this_o they_o publish_v a_o manifest_a the_o eleven_o of_o july_n declare_v that_o the_o war_n be_v undertake_v for_o religion_n and_o that_o the_o emperor_n cover_v his_o meaning_n with_o a_o cloak_n of_o take_v revenge_n against_o some_o few_o for_o rebellion_n to_o disjoin_v the_o confederate_n and_o oppress_v they_o by_o degree_n they_o allege_v that_o ferdinand_n and_o granuell_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o his_o majesty_n have_v say_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o war_n be_v the_o emperor_n the_o elector_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o landgrave_n of_o have_v 〈…〉_o a_o publish_v a_o manifest_a against_o the_o emperor_n contempt_n of_o the_o council_n they_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o pope_n sentence_n against_o the_o elector_n of_o collen_n they_o add_v that_o the_o spanish_a prelate_n will_v not_o have_v contribute_v so_o much_o of_o their_o proper_a revenue_n for_o any_o other_o cause_n they_o show_v that_o in_o other_o thing_n the_o emperor_n can_v pretend_v nothing_o against_o they_o but_o while_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n prepare_v against_o the_o lutheran_n some_o thing_n beside_o anathematism_n the_o day_n after_o the_o session_n the_o eighteen_o of_o june_n a_o congregation_n be_v make_v where_o after_o the_o accustom_a prayer_n and_o invocation_n place_n justification_n be_v to_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o next_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o secretary_n read_v in_o the_o legate_n name_n a_o writing_n frame_v by_o the_o principal_a theologue_n in_o which_o it_o be_v propose_v that_o have_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n concern_v original_a sin_n the_o order_n of_o the_o thing_n to_o be_v handle_v do_v require_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o modern_n in_o the_o point_n of_o divinegrace_n which_o be_v the_o medicine_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v examine_v and_o that_o the_o rather_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o follow_v the_o order_n because_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o augustane_n confession_n all_o which_o the_o council_n mean_v to_o condemn_v and_o the_o father_n and_o divine_n be_v entreat_v to_o have_v recourse_n by_o prayer_n unto_o the_o divine_a assistance_n and_o to_o be_v assiduous_a and_o exact_v in_o their_o study_n because_o all_o the_o error_n of_o martin_n be_v resolve_v into_o that_o point_n for_o have_v undertake_v from_o the_o beginning_n to_o oppugn_v the_o indulgence_n he_o see_v he_o can_v not_o obtain_v his_o purpose_n except_o he_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o repentance_n in_o defect_n whereof_o indulgence_n do_v succeed_v and_o justification_n by_o faith_n only_o a_o thing_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o seem_v to_o he_o a_o good_a mean_n to_o effect_v this_o from_o whence_o he_o have_v collect_v not_o only_o that_o good_a work_n be_v not_o necessary_a but_o also_o that_o a_o dissolute_a liberty_n in_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o church_n will_v serve_v the_o turn_n have_v deny_v efficiency_n in_o the_o sacrament_n authority_n of_o priest_n purgatory_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o all_o other_o remedy_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n therefore_o by_o a_o contrary_a way_n he_o that_o will_v establish_v the_o body_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n must_v overthrow_v this_o heresy_n of_o justice_n by_o faith_n only_o and_o condemn_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o that_o enemy_n of_o good_a work_n when_o the_o writing_n be_v read_v the_o emperor_n prelate_n say_v that_o the_o more_o principal_a and_o important_a the_o point_n propose_v be_v it_o shall_v be_v the_o more_o mature_o and_o opportune_o handle_v that_o the_o send_n of_o the_o cardinal_n madruccio_n to_o the_o pope_n show_v that_o some_o business_n be_v on_o foot_n the_o which_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o disturb_v but_o in_o the_o mean_a space_n to_o handle_v some_o thing_n of_o the_o reformation_n the_o papalin_n do_v on_o the_o other_o side_n inculcate_v that_o it_o be_v no_o honour_n to_o interrupt_v the_o order_n begin_v to_o handle_v together_o in_o every_o session_n doctrine_n and_o reformation_n and_o that_o after_o original_a sin_n no_o other_o matter_n can_v be_v handle_v the_o legate_n have_v hear_v all_o their_o opinion_n conclude_v that_o to_o discuss_v the_o point_n and_o prepare_v they_o be_v not_o to_o define_v they_o but_o that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v determine_v without_o preparation_n before_o which_o they_o say_v only_o to_o gain_v time_n and_o after_o to_o put_v themselves_o in_o order_n to_o execute_v what_o shall_v be_v resolve_v at_o rome_n between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o cardinal_n in_o the_o emperor_n name_n that_o to_o digest_v that_o matter_n be_v not_o to_o hinder_v the_o reformation_n because_o in_o that_o the_o divine_n will_v be_v employ_v and_o in_o this_o the_o father_n and_o canonist_n with_o this_o resolution_n it_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o article_n to_o be_v discuss_v and_o censure_v shall_v be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o luther_n out_o of_o the_o colloquy_n apology_n and_o out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o lutheran_n and_o father_n and_o three_o father_n and_o as_o many_o divine_n be_v depute_a to_o set_v down_o what_o shall_v be_v discuss_v and_o to_o frame_v the_o article_n the_o next_o congregation_n be_v hold_v to_o order_v the_o matter_n of_o reformation_n residency_n the_o discourse_n of_o the_o card._n monte_n concern_v residency_n where_o the_o cardinal_n of_o monte_n say_v that_o the_o world_n have_v complain_v long_o since_o of_o the_o absence_n of_o prelate_n and_o pastoure_n daily_o demand_v residence_n that_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o other_o curate_n from_o their_o church_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o the_o mischief_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o church_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o a_o ship_n the_o sink_v whereof_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o absent_a pilot_n that_o shall_v govern_v it_o if_o he_o be_v present_a he_o show_v to_o they_o that_o heresy_n ignorance_n and_o dissolution_n do_v reign_n in_o the_o people_n and_o bad_a manner_n and_o vice_n in_o the_o clergy_n because_o the_o pastor_n be_v absent_a from_o the_o flock_n no_o man_n have_v care_n to_o instruct_v those_o or_o correct_v these_o by_o the_o prelate_n absence_n it_o be_v come_v to_o pass_v that_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a minister_n have_v be_v promote_v and_o person_n assume_v to_o bishopricke_n that_o be_v more_o fit_a for_o any_o other_o charge_n for_o in_o regard_n they_o need_v not_o execute_v their_o duty_n in_o person_n no_o fitness_n be_v necessary_a so_o he_o conclude_v that_o to_o establish_v the_o point_n of_o residency_n be_v a_o general_a remedy_n for_o all_o the_o malady_n of_o the_o church_n which_o also_o have_v sometime_o be_v use_v by_o counsel_n and_o pope_n but_o either_o for_o that_o the_o transgression_n be_v then_o but_o few_o or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n it_o be_v not_o apply_v with_o such_o strong_a and_o strait_a bond_n as_o be_v necessary_a now_o that_o the_o disease_n be_v come_v to_o the_o height_n that_o be_v with_o a_o more_o severe_a commandment_n with_o more_o grievous_a and_o fearful_a punishment_n and_o by_o mean_n more_o easy_a to_o be_v execute_v this_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o first_o voice_n of_o the_o prelate_n but_o when_o jacomo_n nonresidency_n the_o bishop_n of_o vesone_n speak_v in_o favour_n of_o nonresidency_n cortesi_n a_o florentin_n bishop_n of_o vesone_n be_v to_o speak_v commend_v what_o have_v be_v say_v by_o other_o he_o add_v that_o as_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o prelate_n and_o curate_n in_o time_n past_a be_v the_o cause_n of_o maintain_v purity_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o people_n and_o discipline_n in_o the_o clergy_n so_o he_o can_v clear_o show_v that_o their_o absence_n in_o these_o latter_a time_n have_v not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o contrary_a subversion_n and_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o not_o reside_v have_v be_v bring_v in_o because_o residence_n have_v be_v whole_o unprofitable_a for_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o then_o preserve_v sound_a doctrine_n among_o
the_o people_n when_o the_o friar_n and_o pardoner_n have_v authority_n to_o preach_v against_o their_o will_n it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o innovation_n in_o germany_n spring_v from_o the_o sermon_n of_o friar_n john_n techel_n and_o of_o friar_n martin_n luther_n among_o the_o swiss_n from_o the_o sermon_n of_o friar_n samson_n of_o milan_n and_o the_o reside_a bishop_n be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o but_o fight_v with_o disadvantage_n against_o these_o who_o be_v arm_v with_o privilege_n the_o bishop_n be_v not_o able_a to_o make_v the_o clergy_n live_v honest_o for_o that_o beside_o the_o general_a exemption_n of_o all_o the_o regulars_n every_o chapter_n have_v one_o and_o there_o be_v few_o particular_a priest_n that_o want_v it_o the_o bishop_n can_v provide_v that_o fit_a man_n be_v promote_v to_o that_o charge_n for_o the_o licence_n to_o promote_v and_o the_o faculty_n which_o the_o titular_a bishop_n enjoy_v who_o suffer_v he_o not_o to_o use_v so_o much_o as_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o pontifical_o and_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o one_o word_n that_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o reside_v because_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o do_v or_o rather_o that_o they_o may_v not_o make_v great_a inconvenience_n to_o arise_v which_o will_v happen_v by_o their_o concurrence_n and_o contention_n with_o privilege_a man_n he_o conclude_v that_o as_o he_o think_v it_o fit_a to_o restore_v residency_n so_o they_o ought_v to_o treat_v how_o to_o restore_v the_o episcopal_a authority_n the_o bishop_n that_o speak_v after_o this_o prelate_n follow_v his_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o command_v residency_n and_o to_o remove_v the_o exemption_n which_o do_v hinder_v it_o and_o the_o legate_n be_v enforce_v to_o consent_v that_o both_o shall_v be_v consider_v of_o and_o that_o every_o one_o speak_v his_o opinion_n of_o they_o and_o that_o some_o father_n shall_v be_v depute_v to_o frame_v the_o decree_n that_o it_o may_v be_v examine_v the_o deputy_n for_o collect_v the_o article_n of_o justification_n have_v receive_v proceed_v the_o deputy_n for_o collect_v the_o article_n dissent_v about_o the_o manner_n of_o proceed_v the_o extract_n of_o the_o proposition_n note_v by_o every_o one_o to_o be_v censure_v be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o opinion_n one_o part_n desire_v that_o four_o or_o six_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o new_a doctrine_n may_v be_v choose_v and_o condemn_v as_o be_v do_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o original_a sin_n allege_v that_o it_o be_v fit_a to_o follow_v the_o stile_n begin_v and_o the_o example_n of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n which_o have_v declare_v the_o principal_a article_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n never_o descend_v to_o particular_a proposition_n but_o condemn_v the_o book_n of_o the_o heretic_n in_o that_o universal_a they_o comprehend_v all_o the_o pernicious_a doctrine_n and_o so_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o council_n require_v but_o the_o other_o part_n aim_v to_o put_v under_o censure_n all_o the_o proposition_n which_o may_v receive_v a_o bad_a construction_n that_o those_o may_v be_v condemn_v which_o in_o reason_n do_v deserve_v it_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n to_o discern_v entire_o the_o wholesome_a grass_n from_o the_o hurtful_a and_o not_o to_o suffer_v the_o flock_n to_o taste_v of_o this_o and_o if_o the_o example_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n ought_v to_o be_v imitate_v they_o shall_v imitate_v that_o of_o ephesus_n which_o make_v so_o many_o and_o so_o famous_a anathematism_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o nestorius_n that_o they_o do_v contain_v whatsoever_o the_o heretic_n have_v say_v and_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n which_o descend_v to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o all_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o sect_n the_o first_o opinion_n do_v undoubted_o propose_v a_o more_o easy_a way_n and_o will_v justification_n 25._o article_n concern_v justification_n have_v please_v whosoever_o desire_v a_o speedy_a end_n of_o the_o council_n and_o leave_v a_o chink_n open_a for_o agreement_n which_o future_a time_n may_v produce_v yet_o the_o second_o be_v embrace_v which_o say_v it_o be_v good_a to_o examine_v all_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o lutheran_n doctrine_n to_o censure_v and_o condemn_v that_o which_o after_o mature_a deliberation_n shall_v seem_v necessary_a and_o convenient_a and_o 25._o article_n be_v frame_v 1._o faith_n without_o work_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o alone_o do_v justify_v 2._o justify_v faith_n be_v a_o sure_a trust_n by_o which_o one_o believe_v that_o his_o sin_n be_v remit_v for_o christ_n and_o those_o that_o be_v justify_v be_v bind_v to_o believe_v certain_o that_o their_o sin_n be_v remit_v 3._o by_o faith_n only_o we_o be_v able_a to_o appear_v before_o god_n who_o neither_o regard_v nor_o have_v need_n of_o our_o work_n faith_n only_o make_v we_o pure_a and_o worthy_a to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n believe_v that_o in_o it_o we_o shall_v receive_v grace_n 4._o those_o that_o do_v honest_a thing_n without_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v sin_n for_o that_o they_o do_v they_o with_o awicked_a heart_n and_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n without_o faith_n 5._o the_o best_a repentance_n be_v a_o new_a life_n and_o the_o repentance_n of_o the_o life_n past_a be_v not_o necessary_a neither_o do_v the_o repentance_n of_o actual_a sin_n dispose_v we_o to_o receive_v grace_n 6._o no_o disposition_n be_v necessary_a to_o justification_n neither_o do_v faith_n justify_v because_o it_o dispose_v we_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o mean_n or_o instrument_n by_o which_o the_o promise_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v lay_v hold_v on_o and_o receive_v 7._o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n help_v not_o in_o gain_v of_o justice_n yea_o hurt_v and_o be_v sin_n and_o make_v the_o sinner_n worse_o 8._o contrition_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o discussion_n call_v to_o mind_n and_o detestation_n of_o sin_n weigh_v the_o grievousnesse_n multitude_n and_o filthiness_n of_o they_o or_o the_o loss_n of_o eternal_a happiness_n and_o gain_v of_o perpetual_a damnation_n make_v a_o man_n a_o hypocrite_n and_o a_o great_a sinner_n 9_o the_o fear_n by_o which_o sinner_n be_v terrify_v either_o internal_o by_o god_n or_o external_o by_o preacher_n be_v sin_n until_o they_o be_v overcome_v by_o faith_n 10._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o disposition_n destroy_v that_o of_o faith_n and_o take_v consolation_n from_o the_o conscience_n 11._o only_o faith_n be_v necessary_a and_o other_o thing_n be_v neither_o command_v nor_o forbid_v neither_o be_v sin_n any_o thing_n but_o incredulity_n 12._o he_o that_o have_v faith_n be_v free_a from_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o law_n and_o have_v no_o need_n of_o work_n to_o be_v save_v for_o faith_n give_v all_o abundant_o and_o alone_o fulfil_v all_o the_o commandment_n and_o no_o work_n of_o a_o faithful_a man_n be_v so_o bad_a as_o may_v accuse_v or_o condemn_v he_o 13._o a_o man_n baptize_v can_v lose_v salvation_n by_o reason_n of_o any_o sin_n whatsoever_o except_o he_o will_v not_o believe_v and_o no_o sin_n but_o infidelity_n separate_v we_o from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n 14_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v contrary_a and_o work_n can_v be_v teach_v without_o shipwreck_n of_o faith_n 15._o externall_n work_v of_o the_o second_o table_n be_v hypocrisy_n 16._o the_o justify_v be_v set_v free_a from_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n and_o satisfaction_n neither_o in_o this_o life_n nor_o after_o death_n be_v necessary_a and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n or_o satisfaction_n which_o be_v part_n of_o penance_n 17._o the_o justify_v though_o they_o have_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n can_v fulfil_v the_o law_n or_o avoid_v sin_n though_o mortal_a 18._o obedience_n unto_o the_o law_n in_o the_o justify_v be_v weak_a and_o unpure_a in_o itself_o not_o acceptable_a to_o god_n but_o accept_v for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o person_n reconcile_v who_o believe_v that_o the_o remainder_n of_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o 19_o the_o just_a sin_v in_o every_o good_a work_n and_o no_o work_n make_v the_o sin_n venial_a 20._o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n yea_o of_o the_o most_o sanctify_a be_v sin_n the_o work_n of_o the_o just_a be_v venial_a by_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o rigour_n of_o his_o judgement_n be_v mortal_a 21._o though_o the_o just_a aught_o to_o doubt_v that_o his_o work_n be_v sin_n yet_o he_o ought_v withal_o to_o be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v not_o impute_v 22._o grace_n and_o justice_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n neither_o have_v the_o justify_v any_o inherent_a justice_n in_o they_o and_o their_o sin_n be_v not_o abolish_v but_o only_o remit_v and_o not_o impute_v 23._o our_o justice_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o just_a have_v need_n of_o a_o continual_a
king_n do_v oppose_v by_o his_o ambassador_n marleus_n m_o 〈…〉_o assist_v by_o vergerius_n who_o know_v the_o searet_n and_o end_n of_o the_o roman_n tell_v grison_n vergerius_n discover_v the_o secret_a end_n of_o the_o romanist_n to_o the_o swiss_n and_o grison_n he_o how_o he_o shall_v persuade_v that_o nation_n and_o write_v also_o a_o book_n in_o this_o subject_n so_o that_o in_o the_o diet_n of_o bada_fw-es which_o then_o be_v hold_v not_o only_o the_o evangelicall_a but_o the_o catholic_a swiss_n also_o be_v persuade_v not_o to_o send_v any_o and_o the_o crison_n enter_v into_o suspicion_n upon_o the_o advertisement_n of_o vergerius_n that_o the_o pope_n do_v plot_v something_o to_o their_o prejudice_n do_v recall_v thomas_n planta_n bishop_n of_o coira_n who_o be_v already_o in_o the_o council_n in_o trent_n the_o congregation_n of_o the_o divine_n be_v diligent_o hasten_v who_o though_o they_o speak_v according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o twelve_o article_n yet_o all_o the_o matter_n of_o penance_n be_v handle_v not_o as_o the_o schoolman_n only_o but_o also_o as_o the_o canonist_n do_v handle_v it_o follow_v gratian_n who_o make_v a_o question_n thereof_o divide_v for_o the_o length_n of_o it_o into_o six_o distinction_n and_o the_o manner_n prescribe_v by_o the_o precedent_n to_o deduce_v and_o prove_v the_o conclusion_n from_o the_o censure_v the_o manner_n of_o discuss_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n be_v censure_v five_o place_n aforesaid_a cause_v not_o prolixity_n superfluity_n and_o unprofitable_a and_o vain_a question_n to_o be_v avoid_v but_o give_v occasion_n of_o great_a abuse_n for_o when_o they_o speak_v scholastical_o they_o keep_v themselves_o within_o the_o matter_n at_o the_o least_o and_o the_o discourse_n be_v all_o serious_a and_o severe_a but_o in_o this_o new_a manner_n which_o they_o call_v positive_a a_o italian_a word_n draw_v from_o plain_a apparel_n without_o superfluous_a ornament_n they_o run_v into_o foolery_n for_o allege_v the_o divine_a scripture_n they_o bring_v all_o the_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o psalm_n especial_o where_o the_o word_n confiteor_fw-la and_o its_o verbal_a confessia_n be_v find_v which_o do_v signify_v in_o the_o hebrew_n praise_n or_o rather_o religious_a profession_n and_o hale_v they_o to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n and_o which_o be_v less_o to_o the_o purpose_n figure_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v prefigure_v without_o any_o regard_n whether_o it_o may_v be_v apply_v to_o it_o with_o similitude_n and_o he_o be_v hold_v most_o learned_a who_o bring_v most_o of_o they_o all_o the_o rite_n signify_v humility_n grief_n and_o repentance_n use_v by_o those_o who_o confess_v be_v bold_o call_v apostolical_a tradition_n innumerable_a miracle_n be_v relate_v ancient_a and_o modern_a concern_v thing_n which_o suecee_v well_o to_o those_o who_o be_v devote_a to_o confession_n and_o ill_a to_o those_o who_o be_v negligent_a and_o despiser_n of_o it_o all_o the_o authority_n allege_v by_o gratian_n be_v often_o recite_v but_o various_a and_o diverse_a sense_n give_v they_o according_a to_o the_o matter_n and_o other_o also_o be_v add_v and_o he_o that_o shall_v have_v hear_v those_o doctor_n speak_v can_v not_o but_o conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n and_o ancient_a bishop_n do_v never_o any_o thing_n but_o kneel_v at_o confession_n or_o sit_v to_o confess_v other_o in_o sum_n that_o to_o which_o all_o do_v come_v and_o which_o be_v most_o to_o the_o purpose_n be_v the_o council_n of_o florence_n among_o the_o memorial_n there_o do_v nothing_o appear_v worthy_a of_o particular_a mention_n except_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v speak_v of_o when_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n must_v be_v recite_v but_o thus_o much_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o these_o sheaf_n of_o diverse_a sort_n of_o corn_n carry_v into_o the_o barn_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n if_o a_o mingle_a grist_n be_v thresh_v the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o mixture_n do_v absolute_o please_v but_o few_o neither_o be_v it_o observe_v in_o this_o subject_n as_o in_o other_o not_o to_o condemn_v any_o opinion_n of_o the_o catholic_n but_o where_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o divine_n be_v various_a to_o make_v the_o expression_n with_o such_o a_o temper_n that_o all_o party_n may_v be_v satisfy_v which_o cause_v i_o not_o to_o observe_v my_o former_a order_n but_o first_o to_o expound_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o decree_n as_o it_o be_v establish_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o session_n and_o then_o to_o add_v that_o which_o the_o same_o person_n of_o the_o council_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o decree_n be_v this_o that_o although_o in_o handle_v justification_n much_o penance_n the_o decree_n concern_v penance_n be_v speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n yet_o to_o root_v out_o diverse_a heresy_n of_o this_o age_n it_o be_v fit_v to_o illustrate_v the_o catholic_a truth_n which_o the_o holy_a synod_n do_v propose_v to_o be_v perpetual_o observe_v by_o all_o christian_n add_v that_o penance_n be_v always_o necessary_a in_o every_o age_n of_o the_o world_n and_o after_o christ_n to_o those_o also_o who_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v which_o penance_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n there_o be_v another_o institute_v by_o christ_n when_o breathe_v upon_o his_o disciple_n he_o give_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n that_o be_v to_o reconcile_v the_o faithful_a fall_v into_o sin_n after_o baptism_n for_o so_o the_o church_n have_v always_o understand_v it_o and_o the_o holy_a synod_n do_v approve_v this_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n condemn_v those_o who_o understand_v they_o of_o the_o power_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o this_o sacrament_n differ_v from_o baptism_n not_o only_o in_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n but_o also_o because_o the_o minister_n of_o baptism_n be_v not_o judge_v whereas_o after_o baptism_n the_o sinner_n do_v present_v himself_o before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o priest_n as_o guilty_a to_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n by_o his_o sentence_n and_o by_o baptism_n a_o full_a remission_n of_o sin_n be_v receive_v which_o be_v not_o receive_v by_o penance_n without_o sigh_n and_o pain_n and_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o necessary_a for_o sinner_n after_o baptism_n as_o baptism_n itself_o be_v to_o he_o that_o have_v not_o receive_v it_o but_o the_o form_n thereof_o consist_v in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o minister_n i_o do_v absolve_v thou_o unto_o which_o other_o prayer_n be_v laudable_o add_v though_o they_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o contrition_n confession_n and_o satisfaction_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v therefore_o call_v part_n of_o penance_n the_o thing_n signify_v and_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v reconciliation_n with_o god_n whence_o peace_n and_o clearness_n of_o conscience_n do_v sometime_o arise_v and_o therefore_o the_o synod_n do_v condemn_v those_o who_o make_v horror_n of_o conscience_n and_o faith_n to_o be_v part_n of_o penance_n contrition_n be_v grief_n of_o mind_n for_o sin_n commit_v with_o purpose_n to_o sin_n no_o more_o and_o be_v ever_o necessary_a in_o all_o time_n but_o in_o sinner_n after_o baptism_n it_o be_v a_o preparation_n to_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v join_v with_o a_o purpose_n to_o do_v whatsoever_o else_o be_v require_v for_o the_o lawful_a receive_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o cease_n from_o sin_n or_o a_o purpose_v and_o a_o beginning_n of_o a_o new_a life_n but_o also_o a_o hate_n of_o the_o life_n past_a and_o though_o contrition_n be_v sometime_o join_v with_o charity_n and_o reconcile_v a_o man_n to_o god_n before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o this_o virtue_n can_v be_v ascribe_v to_o it_o without_o purpose_n to_o receive_v the_o say_a sacrament_n of_o penance_n but_o the_o action_n which_o arise_v either_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o filthiness_n of_o sin_n or_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o punishment_n with_o hope_n of_o pardon_n be_v not_o hypocrisy_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o which_o the_o penitent_a be_v assist_v do_v go_v on_o to_o receive_v justice_n which_o although_o it_o can_v bring_v we_o to_o justification_n without_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o it_o do_v dispose_v we_o to_o obtain_v grace_n from_o god_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n by_o this_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o understand_v that_o christ_n have_v institute_v the_o entire_a confession_n of_o sin_n as_o necessary_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n to_o those_o that_o fall_v after_o baptism_n for_o have_v institute_v the_o priest_n his_o vicar_n for_o judge_n of_o all_o mortal_a sin_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o can_v exercise_v this_o judgement_n without_o knowledge_n of_o the_o cause_n nor_o observe_v equity_n in_o impose_v
punishment_n if_o the_o sin_n be_v not_o particular_o make_v know_v unto_o they_o and_o not_o in_o general_a only_o therefore_o the_o penitent_a aught_o in_o confession_n to_o declare_v all_o his_o mortal_a sin_n even_o the_o most_o secret_a but_o the_o venial_a though_o they_o may_v be_v confess_v yet_o they_o may_v be_v conceal_v also_o without_o offence_n and_o hence_o it_o come_v that_o in_o confession_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o explicate_v the_o circumstance_n which_o alter_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o sin_n because_o otherwise_o one_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o excess_n and_o impose_v a_o condign_a punishment_n so_o that_o it_o be_v wickedesse_n to_o say_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o confession_n be_v impossible_a or_o that_o it_o be_v the_o murder_a of_o the_o conscience_n because_o nothing_o be_v require_v but_o that_o the_o sinner_n have_v diligent_o examine_v himself_o shall_v confess_v what_o he_o remember_v and_o the_o sin_n forget_v be_v suppose_v to_o be_v include_v in_o the_o same_o confession_n and_o though_o christ_n have_v not_o forbid_v public_a confession_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o command_v it_o neither_o will_v it_o be_v good_a to_o command_v that_o sin_n especial_o secret_a shall_v be_v confess_v in_o public_a wherefore_o the_o father_n have_v ever_o praise_v the_o sacramental_a secret_a confession_n the_o calumny_n of_o those_o be_v vain_a who_o call_v it_o a_o humane_a invention_n excogitated_a by_o the_o laterane_n council_n which_o do_v not_o ordain_v confession_n but_o only_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v at_o the_o least_o once_o every_o year_n concern_v the_o minister_n the_o synod_n do_v declare_v those_o doctrine_n to_o be_v false_a which_o extend_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a the_o ministry_n of_o the_o key_n and_o the_o authority_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v remit_v and_o retain_v public_a sin_n by_o correction_n and_o secret_a by_o voluntary_a confession_n and_o teach_v that_o the_o priest_n though_o sinner_n have_v authority_n to_o remit_v sin_n which_o be_v not_o a_o naked_a ministry_n to_o declare_v that_o sin_n be_v remit_v but_o a_o judicial_a act_n therefore_o let_v no_o man_n ground_n himself_o upon_o faith_n think_v that_o without_o contrition_n and_o a_o priest_n who_o be_v willing_a to_o absolve_v he_o he_o can_v have_v remission_n but_o because_o there_o be_v a_o nullity_n in_o the_o sentence_n pronounce_v against_o he_o who_o be_v not_o subject_a there_o be_v also_o a_o nullity_n in_o the_o absolution_n of_o the_o priest_n who_o have_v not_o authority_n delegate_v or_o ordinary_a over_o the_o penitent_a and_o the_o great_a priest_n do_v with_o reason_n reserve_v to_o themselves_o some_o fault_n more_o grievous_a and_o so_o do_v the_o pope_n very_o just_o and_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o every_o bishop_n may_v do_v it_o in_o his_o diocese_n and_o this_o reservation_n be_v not_o only_o for_o external_a policy_n but_o be_v also_o of_o force_n before_o god._n therefore_o it_o be_v always_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n that_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n any_o priest_n may_v absolve_v any_o penitent_a from_o any_o sin_n of_o satisfaction_n the_o synod_n do_v declare_v that_o the_o sin_n be_v remit_v the_o punishment_n be_v not_o pardon_v it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o easy_o receive_v into_o grace_n who_o have_v sin_v before_o baptism_n and_o after_o and_o be_v leave_v without_o a_o bridle_n which_o may_v draw_v he_o from_o other_o sin_n yea_o it_o be_v convenient_a he_o shall_v be_v like_a to_o christ_n who_o suffer_v punishment_n do_v satisfy_v for_o we_o from_o who_o our_o satisfaction_n also_o receive_v force_n as_o offer_v by_o he_o to_o the_o father_n and_o receive_v by_o his_o intercession_n therefore_o the_o priest_n ought_v to_o impose_v convenient_a satisfaction_n not_o only_o to_o keep_v the_o penitent_a from_o new_a sin_n but_o also_o to_o chastise_v he_o for_o the_o old_a declare_v likewise_o that_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v not_o only_o by_o punishment_n willing_o receive_v or_o impose_v by_o the_o priest_n but_o by_o endure_v also_o with_o patience_n the_o scourge_v send_v from_o god_n in_o conformity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n fifteen_o anathematism_n be_v make_v 1._o anathetisme_n 15._o anathetisme_n against_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o penance_n be_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o a_o sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n to_o reconcile_v sinner_n after_o baptism_n 2._o that_o baptism_n be_v penance_n or_o that_o be_v not_o the_o second_o table_n or_o board_n after_o shipwreck_n 3._o that_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n quorum_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la peccata_fw-la be_v not_o understand_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n but_o of_o the_o authority_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 4._o that_o contrition_n confession_n and_o satisfaction_n be_v not_o require_v for_o as_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n and_o as_o part_n of_o penance_n or_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o terror_n of_o conscience_n and_o faith_n be_v part_n 5._o that_o contrition_n be_v not_o profitable_a but_o cause_v hypocrisy_n and_o be_v a_o force_a and_o not_o a_o free_a sorrow_n 6._o that_o sacramental_a confession_n be_v not_o institute_v and_o necessary_a by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o that_o the_o manner_n of_o confess_v to_o the_o priest_n in_o secret_a be_v a_o humane_a invention_n 7._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o confess_v all_o mortal_a sin_n even_o those_o that_o be_v hide_v and_o the_o circumstance_n which_o do_v change_v the_o nature_n of_o they_o 8._o that_o this_o be_v impossible_a or_o that_o all_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o confess_v once_o a_o year_n according_a to_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o laterane_n council_n 9_o that_o the_o sacramental_a absolution_n be_v not_o a_o judicial_a act_n but_o a_o ministry_n to_o declare_v the_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o believer_n or_o that_o a_o absolution_n give_v in_o jest_n do_v help_v or_o that_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o penitent_a be_v not_o requisite_a 10._o that_o priest_n in_o mortal_a sin_n have_v not_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v or_o that_o all_o the_o faithful_a have_v it_o 11._o that_o bishop_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o reserve_v case_n but_o for_o external_a policy_n 12._o that_o all_o punishment_n be_v remit_v together_o with_o the_o fault_n and_o that_o no_o other_o satisfaction_n be_v require_v but_o faith_n that_o christ_n have_v satisfy_v 13._o that_o satisfaction_n be_v not_o make_v by_o suffer_a affliction_n send_v by_o god_n by_o punishment_n impose_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o willing_o take_v and_o that_o the_o best_a penance_n be_v only_o a_o new_a life_n 14._o that_o satisfaction_n be_v not_o divine_a worship_n but_o humane_a tradition_n 15._o that_o the_o key_n of_o the_o church_n be_v only_o to_o loose_v and_o not_o to_o bind_v the_o divine_n of_o louvain_n oppose_v the_o reservation_n of_o case_n say_v it_o be_v not_o collen_n some_o of_o which_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o dutine_n of_o louvain_n and_o collen_n so_o clear_a because_o it_o can_v be_v find_v that_o any_o father_n do_v ever_o speak_v of_o it_o and_o that_o durand_n who_o be_v a_o penitentiary_n and_o gerson_n and_o caietan_n do_v all_o affirm_v that_o not_o sin_n but_o censure_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o that_o it_o be_v too_o rigid_a to_o esteem_v he_o a_o heretic_n who_o think_v otherwise_o the_o divine_n of_o collen_n join_v with_o they_o and_o say_v plain_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v find_v that_o any_o ancient_n do_v speak_v of_o any_o reservation_n but_o of_o public_a sin_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o fit_a to_o condemn_v the_o chancellor_n of_o paris_n so_o pious_a and_o catholic_a a_o author_n who_o write_v against_o they_o that_o the_o heretic_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o these_o reservation_n be_v invent_v for_o gain_v as_o also_o card._n campeggio_n say_v in_o his_o reformation_n and_o that_o it_o give_v he_o occasion_n to_o write_v against_o it_o unto_o which_o the_o divine_n will_v not_o have_v answer_v nor_o be_v able_a to_o answer_v and_o therefore_o as_o well_o the_o doctrine_n as_o the_o canon_n aught_o to_o be_v moderate_v that_o it_o may_v not_o give_v scandal_n nor_o offend_v any_o catholic_a the_o same_o man_n of_o collen_n say_v that_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n quorum_fw-la ligaveritis_fw-la condemn_v in_o the_o ten_o canon_n be_v express_o and_o formal_o so_o understand_v by_o theophilact_n and_o that_o to_o condemn_v it_o be_v to_o make_v the_o enemy_n rejoice_v and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o last_o that_o the_o power_n to_o bind_v be_v understand_v to_o impose_v penance_n they_o observe_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n do_v not_o so_o understand_v it_o but_o that_o to_o bind_v be_v to_o make_v one_o abstain_v from_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n until_o a_o complete_a satisfaction_n they_o demand_v